Terrorism and the Media (including the Internet)
Transcription
Terrorism and the Media (including the Internet)
Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Terrorism and the Media (including the Internet): an Extensive Bibliography Compiled and selected by Judith Tinnes Introduction This bibliography is intended to serve as an extensive up-to-date resource for studying and researching the multi-faceted relationships between terrorism and the media, including the Internet. It contains over 2.200 records covering academic or professional journal articles (most of them peer-reviewed), book chapters, reports, conference contributions, books, theses and other text publications, mainly in English and German. To keep the bibliography manageable, smaller, more informal publications, e.g., blog posts, research briefs, commentaries, newspaper articles, or newsletters, were not considered – with a few exceptions of contributions containing ideas or subjects that were underrepresented in long-form academic or professional literature. The vast majority of resources included date from the 21st century, as after 9/11 – the biggest single media event in history – the amount of publications on the relationship between terrorism and the media has increased considerably. However, terrorist use of the media is as old as terrorism itself and has been researched since the beginning of terrorism studies. Therefore, this bibliography is not restricted to a particular time period and covers publications up to early February 2013. Thematically, the bibliography covers many aspects of the relationship between terrorism and the media, including these: • terrorist use of the traditional media (TV, radio, newspapers); • terrorist use of the new media, especially the Internet (E-Jihad, Cyberterrorism); • online radicalization; • 9/11 as a media event; • media-oriented counter-terrorism measures; • the psychological impact of media exposure to terrorist attacks; • the portrayal of Islam and Muslims after 9/11; • the depiction of terrorism in literature, movies and the arts; • media-oriented hostage-takings. Formally, the bibliography has been subdivided into two main sections: „Books and Theses“ and „Articles“; the titles in each section are alphabetically arranged, usually by authors. The Articles section has been structured by sub-sections for each alphabetic letter, starting with a heading consisting of the particular letter preceded by a hash key to enable readers to quickly access it (e.g., when searching for the letter C, open the search window of your text processing software by hitting <control> + <f> (on a Mac: <command> + <f>), then enter #C). A third short section at the end of the bibliography lists websites and blogs that regularly publish analyses of primary source materials (especially jihadist online publications). All websites were last visited on 18 February 2013. S1 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement To provide readers with reliable information to locate the references, a detailed citation style (including full author first names, journal issue numbers, book series titles, and full URL paths to resources) was used. Where available, DOIs have been added. A DOI (Digital Object Identifier) is a unique and permanent identifier for electronic entities. It takes the form of a two-part character string (e.g. 10.1080/10304310302733): The first part identifies the registrant (in our example 10.1080 for Taylor & Francis), the second part identifies the particular electronic object (here: 10304310302733 for the journal article "September 11 and the Logistics of Communication" by Michael Galvin). In the bibliography, all DOIs were provided in a clickable format to enable readers to directly access the landing page associated with them. DOIs secure a more stable linking than traditional web adresses (URLs), which often alter or disappear, causing so-called 404 error messages. Nevertheless, it might happen that a DOI is defunct. In this case, the user of this bibliography should insert the title of an article – enclosed with quotation marks – into a search engine like Google to retrieve the publication's landing page. Whenever retrievable, URLs for freely available versions of subscription-based publications have been provided. Thanks to the Open Access movement, self-archiving of publications in institutional repositories or on author homepages for free public use (so-called Green Open Access) has become more common. Please note, that the content of Green Open Access documents is not necessarily identical to the officially published versions (e.g., in case of pre-prints) it might therefore not have passed through all editorial stages publishers employ to ensure quality control (peer review, copy and layout editing etc.). In some cases, articles may only be cited after getting consent by the author(s). To provide a balanced pool of references, a broad scope of resources and different search strategies were used to retrieve the bibliographic content. 23 free or subscription-based terrorism research journals were searched for articles by browsing their tables of contents manually in order not to miss important content. This core journal list was extended by 71 multi- or interdisciplinary journals of significant importance for terrorism researchers. These journals were identified by using keyword searches on publisher homepages, scanning journal lists, bibliographies, reference lists or citation analyses. For these journals, the tables of contents for the last decade were browsed manually; older back files were checked by using the automatic keyword search function on the journal’s or publisher’s homepages. Furthermore, 136 websites, blogs, and publication lists of governmental, and non-governmental institutions, private companies, academic, professional, or individual experts were identified and manually browsed for relevant content (especially to retrieve gray literature such as reports or working papers, but also other literature types), or to get alerted with regard to new publications. As terrorism research is an interdisciplinary field with relevant publications scattered over a large scope of publication outlets, the compiler of this bibliography used cross-searches to extend the body of resources. 10 homepages of commercial academic publishers (amongst them Taylor & Francis, SAGE, and Wiley) were automatically searched for relevant content by using the advanced search features offered at their company websites. To keep the amount of results manageable, the keyword search was restricted to the abstract, title, and keywords fields (instead of full-text search). The scope of the search was further extended by using 13 abstracting and indexing services (including Google Scholar, the Directory of Open Access Journals, and EBSCO) for publisher- S2 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement independent, multi-disciplinary cross-searches. Results were filtered by employing advanced search functions. In addition, the compiler conducted searches with Google Books and WorldCat to retrieve books, edited volumes, and theses. Due to the large amount of publications and the decentralisation of information resources in the modern publishing world, this bibliography, while extensive, cannot be totally comprehensive. Due to its length, it is only available in PDF format, not, as usual for contributions of Perspectives on Terrorism in both HTML and PDF format. S3 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement - All websites were last visited on February 18, 2013 - Books and Theses Altheide, David L. (2006): Terrorism and the Politics of Fear. Lanham: AltaMira Press. Altheide, David L. (2009): Terror post 9/11 and the Media. New York: Peter Lang. Alsultany, Evelyn (2012): Arabs and Muslims in the Media: Race and Representation after 9/11. New York: New York University Press. Aly, Anne (2010): A Study of Audience Responses to the Media Discourse about the "Other": The Fear of Terrorism between Australian Muslims and the Broader Community. Lewiston: Edwin Mellen Press. Archetti, Cristina (2012): Understanding Terrorism in the Age of Global Media: A Communication Approach. New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Ar-Raqib, Akil; Roche, Edward M. (2009): Virtual Worlds, Real Terrorism. Den Haag: Aardwolf Publications. Awan, Akil; Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2011): Radicalisation and Media: Connectivity and Terrorism in the New Media Ecology. (Media, War and Security). London: Routledge. Awan, Imran; Blakemore, Brian (2012): Policing Cyber Hate, Cyber Threats and Cyber Terrorism. Farnham: Ashgate. Aziz, Syamsuddin (2010): Dominant Discourse on News-Making Decisions on Terrorism: The Case of Indonesian Newspapers. Saarbrücken: LAP LAMBERT Academic Publishing. Ballard, James David (2005): Terrorism, Media, and Public Policy: The Oklahoma City Bombing. Cresskill: Hampton Press. S4 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Bañez, Justin D. (2010, December): The Internet and Homegrown Jihadist Terrorism: Assessing U.S. Detection Techniques. (Master's Thesis, Naval Postgraduate School, Monterey, U.S.). URL: http://www.dtic.mil/cgi-bin/GetTRDoc?AD=ADA536371 Barnett, Brooke; Reynolds, Amy (2009): Terrorism and the Press: An Uneasy Relationship. New York: Peter Lang. Ben-Shaul, Nitzan (2006): A Violent World: TV News Images of Middle Eastern Terror and War. Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield. Bielby, Clare (2012): Violent Women in Print: Representations in the West German Print Media of the 1960s and 1970s. Rochester: Camden House. Bolt, Neville (2012): The Violent Image: Insurgent Propaganda and the New Revolutionaries. New York: Columbia University Press. Bradshaw, Renee (2008): The Public’s View of Terrorism in their Communities as Related to MediaViewing Habits. (Master's Thesis, University of Texas, Arlington, U.S.). URL: http://dspace.uta.edu/handle/10106/1061 Bräuchler, Birgit (2005): Cyberidentities at War: Der Molukkenkonflikt im Internet. Bielefeld: transcript. Buck, Christian F. (2007): Medien und Geiselnahmen. Fallstudien zum inszenierten Terror. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften. Bunt, Gary R. (2003): Islam in the Digital Age: E-Jihad, Online Fatwas and Cyber Islamic Environments. London: Pluto Press. Burgener, Kate (2005, June): Posen des Terrors: Analyse und Kritik medialer Inszenierungen. (Diploma Thesis, Hochschule für Gestaltung und Kunst Zürich, Zurich, Switzerland). URL: http://www.poolart.ch/mainmenu/work/cultural_gender_studies/posen_des_terrors.pdf S5 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ceresa, Alessia (2008): New Technology: Terrorism and an International Prevention-Repression Strategy. New York: NOVA Science Publishers. Cettl, Robert (2009): Terrorism in American Cinema: An Analytical Filmography, 1960-2008. Jefferson: McFarland. Chakravariti, Rahul (2009): Media Coverage of Terrorism and Methods of Diffusion. New Delhi: MD Publications. Chen, Hsinchun (2012): Dark Web: Exploring and Data Mining the Dark Side of the Web. (Integrated Series in Information Systems, Vol. 30). New York: Springer. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-1-4614-1557-2 Cockley, David (2009, May): The Media Spectacle of Terrorism and Response-Able Literature. (Doctoral Dissertation, Texas A&M University, College Station, U.S.). URL: http://repository.tamu.edu/handle/1969.1/ETD-TAMU-2009-05-367 Colarik, Andrew M. (2006): Cyber Terrorism: Political and Economic Implications. Hershey: Idea Group. Council of Europe's Committee of Experts on Terrorism (CODEXTER) (2007): Cyberterrorism: The Use of the Internet for Terrorist Purposes. Strasbourg: Council of Europe Publishing. URL: http://book.coe.int/ftp/3013.pdf Dar, Gulam Mohammad (2005): Terrorism, Mass Media and Public Opinion. New Delhi: Dilpreet Publishing House. Dartnell, Michael Y. (2006): Insurgency Online: Web Activism and Global Conflict. Toronto: University of Toronto Press. Dass, Niranjan (2008): Media and Terrorism. New Delhi: MD Publications Private Limited. Däwes, Birgit (2011): Ground Zero Fiction: History, Memory, and Representation in the American 9/11 Novel. (American Studies, Vol. 8). Heidelberg: Winter. S6 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Debrix, Francois (2007): Tabloid Terror: War, Culture, and Geopolitics. London: Routledge. DeFoster, Ruth Maku (2010, May): Domestic Terrorism on the Nightly News. (Master's Thesis, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis, U.S.). URL: http://conservancy.umn.edu/bitstream/93028/1/DeFoster_Ruth_May2010.pdf Deiß, Marina (2008): Gnade für Gnadenlose? 30 Jahre Deutscher Herbst und die "Begnadigungsdebatte" in den Medien. Marburg: Tectum. Dillon, Sandra I. (2011, December): The Representation of Terrorism as Defective Communication in Volker Schlöndorff’s Die Stille nach dem Schuss, Gregor Schnitzler’s Was tun wenn’s brennt, Leander Scholz’s Rosenfest and Ulrike Edschmid’s Frau mit Waffe: Zwei Geschichten aus terroristischen Zeiten. (Doctoral Dissertation, University of Oregon, Eugene, U.S.). URL: https://scholarsbank.uoregon.edu/xmlui/handle/1794/12149 DiMaggio, Anthony R. (2008): Mass Media, Mass Propaganda: Examining American News in the "War on Terror". Lanham: Lexington Books. Domke, David Scott (2004): Review of David Domke's God Willing? Political Fundamentalism in the White House, the "War on Terror," and the Echoing Press. London: Pluto Press. El Difraoui, Asiem (2010): Al Qaida par l’image ou la prophétie du martyre: Une analyse politique de la propagande audiovisuelle du jihad global. (Doctoral Dissertation, Institut d’Etudes Politiques, Paris, France). [Book version:] (2012): Al-Qaida par l'image: La prophétie du martyre. (1st ed.). (Proche Orient). Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. Elter, Andreas (2008): Propaganda der Tat: Die RAF und die Medien. Frankfurt: Suhrkamp. Exoo, Calvin F. (2010): The Pen and the Sword: Press, War, and Terror in the 21st Century. Los Angeles: SAGE. S7 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Fahmy, Shahira (2007): Filling out the Frame: Transnational Visual Coverage and News Practitioners' Attitudes towards the Reporting of War and Terrorism. Saarbrücken: VDM Verlag Dr. Müller. Flood, Christopher et al. (2012): Islam, Security and Television News. Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9781137006882 Frindte, Wolfgang; Haußecker, Nicole (Eds.): Inszenierter Terrorismus: Mediale Konstruktionen und individuelle Interpretationen. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften. Geelani, Syed Bismillah (2006): Manufacturing Terrorism: Kashmiri Encounters with Media and the Law. New Delhi: Promilla & Co./Bibliophile South Asia. Gerhards, Jürgen et al. (2011): Terrorismus im Fernsehen: Formate, Inhalte und Emotionen in westlichen und arabischen Sendern. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften. Giroux, Henry A. (2006): Beyond the Spectacle of Terrorism: Global Uncertainty and the Challenge of the New Media. (Radical Imagination). Boulder: Paradigm Publishers. Glück, Antje (2007): Terror im Kopf: Terrorismusberichterstattung in der deutschen und arabischen Elitepresse. (Medien und politische Kommunikation – Naher Osten und islamische Welt, Vol. 14). Berlin: Frank & Timme. Glück, Cornelia (2003): Die ETA und die Medien: Zwischen Zwangsehe und Zweckgemeinschaft: Eine Analyse der Berichterstattung spanischer Medien über die baskische Terrororganisation und ihre Auswirkungen auf die Gesellschaft. (POLITICA – Schriftenreihe zur politischen Wissenschaft, Vol. 52). Hamburg: Verlag Dr. Kovač. Golumbic, Martin Charles (2008): Fighting Terror Online: The Convergence of Security, Technology, and the Law. New York: Springer. URL: http://www.springerlink.com/content/978-0-38773577-1 S8 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Greenberg, Jeffrey H. (2007, January): Televised News Media Exposure, Fear of Terrorism, and Social Problem-Solving. (Doctoral Dissertation, Drexel University, Philadelphia, U.S.). URL: http://144.118.25.24/handle/1860/1242 Grishman, Paul (2010): Cyber Terrorism: The Use of the Internet for Terrorist Purposes. New Delhi: Axis Publications. Gustin, Joseph F. (2004): Cyber Terrorism: A Guide for Facility Managers. Lilburn: Fairmont Press. Gutman, Roy (2008): How we Missed the Story: Osama bin Laden, the Taliban, and the Hijacking of Afghanistan. Washington: USIP Press. Hachten, William A.; Scotton, James Francis (2011): The World News Prism: Challenges of Digital Communication. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell. Handler, Lauren Krista (2004): Rhetorical Terrorism: Online News Visual Representation of Suicide Bombing. (Master's Thesis, Florida State University, Tallahassee, U.S.). URL: http://diginole.lib.fsu.edu/etd/4290 Harten, Shelley (2012): Reenactment eines Traumas: Die Entebbe Flugzeugentführung 1976: Deutsche Terroristen in der israelischen Presse. Marburg: Tectum. Hartmann, Anja (2011, July 13): Bildlich gesprochen: Medien, Trauma und Terror in ausgewählten Romanen zum 11. September 2001. (Doctoral Dissertation, Ludwig-Maximilians-Universität München, Munich, Germany). URL: http://edoc.ub.uni-muenchen.de/13476 Hill, Andrew (2009): Re-Imagining the War on Terror: Seeing, Waiting, Travelling. (New Security Challenges Series). Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Hodges, Adam (2011): The "War on Terror" Narrative: Discourse and Intertextuality in the Construction and Contestation of Sociopolitical Reality. (Oxford Studies in Sociolinguistics). Oxford: Oxford University Press. S9 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2007): Television and Terror: Conflicting Times and the Crisis of News Discourse. (New Security Challenges Series). Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2010): War and Media: The Emergence of Diffused War. Cambridge: Polity Press. Howie, Luke (2010): Terror on the Screen: Witnesses and the Re-Animation of 9/11 as Image-Event, Popular Culture and Pornography. Washington, D.C.: New Academia. Jannepally, Hariwardhan Reddy (2010): The 2008 Mumbai Attack and Press Nationalism: A Content Analysis of Coverage in the New York Times, Times of London, Dawn, and the Hindu. (Master's Thesis, Ohio University, Athens, U.S.). URL: http://etd.ohiolink.edu/view.cgi? acc_num=ohiou1283534128 Kaur, Gurmanpreet; Pawar, Anand (2012): Cyber Terrorism and Law. Saarbrücken: LAP LAMBERT Academic Publishing. Kellner, Douglas (2005): Media Spectacle and the Crisis of Democracy: Terrorism, War, and Election Battles. (Cultural Politics & the Promise of Democracy). Boulder: Paradigm Publishers. Kirchhoff, Susanne (2010): Krieg mit Metaphern: Mediendiskurse über 9/11 und den "War on Terror". (Critical Media Studies). Bielefeld: transcript. Kuypers, Jim A. (2006): Bush's War: Media Bias and Justifications for War in a Terrorist Age. Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield. Lappin, Yaakov (2011): Virtual Caliphate: Exposing the Islamist State on the Internet. Washington: Potomac Books. Lewis, Jeff (2005): Language Wars: The Role of Media and Culture in Global Terror and Political Violence. London: Pluto Press. S10 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Libicki, Martin C. et al. (2007): Byting Back: Regaining Information Superiority against 21st-Century Insurgents. (RAND Counterinsurgency Study, Vol. 1). Santa Monica: RAND Corporation. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/monographs/MG595z1.html Linder, Bernadette (2011): Terror in der Medienberichterstattung. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften. Määttä, Hanne (2006): A Phantom Enemy: Metaphors of Terrorism in Mainstream and Alternative News Media. (Pro Gradu Thesis, University of Jyväskylä, Jyväskylä, Finland). URL: https://jyx.jyu.fi/dspace/handle/123456789/7389 Matusitz, Jonathan (2012): Terrorism and Communication: A Critical Introduction. Thousand Oaks: SAGE. McWilliams, Timothy S. (2011): The Battle for Hearts and Minds: Uncovering the Wars of Ideas and Images behind the Global War on Terror: A Study of Media Performance and Influence, Propaganda, and Strategic Communication. Quantico: CreateSpace Independent Publishing Platform. Mehan, Julie E. (2008): CyberWar, CyberTerror, CyberCrime: A Guide to the Role of Standards in an Environment of Change and Danger. Ely: IT Governance Publishing. Minei, Elizabeth (2003): Cyberterrorists: Their Communicative Messages and the Effects on Targets. (Master's Thesis, University of Central Florida, Orlando, U.S.). URL: http://digitalcollections.lib.ucf.edu/cdm4/item_viewer.php? CISOROOT=/ETD&CISOPTR=2115 Mitchell, Jolyon (2012): Promoting Peace, Inciting Violence: The Role of Religion and Media. (Media, Religion and Culture). London: Routledge. Mitchell, W. J. T. (2011): Cloning Terror: The War of Images, 9/11 to the Present. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. S11 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Moeller, Susan D. (2004): Media Coverage of Weapons of Mass Destruction. (CISSM Monograph, 03/09/2004). College Park: Center for International and Security Studies at Maryland. URL: http://www.cissm.umd.edu/papers/display.php?id=32 Moeller, Susan D. (2009): Packaging Terrorism: Co-opting the News for Politics and Profit. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell. Monahan, Brian A. (2010): The Shock of the News: Media Coverage and the Making of 9/11. New York: University Press. Moon, David B. (2007, December): Cyber-Herding and Cyber Activism: Countering Qutbists on the Internet. (Master's Thesis, Naval Postgraduate School, Monterey, U.S.). URL: http://www.dtic.mil/cgi-bin/GetTRDoc?AD=ADA475919 Morey, Peter; Yaqin, Amina (2011): Framing Muslims: Stereotyping and Representation after 9/11. Cambridge: Harvard University Press. Musharbash, Yassin (2006): Die neue al-Qaida: Innenansichten eines lernenden Terrornetzwerks. Köln: Kiepenheuer & Witsch. Nachtigall, Andrea (2011): Gendering 9/11: Medien, Macht und Geschlecht im Kontext des "War on Terror". (Kultur und soziale Praxis). Bielefeld: transcript. Nacos, Brigitte L. (1994): Terrorism and the Media: From the Iran Hostage Crisis to the World Trade Center Bombing. New York: Columbia University Press. Nacos, Brigitte L. (2002): Mass-Mediated Terrorism: The Central Role of the Media in Terrorism and Counterterrorism. Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield. Nacos, Brigitte L.; Bloch-Elkon, Yaeli; Shapiro, Robert Y. (2011): Selling Fear: Counterterrorism, the Media, and Public Opinion. (Chicago Studies in American Politics). Chicago: The University of Chicago Press. S12 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Nacos, Brigitte L.; Torres-Reyna, Oscar (2006): Fueling our Fears: Stereotyping, Media Coverage, and Public Opinion of Muslim Americans. Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield. Niemeyer, Katharina (2006): Die Mediasphären des Terrorismus: Eine mediologische Studie des 11. Septembers. Berlin: Avinus Academia. Nohrstedt, Stig Arne; Ottosen, Rune (2004): U.S. and the Others: Global Media Images on "The War on Terror". Göteborg: Nordicom. Ogun, Mehmet Nesip (2011): Terrorism & Internet & PKK: Terrorist Use of Internet. Saarbrücken: LAP LAMBERT Academic Publishing. Pak Institute for Peace Studies (PIPS) (2010): Understanding the Militants' Media in Pakistan: Outreach and Impact. Islamabad: Pak Institute for Peace Studies. Prince, Stephen (2009): Firestorm: American Film in the Age of Terrorism. New York: Columbia University Press. Proctor, Pat (2010): Media War: The Media-Enabled Insurgency in Iraq. Manhattan: ProSIM. Prucha, Nico (2010): Die Stimme des Dschihad: "Ṣawt al-ğihād": Al-Qā‘idas erstes OnlineMagazin. (Nūr al-ḥikma, Vol. 5). Hamburg: Verlag Dr. Kovač. Qian, Yufang (2010): Discursive Constructions around Terrorism in the People's Daily (China) and The Sun (UK) before and after 9.11. Oxford: Peter Lang. Ramos, Rachel Tobin (2007, November): Legislating after Terrorism: September 11, the News Media and the Georgia Legislature. (Communication Thesis, Georgia State University, Atlanta, U.S.). URL: http://digitalarchive.gsu.edu/cgi/viewcontent.cgi? article=1033&context=communication_theses Richards, Barry (2007): Emotional Governance: Politics, Media and Terror. Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. S13 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Roversi, Antonio (2008): Hate on the Net: Extremist Sites, Neo-Fascism On-line, Electronic Jihad. (Lawrence Smith, Trans.). Aldershot: Ashgate. Ryan, Johnny (2007): Countering Militant Islamist Radicalisation on the Internet: A User Driven Strategy to Recover the Web. (1st ed.). Dublin: Institute of International and European Affairs. Schechter, Danny (2003): Media Wars: News at a Time of Terror. Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield. Schlesinger, Philip et al. (1983): Televising "Terrorism": Political Violence in Popular Culture. London: Comedia Publishing Group. Schmid, Alex P.; de Graaf, Janny (1982): Violence as Communication: Insurgent Terrorism and the Western News Media. London: SAGE. Seib, Philip M.; Janbek, Dana M. (2011): Global Terrorism and New Media: The Post-Al Qaeda Generation. London: Routledge. Signorielli, Nancy; Gerbner, George (1988): Violence and Terror in the Mass Media: An Annotated Bibliography. (Bibliographies and Indexes in Sociology, No. 13). New York: Greenwood Press. Simons, Greg (2010): Mass Media and Modern Warfare: Reporting on the Russian War on Terrorism. Farnham: Ashgate. Smucker, Philip (2004): Al Qaeda's Great Escape: The Military and the Media on Terror's Trail. Washington: Potomac Books. Spencer, Alexander (2010): The Tabloid Terrorist: The Predicative Construction of New Terrorism in the Media. Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan. Steinseifer, Martin (2011): "Terrorismus" zwischen Ereignis und Diskurs: Zur Pragmatik von TextBild-Zusammenstellungen in Printmedien der 1970er-Jahre. Berlin: De Gruyter. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1515/9783110229387 S14 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Stern, Tobias (2003): Der "11. September" in deutschen und koreanischen Medien: Eine vergleichende Inhaltsanalyse überregionaler Tageszeitungen. Hamburg: Deutsches Übersee-Institut. Steuter, Erin; Wills, Deborah (2008): At War with Metaphor: Media, Propaganda, and Racism in the War on Terror. Lanham: Lexington Books. Sultan, Khalid (2011): Terrorism, Media and Pakistan: A Perspective on the Effects Paradigm. Saarbrücken: LAP LAMBERT Academic Publishing. Takacs, Stacy (2012): Terrorism TV: Popular Entertainment in Post-9/11 America. (CultureAmerica). Lawrence: University Press of Kansas. Tasista, Michele M. (2002, April): Global Media and Public Affairs Communications in a New Era of Defense: The War on Terrorism. (Master's Thesis, University of Colorado, Boulder, U.S.). URL: http://ics-www.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/2080/tasista.pdf Taylor, Robert W. et al. (2005): Digital Crime and Digital Terrorism. Upper Saddle River: Prentice Hall. Tinnes, Judith (2010, May): Internetnutzung islamistischer Terror- und Insurgentengruppen unter besonderer Berücksichtigung von medialen Geiselnahmen im Irak, Afghanistan, Pakistan und Saudi-Arabien. (Doctoral Dissertation, Universität des Saarlandes, Saarbrücken, Germany). URL: http://scidok.sulb.uni-saarland.de/volltexte/2010/3117/ [Identical Book Version:] (2010, August): Jihad @ Web: Eine Untersuchung der Internetnutzung von Islamisten mit besonderer Berücksichtigung von medialen Geiselnahmen. Saarbrücken: Südwestdeutscher Verlag für Hochschulschriften. Tuman, Joseph S. (2003): Communicating Terror: The Rhetorical Dimensions of Terrorism. Thousand Oaks: SAGE. Turton, Deborah Ann (2001): Terror and Terrorism: Pleasure, Violence and the Aesthetic, 17571854. (Doctoral Dissertation, Oxford University, Oxford, UK). Oxford: Oxford University. S15 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Vanhala, Helena (2011): The Depiction of Terrorists in Blockbuster Hollywood Films, 1980-2001: An Analytical Study. Jefferson: MacFarland. Vecsey, Christopher (2011): Following 9/11: Religion Coverage in the New York Times. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press. Verma, R. N. (2011): Internet Terrorism: New Trends and Challenges. New Delhi: Navyug Books International. Verton, Dan (2003): Black Ice: The Invisible Threat of Cyber-Terrorism. Emeryville: McGrawHill/Osborne. Wagner-Pacifici, Robin (1986): The Moro Morality Play: Terrorism as Social Drama. Chicago: The University of Chicago Press. Weimann, Gabriel (2006): Terror on the Internet: The New Arena, the New Challenges. Washington: United States Institute of Peace Press. Weimann, Gabriel; Winn, Conrad (1994): The Theater of Terror: Mass Media and International Terrorism. New York: Longman. Wilson, Clay (2009): Computer Attack and Cyberterrorism. New York: NOVA Science Publishers. S16 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Articles #A Abbasi, Ahmed; Chen, Hsinchun (2005): Applying Authorship Analysis to Extremist-Group Web Forum Messages. IEEE Intelligent Systems, 20(5) (special issue on AI for Homeland Security), 67-75. URL: http://ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/Abbasi%20Authorship%202005%20IEEEIS %20Final.pdf Abbasi, Ahmed; Chen, Hsinchun (2008): Analysis of Affect Intensities in Extremist Group Forums. In: Hsinchun Chen et al. (Eds.): Terrorism Informatics: Knowledge Management and Data Mining for Homeland Security. (Integrated Series in Information Systems, Vol. 18). New York: Springer, 285-307. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-0-387-71613-8_14 Abdel-Fadil, Mona (2011): The Islam-Online Crisis: A Battle of Wasatiyya vs. Salafi Ideologies? CyberOrient, 5(1). URL: http://www.cyberorient.net/article.do?articleId=6239 Abdel-Fadil, Mona (2012, September): Islam Offline: Living "The Message" behind the Screens. Contemporary Islam. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s11562-0120227-6 Abdulla, Rasha A. (2005): What they Post: Arabic-Language Message Boards after the September 11 Attacks. In: Paul D. Driscoll; Michael B. Salwen; Bruce Garrison (Eds.): Online News and the Public. Mahwah: Lawrence Erlbaum, 279-302. Abdulla, Rasha A. (2007): Islam, Jihad, and Terrorism in Post-9/11 Arabic Discussion Boards. Journal of Computer-Mediated Communication, 12(3), 1063-1081. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1083-6101.2007.00363.x URL: http://www.it.uu.se/edu/course/homepage/avint/vt09/2.pdf S17 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Abel, Scott; Filak, Vincent F. (2005): A Quick View of Terrorism: Editorial Cartoons and 9/11. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 161-174. Abel, Scott; Miller, Andrea; Filak, Vincent F. (2005): TV Coverage of Breaking News in First Hours of Tragedy. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 105-116. Abeyratne, Ruwantissa (2011): Cyber Terrorism and Aviation – National and International Responses. Journal of Transportation Security, 4(4), 337-349. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s12198011-0074-3 Abrahamian, Ervand (2003): The US Media, Huntington and September 11. Third World Quarterly, 24(3), 529-544. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0143659032000084456 URL: http://www.hks.harvard.edu/fs/pnorris/Acrobat/Abrahamian_Clash.pdf Abrams, Josh (2012): The Ubiquitous Orange Jumpsuit: Staging Iconic Images and the Production of the Commons. In: Jenny S. Spencer (Ed.): Political and Protest Theatre after 9/11: Patriotic Dissent. (Routledge Advances in Theatre and Performance Studies, Vol. 21). New York: Routledge, 38-52. Abubakar, Abdullahi Tasiu (2012, April): The Media, Politics and Boko Blitz. Journal of African Media Studies, 4(1), 97-110. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jams.4.1.97_7 Ächtler, Norman (2010): "Subjektive Momentaufnahmen" – Medien- und Bildkritik in "Deutschland im Herbst" (1978). In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 51-98. Ächtler, Norman; Gansel, Carsten (2010): Ikonographie des Terrors? Vom Erinnern über Bilder zum Erinnern der Bilder im künstlerischen Umgang mit dem Terrorismus der 1970er Jahre. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 9-20. S18 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Achugar, Mariana (2004, May): The Events and Actors of 11 September 2001 as Seen from Uruguay: Analysis of Daily Newspaper Editorials. Discourse Society, 15(2-3), 291-320. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0957926504041021 Adams, Matt; Burke, Penny Jane (2006): Recollections of September 11 in Three English Villages: Identifications and Self-Narrations. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 983-1003. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761461 Addicott, Jeffrey F. (2007): The Emerging Threat of Cyberterrorism. In: Suleyman Ozeren; Ismail Dincer Gunes; Diab M. Al-Badayneh (Eds.): Understanding Terrorism: Analysis of Sociological and Psychological Aspects. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 22). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 259-269. Adelman, Rebecca A. (2012): Sowing the Sea: Visualizing Terror, Time, and Osama bin Laden. Continuum, 26(5), 767-782. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304312.2012.664118 Ahmad, Aijaz (2003): Contextualizing Conflict – The US "War on Terrorism". In: Daya Kishan Thussu; Des Freedman (Eds.): War and the Media: Reporting Conflict 24/7. London: SAGE, 15-27. Ahmad, Fauzia (2006): British Muslim Perceptions and Opinions on News Coverage of September 11. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 961-982. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761479 Ahmad, Rabiah; Yunos, Zahri (2012, July): The Application of Mixed Method in Developing a Cyber Terrorism Framework. Journal of Information Security, 3(3), 209-214. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4236/jis.2012.33026 URL: http://www.scirp.org/journal/PaperInformation.aspx?paperID=21342&JournalID=175 Ahmad, Rabiah et al. (2012, July): Perception on Cyber Terrorism: A Focus Group Discussion Approach. Journal of Information Security, 3(3), 231-237. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4236/jis.2012.33029 URL: http://www.scirp.org/journal/PaperInformation.aspx?paperID=21346&JournalID=175 S19 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ahmed, Syed Toufeeq; Bhindwale, Ruchi; Davulcu, Hasan (2009): Tracking Terrorism News Threads by Extracting Event Signatures. In: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE) (Ed.): IEEE International Conference on Intelligence and Security Informatics, ISI 2009, Dallas, Texas, USA, June 8-11, 2009: Proceedings. Atlanta: IEEE, 182-184. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/ISI.2009.5137296 Akgün, Birol; Gökçe, Orhan (2010): September 11 in the Turkish Media. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 254-260. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Alali, Andy O. (2003): Media, Violence and Terrorism in Africa. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 93-100. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Aldoory, Linda; Van Dyke, Mark A. (2006, June): The Roles of Perceived "Shared" Involvement and Information Overload in Understanding how Audiences Make Meaning of News about Bioterrorism. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 83(2), 346-361. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900608300208 Aldrich, Daniel P. (2012, December): Radio as the Voice of God: Peace and Tolerance Radio Programming’s Impact on Norms. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(6), 34-60. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/230 Alexander, Dean C. (2011): Student Projects Involving the Analysis of Web Sites of Extremist and Extremist-Affiliated Groups in the United States. Journal of Applied Security Research, 6(2), 184-195. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19361610.2011.552004 Alexander, Yonah (1980): Section I: Terrorism and the Media: Some Observations. Terrorism, 3(4), 179-183. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108008435455 S20 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Alexander, Yonah; Finger, Seymour Maxwell (1979): Terrorism and the Media. Terrorism, 2(1-2), 55-137. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576107908435428 Ali, Ghayda Al (2011, November): Hero or Terrorist? A Comparative Analysis of Arabic and Western Media Depictions of the Execution of Saddam. Discourse & Communication, 5(4), 301335. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750481311427085 Ali, Imtiaz (2009, February): The Taliban’s Versatile Spokesman: A Profile of Muslim Khan. CTC Sentinel, 2(2), 6-8. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2010/06/Vol2Iss2Art3.pdf Alkazemi, Mariam F. (2012): Social Construction of Reality Television: An Analysis of Print Journalism Coverage of All-American Muslim. Middle East Media Educator, 1(12), 31-43. URL: http://ro.uow.edu.au/meme/vol1/iss2/4 Allagui, Ilhem; Najjar, Abeer (2011): Framing Political Islam in Popular Egyptian Cinema. Middle East Journal of Culture and Communication, 4(2), 203-224. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1163/187398611X571373 Al-Lami, Mina; Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2012): Mobilisation and Violence in the New Media Ecology: The Dua Khalil Aswad and Camilia Shehata Cases. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 5(2), 237-256. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539153.2012.692509 Allan, Stuart (2011): Reweaving the Internet: Online News of September 11. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 169-190. Allen, Lori A. (2009, February): Martyr Bodies in the Media: Human Rights, Aesthetics, and the Politics of Immediation in the Palestinian Intifada. American Ethnologist, 36(1), 161-180. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1548-1425.2008.01100.x S21 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Al-Marashi, Ibrahim (2004): Iraq's Hostage Crisis: Kidnappings, Mass Media and the Iraqi Insurgency. Middle East Review of International Affairs, 8(4), 1-11. URL: http://www.gloriacenter.org/2004/12/al-marashi-2004-12-01 Al‐Rizzo, Hasan M. (2008): The Undeclared Cyberspace War between Hezbollah and Israel. Contemporary Arab Affairs, 1(3), 391-405. http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17550910802163889 Al-Rodhan, Nayef R. F. (2006, June): Editorial of Policy Brief on Information Technology, Terrorism, and Global Security. In: Nayef R. F. Al-Rodhan (Ed.): Policy Briefs on the Transcultural Aspects of Security and Stability. (Geneva Centre for Security Policy). Zürich: LIT Verlag, 183186. URL: http://www.sustainablehistory.com/articles/Editorial-1.pdf al-Saud, Bader S. M. (2009, November): Friend or Foe? Saudi Arabia in the British Press post 9/11. Journal of Arab & Muslim Media Research, 2(1-2), 39-51. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jammr.2.1and2.39/1 Al-Shishani, Murad Batal (2010, January 14): The Radical Source for Non-Arabic Speaking Muslims: Anwar al-Awlaki. TerrorismMonitor, 8(2), 3-4. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_008_2_01.pdf Al-Shishani, Murad Batal (2010, February 4): Taking al-Qaeda’s Jihad to Facebook. TerrorismMonitor, 8(5), 3-4. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_008_5_01.pdf Al-Shishani, Murad Batal (2010, February 17): "How I Joined Jihad": Nigerian Bomber Umar Farouk Abdulmutallab in his own Words (Part One). TerrorismMonitor, 9(7), 5-6. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_009_7_01.pdf Al-Shishani, Murad Batal (2010, March 3): "How I Joined Jihad": Nigerian Bomber Umar Farouk Abdulmutallab in his own Words (Part Two). TerrorismMonitor, 9(9), 5-6. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_009_9_01.pdf Al-Sumait, Fahed; Lingle, Colin; Domke, David (2009): Terrorism's Cause and Cure: The Rhetorical Regime of Democracy in the US and UK. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 2(1), 7-25. DOI: S22 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150902752432 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/17539150902752432 Altheide, David L. (1987): Format and Symbols in TV Coverage of Terrorism in the United States and Great Britain. International Studies Quarterly, 31(2), 161-176. Altheide, David L. (2004, August): Consuming Terrorism. Symbolic Interaction, 27(3), 289-308. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1525/si.2004.27.3.289 URL: http://www.provsoc.org/Altheide, %20Consuming%20Terrorism.pdf Altheide, David L. (2006): The Mass Media, Crime and Terrorism. Journal of International Criminal Justice, 4(5), 982-997. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/jicj/mql061 Altheide, David L. (2007, August): The Mass Media and Terrorism. Discourse & Communication, 1(3), 287-308. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750481307079207 Altheide, David L. (2009): Terrorism Programming. Critical Studies on Terrorism. 2(1), 65-80. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150902752770 Altheide, David L. (2009, April): Moral Panic: From Sociological Concept to Public Discourse. Crime Media Culture, 5(1), 79-99. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1741659008102063 Altheide, David L. (2010): Fear, Terrorism, and Popular Culture. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 11-22. Aly, Anne (2007, Autumn): Australian Muslim Responses to the Discourse on Terrorism in the Australian Popular Media. The Australian Journal of Social Issues, 42(1), 27-40. Aly, Anne (2009): The Terrorists' Audience: A Model of Internet Radicalisation. Journal of Australian Professional Intelligence Officers, 17(1), 3-19. S23 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Aly, Anne (2010): The Internet as Ideological Battleground. In: Security Research Centre, Edith Cowan University (Ed.): Proceedings of the 1st Australian Counter Terrorism Conference, Edith Cowan University, Duxton Hotel, Perth, Western Australia, November 30 – December 2, 2010, 1-6. URL: http://igneous.scis.ecu.edu.au/proceedings/2010/actc/aly.pdf Aly, Anne (2010, February): Shifting Positions to the Media Discourse on Terrorism: Critical Points in Audience Members' Meaning-Making Experiences. Media International Australia, 134, 3145. Aly, Anne (2012, June): An Audience-Focused Approach to Examining Religious Extremism Online. Australian Journal of Communication, 39(1), 1-16. Amble, John Curtis (2012): Combating Terrorism in the New Media Environment. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 35(5), 339-353. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2012.666819 Amena Consulting (2005, May 26): Electronic Propaganda of the Iraqi Insurgency. Prepared on 26 May 2005 for NCCI. URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/2645/Electronic_Propaganda_Study.pdf Amidror, Yaakov (2008): The Internet and Terrorism. In: Cecilia S. Gal; Paul B. Kantor; Bracha Shapira (Eds.): Security Informatics and Terrorism: Patrolling the Web: Social and Technical Problems of Detecting and Controlling Terrorists' Use of the World Wide Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 15). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 3-7. Amin-Khan, Tariq (2012): New Orientalism, Securitisation and the Western Media's Incendiary Racism. Third World Quarterly, 33(9), 1595-1610. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01436597.2012.720831 Amoore, Louise (2007, June): Vigilant Visualities: The Watchful Politics of the War on Terror. Security Dialogue, 38(2), 215-232. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0967010607078526 URL: http://www.geography.dur.ac.uk/Projects/Portals/100/Downloads/Amoore%20Vigilant %20Visualities.pdf S24 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Amrita, Rai (2011): Terrorism: Role of Media and its Impact. The Asian Man, 5(1), 86-90. Andén-Papadopoulus, Kari (2003): The Trauma of Representation: Visual Culture, Photojournalism and the September 11 Terrorist Attack. Nordicom Review, 24(2), 89-104. URL: http://www.nordicom.gu.se/common/publ_pdf/32_089-104.pdf Anderson, Alison G. (2003): Risk, Terrorism, and the Internet. Knowledge, Technology & Policy, 16(2), 24-33. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s12130-003-1023-7 Anderson, Sean K. (1998): Warnings Versus Alarms: Terrorist Threat Analysis Applied to the Iranian State‐Run Media. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 21(3), 277-305. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576109808436069 Anderson, Terri (1993, June): Terrorism and Censorship: The Media in Chains. Journal of International Affairs, 47(1), 127-136. Andre, Virginie (2012): "Neojihadism" and YouTube: Patani Militant Propaganda Dissemination and Radicalization. Asian Security, 8(1), 27-53. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14799855.2012.669207 URL: http://www.pataniforum.com/admin/jquery/ckfinder/userfiles/files/PATANI%20YOUTUBE %20ASIAN%20SECURITY.pdf Andrejevic, Mark (2011): "Securitainment" in the Post-9/11 Era. Continuum, 25(2), 165-175. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304312.2011.553938 Anker, Elisabeth (2005): Villains, Victims and Heroes: Melodrama, Media, and September 11. Journal of Communication, 55(1), 22-37. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.14602466.2005.tb02656.x Annan, Lord (1990): Do Broadcasters Owe a Duty to the State? Terrorism and Political Violence, 2(4), 529-543. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559008427081 S25 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Annandale, David (2010): Avatars of Destruction: Cheerleading and Deconstructing the "War on Terror" in Video Games. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 97-106. Anzalone, Christopher (2010, August 25): From "Martyrdom" Videos to Jihadi Journalism in Somalia: The Rapid Evolution of Harakat al-Shabab al-Mujahideen’s Multimedia. Informed Comment. URL: http://www.juancole.com/2010/08/anzalone-from-%E2%80%98martyrdom %E2%80%99-videos-to-jihadi-journalism-in-somalia.html Anzalone, Christopher (2010, October 25): Al Qaeda's Media Plays Follow the Leader. Foreign Policy (The AfPak Channel). URL: http://afpak.foreignpolicy.com/posts/2010/10/25/al_qaedas_media_plays_follow_the_leader Anzalone, Christopher (2010, November): Zachary Chesser: An American, Grassroots Jihadist Strategist on Raising the Next Generation of Al-Qaeda Supporters. Perspectives on Terrorism, 4(5), 22-30. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/121 Anzalone, Christopher (2011, June 17): The Pakistani Taliban's Media Jihad. Foreign Policy (The AfPak Channel). URL: http://afpak.foreignpolicy.com/posts/2011/06/17/the_pakistani_talibans_media_jihad Anzalone, Christopher (2012, June): The Evolution of an American Jihadi: The Case of Omar Hammami. CTC Sentinel, 5(6), 10-13. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2012/06/CTCSentinel-Vol5Iss6.pdf Anzalone, Christopher (2012, October): Kenya’s Muslim Youth Center and Al-Shabab’s East African Recruitment. CTC Sentinel, 5(10), 9-13. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2012/10/CTCSentinel-Vol5Iss10.pdf Aouragh, Miriyam (2008, November): Everyday Resistance on the Internet: The Palestinian Context. Journal of Arab & Muslim Media Research, 1(2), 109-130. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jammr.1.2.109_1 S26 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Apel, Dora (2008): Technologies of War, Media, and Dissent in the Post 9/11 Work of Krzysztof Wodiczko. Oxford Art Journal, 31(2), 261-280. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/oxartj/kcn015 Apitzsch, Julia (2010): The Art of Terror – The Terror of Art: DeLillo's Still Life of 9/11, Giorgio Morandi, Gerhard Richter, and Performance Art. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 93-110. Archetti, Cristina (2004): Are the Media Globalising Political Discourse? The War On Terrorism Case Study. International Journal of the Humanities, 2(2), 1301-1308. URL: http://usir.salford.ac.uk/2733/ Archetti, Cristina (2008, December): News Coverage of 9/11 and the Demise of the Media Flows, Globalization and Localization Hypotheses. International Communication Gazette, 70(6), 463485. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048508096143 URL: http://www.uk.sagepub.com/mcquail6/Online%20readings/10a%20Archetti.pdf Archetti, Cristina (2010, October): Comparing International Coverage of 9/11: Towards an Interdisciplinary Explanation of the Construction of News. Journalism, 11(5), 567-588. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1464884910373536 URL: http://usir.salford.ac.uk/12430/1/Archetti_2010._Comparing_International_Coverage_of_9.11._ Journalism_-_Theory,_Practice_and_Criticism.pdf Ariely, Gil (2008): Knowledge Management, Terrorism, and Cyber Terrorism. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 7-16. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-991-5.ch002 Armstrong, Hannah (2011, July 18): Analyzing AQIM Jihad Recruitment Propaganda. al-Wasat. URL: http://thewasat.wordpress.com/2011/07/18/analyzing-aqim-jihad-recruitment-propaganda Arora, Ashug; Arora, Guljit K. (2011, March): Globalising India and Cyber Terrorism. Economic Affairs, 56(1), 5-8. S27 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Arquilla, John; Ronfeldt, David (1999): The Advent of Netwar: Analytic Background. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 22(3), 193-206. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/105761099265720 Arquilla, John; Ronfeldt, David (2001): The Advent of Netwar (Revisited). In: John Arquilla; David Ronfeldt (Eds.): Networks and Netwars: The Future of Terror, Crime, and Militancy. RAND Monograph Report MR-1382. Santa Monica: RAND Corporation, 1-25. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/monograph_reports/MR1382.html Arquilla, John; Ronfeldt, David (2002): Netwar Revisited: The Fight for the Future Continues. Low Intensity Conflict & Law Enforcement, 11(2-3), 178-189. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0966284042000279984 Arquilla, John; Ronfeldt, David (2005): Netwar Revisited: The Fight for the Future Continues. In: Robert J. Bunker (Ed.): Networks, Terrorism and Global Insurgency. London: Routledge, 8-19. Arquilla, John; Ronfeldt, David; Zanini, Michele (1999): Networks, Netwar, and Information-Age Terrorism. In: Ian O. Lesser et al.: Countering the New Terrorism. RAND Monograph Report, MR-989. Santa Monica: RAND, 39-84. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/monograph_reports/MR989.html Asal, Victor; Harwood, Paul (2008): Search Engines: Terrorism’s Killer App. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 31(7), 641-654. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100802149675 Ashour, Omar (2010, December): Online De-Radicalization? Countering Violent Extremist Narratives: Message, Messenger and Media Strategy. Perspectives on Terrorism, 4(6), 15-19. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/128 Asogwa, Chika Euphemia; Iyere, John I.; Attah, Chris O. (2012, July): The Mass Media Reportage of Crimes and Terrorists Activities: The Nigerian Experience. Asian Culture and History, 4(2), 175-181. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.5539/ach.v4n2p175 URL: http://www.ccsenet.org/journal/index.php/ach/article/view/18474 S28 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Atran, Scott (2005, March 23): The "Virtual Hand" of Jihad. TerrorismMonitor, 3(10). URL: http://www.jamestown.org/programs/gta/single/? tx_ttnews[tt_news]=484&tx_ttnews[backPid]=180&no_cache=1 Atran, Scott (2006): A Failure of Imagination (Intelligence, WMDs, and "Virtual Jihad"). Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 29(3), 285-300. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100600564166 URL: http://sitemaker.umich.edu/satran/files/atran-sct-0406.pdf Atta, Dale Van (1998, Fall): Carbombs and Cameras: The Need for Responsible Media Coverage of Terrorism. Harvard International Review, 20(4), 66-70. Atwater, Tony (1987): Terrorism on the Evening News: An Analysis of Coverage of the TWA Hostage Crisis on "NBC Nightly News". Political Communication, 4(1), 17-24. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962805 Atwater, Tony (1989): News Format in Network Evening News Coverage of the TWA Hijacking. Journal of Broadcasting & Electronic Media, 33(3), 293-304. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08838158909364082 Atwater, Tony; Ku, Linlin (1991): News Time Allocation in Network Crisis Coverage: The Case of TWA Flight 847. Political Communication, 8(4), 247-256. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1991.9962926 Augusteijn, Joost (2012): Getting the IRA to the Table: Ending the Irish War of Independence 192021. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 137-156. Awan, Akil N. (2007): Radicalization on the Internet? The Virtual Propagation of Jihadist Media and its Effects. The RUSI Journal, 152(3), 76-81. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03071840701472331 S29 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Awan, Akil N. (2007): Virtual Jihadist Media: Function, Legitimacy and Radicalizing Efficacy. European Journal of Cultural Studies, 10(3), 389-408. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1367549407079713 Awan, Akil N. (2009, November): Success of the Meta-Narrative: How Jihadists Maintain Legitimacy. CTC Sentinel, 2(11), 6-8. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinel-Vol2Iss11.pdf Awan, Akil N. (2010, May): The Virtual Jihad: An Increasingly Legitimate Form of Warfare. CTC Sentinel, 3(5), 10-13. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinel-Vol3Iss5.pdf Awan, Akil N., Al-Lami, Mina (2009): Al-Qa'ida's Virtual Crisis. The RUSI Journal, 154(1), 56-64. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03071840902818605 Azam, Muhammad (2008, October-December): Radicalization and Media: Who Influences whom and how in Pakistan? Conflict and Peace Studies, 1(1). URL: http://sanpips.com/download.php?f=156.pdf Azman, Aziemah Binte (2012, February): Al Qaeda’s Internet Strategy a Failure? Online Jihadists Disprove. Counter Terrorist Trends & Analysis (CTTA), 4(2), 1-4. URL: http://www.pvtr.org/pdf/CTTA/2012/CTTA-February12.pdf #B Badr, Hoda (2004): Islamic Identity Re‐Covered: Muslim Women after September 11th. Culture and Religion, 5(3), 321-338. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0143830042000294406 Baehr, Dirk (2012): Salafistische Propaganda im Internet: Von der reinen Mission bis zum globalen Jihad – Die wesentlichen ideentheoretischen Unterschiede unter den salafistischen Strömungen in Deutschland. Magdeburger Journal zur Sicherheitsforschung, 2(4), 236-269. URL: http://www.sicherheitsforschung-magdeburg.de/uploads/journal/MJS-016.pdf S30 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Baelo-Allué, Sonia (2011): The Depiction of 9/11 in Literature: The Role of Images and Intermedial References. Radical History Review, 2011(111), 184-193. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/01636545-1268794 URL: http://rhr.dukejournals.org/content/2011/111/184.full.pdf Bahador, Babak (2011, April): Did the Global War on Terror End the CNN Effect? Media, War & Conflict, 4(1), 37-54. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635210396123 Bailey, Timothy D.; Grimaila, Michael R. (2006): Running the Blockade: Information Technology, Terrorism, and the Transformation of Islamic Mass Culture. Terrorism and Political Violence, 18(4), 523-543. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550600880518 Baines, Paul R. et al. (2010): The Dark Side of Political Marketing: Islamist Propaganda, Reversal Theory and British Muslims. European Journal of Marketing, 44(3-4), 478-495. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1108/03090561011020543 URL: https://dspace.lib.cranfield.ac.uk/bitstream/1826/7130/1/The_Dark_Side_of_Political_Marketin g.pdf Baiocchi, Gianpaolo (2002, May): Media Coverage of 9-11 in Brazil. Television & New Media, 3(2), 183-189. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/152747640200300210 Baker, Kieran (2003): Conflict and Control: The War in Afghanistan and the 24-Hour News Cycle. In: Daya Kishan Thussu; Des Freedman (Eds.): War and the Media: Reporting Conflict 24/7. London: SAGE, 241-247. Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2006, September 8): The Evolution of Jihadi Electronic Counter-Measures. TerrorismMonitor, 4(17). URL: http://www.jamestown.org/single/? no_cache=1&tx_ttnews[tt_news]=894 Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2007, March 30): The New Issue of Technical Mujahid, a Training Manual for Jihadis. TerrorismMonitor, 5(6). URL: http://www.jamestown.org/programs/gta/single/? tx_ttnews[tt_news]=1057&tx_ttnews[backPid]=182&no_cache=1 S31 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2007, September 27): GIMF Develops Defensive and Offensive Software for Jihadi Operations. TerrorismMonitor, 5(18). URL: http://www.jamestown.org/programs/gta/single/? tx_ttnews[tt_news]=4438&tx_ttnews[backPid]=182&no_cache=1 Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2008, September 18): Watching the Watchers: A Jihadi View of Terrorism Analysis Websites. Terrorism Focus, 5(33). URL: http://www.jamestown.org/programs/gta/single/? tx_ttnews[tt_news]=5159&tx_ttnews[backPid]=246&no_cache=1 Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2008, November 26): Iraq’s Islamic Mujahideen Profiled by Jihadi Websites: Part One. Terrorism Focus, 5(40), 3-6. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/tf_005_040_01.pdf Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2008, December 3): Iraq’s Islamic Mujahideen Profiled by Jihadi Websites: Part Two. Terrorism Focus, 5(41), 3-7. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/tf_005_041_01.pdf Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2009, April 24): Islamic State of Iraq Brings Internet Propaganda to the Streets. TerrorismMonitor, 7(10), 4-5. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_007_01.pdf Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2009, April 30): Countering the Counter-Terrorists: Senior Jihadis Offer Advice on Security Techniques. TerrorismMonitor, 7(11), 6-9. http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_007_07.pdf Bakier, Abdul Hameed (2010, May): Internet Jihadists React to the Deaths of Al-Qa`ida’s Leaders in Iraq. CTC Sentinel, 3(5), 13-15. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinel-Vol3Iss5.pdf Ball, Mike (2012): Documenting Acts of Cruelty: The Practice of Violent Criminals Making Visual Records of their Crimes. Visual Anthropology, 25(5), 421-438. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08949468.2012.720206 S32 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ballard, James David; Hornik, Joseph G.; Mckenzie, Douglas (2002, February): Technological Facilitation of Terrorism: Definitional, Legal, and Policy Issues. American Behavioral Scientist, 45(6), 989-1016. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764202045006005 Balnaves, Mark; Anne, Aly (2012): Media, 9/11, and Fear: A National Survey of Australian Community Responses to Images of Terror. Australian Journal of Communication, 34(3), 101-112. URL: http://espace.library.curtin.edu.au:80/R?func=dbin-jump-full&local_base=gen01era02&object_id=169304 Banaji, Shakuntala; Al-Ghabban, Ammar (2006): "Neutrality Comes from Inside us": British-Asian and Indian Perspectives on Television News after 11 September. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 1005-1026. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761495 Bandyopadhyay, Tridib (2011): Understanding Optimal Investment in Cyber Terrorism: A Decision Theoretic Approach. International Journal of Cyber Warfare and Terrorism, 1(2), 18-34. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/ijcwt.2011040103 URL: http://www.irmainternational.org/viewtitle/64311 Banisar, David (2009, July): Speaking of Terror: A Survey of the Effects of Counter-Terrorism Legislation on Freedom of the Media in Europe. International Journal of Civil Society Law, 7(3), 33-77. URL: http://www.iccsl.org/pubs/09-07_IJCSL.pdf Banita, Georgiana (2011): 9/11 Trauma and Visual Witnessing in Helen Schulman's a Day at the Beach. Critique: Studies in Contemporary Fiction, 53(1), 1-15. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00111619.2010.511317 Banita, Georgiana (2012): Middle Hours: Terrorism and Narrative Emplotment in Andre Dubus III’s The Garden of Last Days. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 213-234. S33 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Banlaoi, Rommel C. (2009): Media and Terrorism in the Philippines: The Rajah Solaiman Islamic Movement. Journal of Policing, Intelligence and Counter Terrorism, 4(1), 64-75. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/18335300.2009.9686924 Barclay, Jack (2010, September): Challenging the Influence of Anwar Al-Awlaki. ICSR Developments in Radicalisation and Political Violence Paper Series. URL: http://www.icsr.info/paper/challenging-the-influence-of-anwar-al-awlaki Barfar, Arash; Zolfaghar, Kiyana; Mohammadi, Shahriar (2011, April): A Framework for Cyber War against International Terrorism. International Journal of Internet Technology and Secured Transactions, 3(1), 29-39. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1504/IJITST.2011.039677 URL: http://inderscience.metapress.com/content/v53g22r206118g61 Barker, Michael J. (2008, January): Democracy or Polyarchy? US-Funded Media Developments in Afghanistan and Iraq post 9/11. Media, Culture & Society, 30(1), 109-130. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0163443708088615 Barnard-Wills, David; Ashenden, Debi (2012, March): Securing Virtual Space: Cyber War, Cyber Terror, and Risk. Space and Culture, 15(2), 110-123. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1206331211430016 Barnhurst, Kevin G. (1991, December): Contemporary Terrorism in Peru: Sendero Luminous and the Media. Journal of Communication, 41(4), 75-89. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.14602466.1991.tb02332.x Barzilai-Nahon, Karine; Barzilai, Gad (2005): Cultured Technology: The Internet and Religious Fundamentalism. The Information Society, 21(1), 25-40. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01972240590895892 URL: http://hevra.haifa.ac.il/~soc/lecturers/gustavo/files/631306061632.pdf Basiouny, Dalia (2012): Descent as Dissent: Arab American Theatrical Responses to 9/11. In: Jenny S. Spencer (Ed.): Political and Protest Theatre after 9/11: Patriotic Dissent. (Routledge Advances in Theatre and Performance Studies, Vol. 21). New York: Routledge, 143-155. S34 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Bassiouni, M. Cherif (1982, June): Media Coverage of Terrorism: The Law and the Public. Journal of Communication, 32(2), 128-143. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1460-2466.1982.tb00501.x Basurto, Carmen Gurruchaga (2003): To Die for being a Journalist in the Basque Region. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 87-88. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Bauer, Karin (2012, September): Ulrike Meinhof and the Red Army Faction: Performing Terrorism. German History. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/gerhis/ghs086 Baukus, Robert A.; Strohm, Susan M. (2002): Gender Differences in Perceptions of Media Reports of the Gulf and Afghan Conflicts. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 275-288. Baumann, Cordia (2010): Die RAF als Abenteuer: Der Bonnie-und-Clyde-Mythos: Die Romantisierung der RAF in Film und Literatur. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 245-268. Baumert, Thomas (2009): Terrorism, News Flows and Stock Markets. In: Harry Ward Richardson; Peter Gordon; James Elliott Moore II (Eds.): Global Business and the Terrorist Threat. Cheltenham: Edward Elgar, 119-135. Baybars-Hawks, Banu (2009): Long Term Terrorism in Turkey: The Government, Media and Public Opinion. In: Shona Hill; Shilinka Smith (Eds.): There be Dragons Out There: Confronting Fear, Horror and Terror. (At the Interface). Oxford: Inter-Disciplinary Press, 63-74. URL: http://www.inter-disciplinary.net/publishing/id-press/ebooks/there-be-dragons-out-there Baybars-Hawks, Banu (2009): Societies under Siege: Media, Government, Politics and Citizens’ Freedoms in an Age of Terrorism. In: Shona Hill; Shilinka Smith (Eds.): There be Dragons Out S35 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement There: Confronting Fear, Horror and Terror. (At the Interface). Oxford: Inter-Disciplinary Press, 121-130. URL: http://www.inter-disciplinary.net/publishing/id-press/ebooks/there-bedragons-out-there Baylouny, Anne Marie (2006, October): Al-Manar and Alhurra: Competing Satellite Stations and Ideologies. The Marshall Center Occasional Paper Series, No. 2. URL: http://www.marshallcenter.org/mcpublicweb/MCDocs/files/College/F_Publications/occPapers/ occ-paper_2-en.pdf Baylouny, Anne Marie (2009, Fall): Not your Father's Islamist TV: Changing Programming on Hizbullah's al-Manar. Arab Media & Society, 9. URL: http://www.arabmediasociety.com/? article=728 Bearfield, Domonic A. (2008): The Demonization of Patronage: Folk Devils, Moral Panics and the Boston Globe's Coverage of the Terrorist Attacks of 9-11. International Journal of Public Administration, 31(5), 515-534. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01900690701624139 Beck, Sandra (2010): Leander Scholz’ "Rosenfest" (2001) – Der nachgeborene Autor und die Geschichtsbemächtigung. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 269-294. Becker, Carmen (2009): "Gaining Knowledge": Salafi Activism in German and Dutch Online Forums. Masaryk University Journal of Law and Technology, 3(1), 79-98. URL: http://www.digitalislam.eu/article.do?articleId=2348 Becker, Carmen (2009). "Zurück zum Quellcode": Salafistische Wissenspraktiken im Internet. Inamo, 57, 37-42. Becker, Jörg (2007): Media, Terrorism, and a Culture of Peace. Media Development, 3/2007. URL: http://www.waccglobal.org/en/20073-media-and-terror/466-Media-terrorism-and-a-culture-ofpeace.html S36 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Becker-Blease, Kathryn A.; Finkelhor, David; Turner, Heather (2008): Media Exposure Predicts Children's Reactions to Crime and Terrorism. Journal of Trauma & Dissociation, 9(2), 225248. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15299730802048652 URL: http://www.unh.edu/ccrc/pdf/CV102.pdf Beggs, Christopher (2007): Cyber-Terrorism in Australia. In: Marian Quigley (Ed.): Encyclopedia of Information Ethics and Security. Hershey: IGI Global, 108-113. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-987-8.ch017 Begleiter, Ralph (2002, Winter): Whose Media are we? Notions of Media and Nationality Challenged by the "War on Terrorism". The Brown Journal of World Affairs, 8(2), 17-26. URL: http://www.watsoninstitute.org/bjwa/archive/8.2/911/Begleiter.pdf Behm, Allan J. (1991): Terrorism, Violence against the Public, and the Media: The Australian Approach. Political Communication, 8(4), 233-246. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1991.9962925 Behm, Allan J. (1991): Terrorism, Violence against the Public and the Media: The Australian Approach. Small Wars & Insurgencies, 2(3), 236-260. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09592319108423003 Bennett, Bruce (2008, October): Cinematic Perspectives on the "War on Terror": The Road to Guantánamo (2006) and Activist Cinema. New Cinemas: Journal of Contemporary Film, 6(2), 111-126. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/ncin.6.2.111/1 URL: http://eprints.lancs.ac.uk/26039 Bennett, Bruce (2010, December): Framing Terror: Cinema, Docudrama and the War on Terror. Studies in Documentary Film, 4(3), 209-225. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/sdf.4.3.209_1 Bensted, Georgina (2012): Hi Terrorist Financing and the Internet: Dot Com Danger. Information & Communications Technology Law, 21(3), 237-256. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13600834.2012.744222 S37 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ben-Yehuda, Nachman (2005): Terror, Media, and Moral Boundaries. International Journal of Comparative Sociology, 46(1-2), 33-53. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0020715205054469 URL: http://www.cjgsu.net/initiatives/TMMB%20-%20Ben-Yehuda.pdf Ben-Zedeff, Eviathar H. (2007): Media Coverage as Advertising. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 3-20. Ben-Zur, Hasida; Gil, Sharon; Shamshins, Yinon (2012, May): The Relationship between Exposure to Terror through the Media, Coping Strategies and Resources, and Distress and Secondary Traumatization. International Journal of Stress Management, 19(2), 132-150. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1037/a0027864 Berenger, Ralph D. (2010): Impact of 9/11 on the Middle East: Personal Reflections. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 227-240. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Berg, Carin (2012, October): Tunes of Religious Resistance? Understanding Hamas Music in a Conflict Context. Contemporary Islam, 6(3), 297-314. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s11562012-0219-6 Bergen, Peter et al. (2005): Al Qaeda's Media Strategy. In: Karen J. Greenberg (Ed.): Al Qaeda Now: Understanding Today's Terrorists. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 112-134. Bergin, Anthony et al. (2009, March 6): Countering Internet Radicalisation in Southeast Asia. ASPI Special Report Issue 22. URL: http://www.aspi.org.au/publications/publication_details.aspx? ContentID=202&pubtype=-1 Berkowitz, Dan (2005, September): Suicide Bombers as Women Warriors: Making News through Mythical Archetypes. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 82(3), 607-622. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900508200308 S38 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Berkowitz, Dan (2007): Is all the News ours? Political Violence, September 11 and the War on Iraq. In: Hillel Nossek; Annabelle Sreberny; Prasun Sonwalkar (Eds.): Media and Political Violence. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 161-182. Berman, Asher (2012, October): Middle East Media Monitor: Syrian Rebel Use of Social Media. FPRI E-Notes. URL: http://www.fpri.org/articles/2012/10/syrian-rebel-use-social-media Berman, Ilan (2009, Fall): Messaging to the (Muslim) Masses. The Journal of International Security Affairs, 17. URL: http://www.securityaffairs.org/issues/2009/17/berman.php Bermingham, Adam et al. (2009): Combining Social Network Analysis and Sentiment Analysis to Explore the Potential for Online Radicalisation. In: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE) (Ed.): ASONAM 2009: Proceedings of the 2009 International Conference on Advances in Social Network Analysis and Mining, 20-22 July, 2009, Athens, Greece. Los Alamitos: IEEE Computer Society Conference Publishing Services (CPS), 231-236. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/ASONAM.2009.31 URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/4554/3/DCU_asonam09.pdf Bernard, Anna (2010): Another Black September? Palestinian Writing after 9/11. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 46(3-4), 349-358. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2010.482409 Berner, Sam (2003, March): Cyber-Terrorism: Reality or Paranoia? South African Journal of Information Management, 5(1). URL: http://www.sajim.co.za/index.php/SAJIM/article/viewPDFInterstitial/208/204 Bernstorff, Wiebke von (2011): Die Macht der Bilder: Terror statt Toleranz: Theaterstücke von Kathrin Röggla, Elfriede Jelinek und Ali Jalaly. In: Romana Weiershausen; Insa Wilke; Nina Gülcher (Eds.): Aufgeklärte Zeiten? Religiöse Toleranz und Literatur. Berlin: Erich Schmidt Verlag, 157-174. Best, Samuel J.; Chmielewski, Brian; Krueger, Brian S. (2005, October): Selective Exposure to Online Foreign News during the Conflict with Iraq. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 10(4), 52-70. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X05281692 S39 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Betz, David (2008): The Virtual Dimension of Contemporary Insurgency and Counterinsurgency. Small Wars & Insurgencies, 19(4), 510-540. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09592310802462273 URL: http://www.windsofchange.net/virtualdimension-of-contemporary-insurgency-and-counterinsurgency.pdf Bhattacharya, Saradindu (2010, March): Mourning Becomes Electronic(a): 9/11 Online. Journal of Creative Communications, 5(1), 63-74. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/097325861100500104 Bielby, Clare (2010, April): Remembering the Red Army Faction. Memory Studies, 3(2), 137-150. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750698009355676 Biernatzki, William E. (2002): Terrorism and Mass Media. Communication Research Trends, 21(1). URL: http://cscc.scu.edu/trends/v21/v21_1.pdf Bird, S. Elizabeth (2011): Converging into Irrelevance? Supermarket Tabloids in the Post-9/11 World. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 191-211. Birkenstein, Jeff (2010): An Early Broadside: The Far Right Raids Master and Commander: The Far Side of the World. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 69-82. Bizzini, Silvia Caporale (2010): Grieving and Memory in Don DeLillo's Falling Man. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 40-50. Black, Andrew (2007, May 15): Al-Qaeda in the Islamic Maghreb's Burgeoning Media Apparatus. Terrorism Focus, 4(14). URL: http://www.jamestown.org/single/? no_cache=1&tx_ttnews[tt_news]=4158 Blackall, David; Tenkate, Seth (2010): Anti-Terrorism, Climate Change and "Dog Whistle" Journalism: Restraints on the Public Right to Know. Asia Pacific Media Educator, 20, 203-216. URL: http://ro.uow.edu.au/apme/vol1/iss20/20 S40 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Blaisse, Mark (1992): Reporters' Perspectives. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 137-169. Blanchard, Christopher M. (2007, July 9): Al Qaeda: Statements and Evolving Ideology. CRS Report for Congress RL32759. URL: http://www.fas.org/sgp/crs/terror/RL32759.pdf Bleiker, Roland (2006, January): Art after 9/11. Alternatives, 31(1), 77-99. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/030437540603100104 URL: http://espace.uq.edu.au/eserv/UQ:82418/SBE10UQ82418.pdf Bless, Roland (2011): Countering Terrorism while Protecting Freedom of the Media: A Crucial Balance for Governments. In: The Representative on Freedom of the Media (Ed.): OSCE Yearbook 12: 2010. Wien: OSCE, 21-27. URL: www.osce.org/fom/88126 Bligh, Michelle C.; Kohles, Jeffrey C.; Meindl, James R. (2004, April): Charisma under Crisis: Presidential Leadership, Rhetoric, and Media Responses before and after the September 11th Terrorist Attacks. The Leadership Quarterly, 15(2), 211-239. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.leaqua.2004.02.005 Bloch-Elkon, Yaeli; Nacos, Brigitte L. (2011): The Media, Public Opinion, and Terrorism. In: Lawrence R. Jacobs; Robert Y. Shapiro (Eds.): The Oxford Handbook of American Public Opinion and the Media. (Oxford Handbooks of American Politics). Oxford: Oxford University Press, 690-712. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/oxfordhb/9780199545636.003.0042 Blondheim, Menahem; Liebes, Tamar (2002): Live Television's Disaster Marathon of September 11 and its Subversive Potential. Prometheus, 20(3), 271-276. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141434 Blumentrath, Hendrik (2012): Enmity and the Archive: Aesthetics of Defiguration in Literature and Criminology, 1900/1970. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 67-86. S41 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Blyth, Toby (2003): Terrorism as Technology: A Discussion of the Theoretical Underpinnings. Knowledge, Technology & Policy, 16(1), 45-55. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s12130-0031015-7 Bockstette, Carsten (2008, December): Jihadist Terrorist Use of Strategic Communication Management Techniques. The Marshall Center Occasional Paper Series, No. 20. URL: http://www.carlisle.army.mil/DIME/documents/FRONTPOST%20Jihadist%20and%20SC1.pdf Bockstette, Carsten (2009, Summer): Taliban and Jihadist Terrorist Use of Strategic Communication. Connections, 8(3), 1-24. URL: https://www.diils.org/journal-article/taliban-and-jihadistterrorist-use-strategic-communication Bockstette, Carsten (2010, October): Terrorists Exploit Information Technologies: Use of Strategic Communication Calls for United Response. per Concordiam, 1(3), 11-19. URL: http://www.marshallcenter.org/mcpublicweb/MCDocs/files/College/F_Publications/perConcord ium/pcv1n3eng.pdf Boehmer, Elleke (2010): Postcolonial Writing and Terror. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 141-150. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch5 Boggs, Carl; Pollard, Tom (2006): Hollywood and the Spectacle of Terrorism. New Political Science, 28(3), 335-351. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/07393140600856151 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/07393140600856151 Bolt, Neville; Betz, David; Azari, Jaz (2008): Propaganda of the Deed 2008: Understanding the Phenomenon. RUSI Whitehall Report Series, 3-08. URL: http://www.rusi.org/publications/whitehallreports/ref:O4A4C9EDFE576F Bondebjerg, Ib (2009, December): Behind the Headlines: Documentaries, the War on Terror and Everyday Life. Studies in Documentary Film, 3(3), 219-231. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/sdf.3.3.219/1 S42 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Boni, Bill (2001, December): Cyber-Terrorists and Counter Spies. Network Security, 12/2001, 1718. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1353-4858(01)01222-3 Borradori, Giovanna (2011): Ungrievable Lives: Global Terror and the Media. In: Robert S. Fortner; P. Mark Fackler (Eds.): The Handbook of Global Communication and Media Ethics. Oxford: Wiley-Blackwell, 461-480. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444390629.ch25 Bosch, Olivia (2012): Critical Information Infrastructure and Cyber-Terrorism. In: Pauline C. Reich; Eduardo Gelbstein (Eds.): Law, Policy and Technology: Cyberterrorism, Information Warfare, and Internet Immobilization. Hershey: IGI Global, 31-40. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/9781-61520-831-9.ch003 Bossio, Diana (2011): A War about Meaning: A Case Study of Media Contestation of the Australian Anti-Terror Laws. Continuum, 25(2), 261-271. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304312.2011.553945 Botha, Nicolene; De Beer, Arnold S. (2010): Between Scylla and Charybdis: 9/11 in South African Media. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 277-300. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Bott, Catherine et al. (2009, April 23): Recruitment and Radicalization of School-Aged Youth by International Terrorist Groups. HSSAI Report RP08-37-01. URL: http://155.2.1.67/docs/reports/Radicalization_School-Aged_Youth.pdf Bott, Catherine et al. (2009, April 24): The Internet as a Terrorist Tool for Recruitment and Radicalization of Youth. HSSAI White Paper RP08-03.02.17-01. URL: http://www.homelandsecurity.org/docs/reports/Internet_Radicalization.pdf Boucek, Christopher (2008, August): The Sakinah Campaign and Internet Counter-Radicalization in Saudi Arabia. CTC Sentinel, 1(9), 1-4. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/07/CTCSentinel-Vol1Iss9.pdf S43 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Boudali, Lianne Kennedy (2009, April): Leveraging History in AQIM Communications. CTC Sentinel, 2(4), 14-17. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2010/07/CTCSentinelVol2Iss4.pdf Bourget, Carine (2008, February): 9/11 and the Affair of the Muslim Headscarf in Essays by Tahar Ben Jelloun and Abdelwahab Meddeb. French Cultural Studies, 19(1), 71-84. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1077727X07085718 Bouvier, Gwen (2010): "Breaking News": The First Hours of BBC Coverage of 9/11 as a Media Event. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 51-83. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Bowdish, Randall G. (2006, May): Cerberus to Mind: Media as Sentinel in the Fight against Terrorism. Strategic Insights, 5(5). URL: http://hawk.ethz.ch/serviceengine/Files/ISN/32292/ichaptersection_singledocument/bf75f9fb9f5a-482d-995b-e9b94d1891c7/en/bowdishMay06.pdf Bowdish, Randall G. (2007): Cry Terror and Let Slip the Media Dogs. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Countering Terrorism and Insurgency in the 21st Century. (Vol. 2: Combating the Sources and Facilitators). Westport: Greenwood Publishing, 385-400. Bowdish, Randall G. (2009): Cry Terror and Let Slip the Media Dogs. In: A. Aykut Öncü; Troy Bucher; Osman Aytaç (Eds.): Strategic Communication for Combating Terrorism. Ankara: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT), 46-59. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/StratComm/StratComm2010.pdf Bowen, Shannon A. (2008): Frames of Terrorism Provided by the News Media and Potential Communication Responses. In: Dan O'Hair et al. (Eds.): Terrorism: Communication and Rhetorical Perspectives. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 337-358. Bowman-Grieve, Lorraine (2009): Exploring "Stormfront": A Virtual Community of the Radical Right. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 32(11), 989-1007. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100903259951 S44 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Bowman-Grieve, Lorraine (2010, May): Irish Republicanism and the Internet: Support for New Wave Dissidents. Perspectives on Terrorism, 4(2), 22-34. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/97 Bowman-Grieve, Lorraine (2011): The Internet & Terrorism: Pathways toward Terrorism & Counter-Terrorism. In: Andrew Silke (Ed.): The Psychology of Counter-Terrorism. (Cass Series on Political Violence). London: Routledge, 76-88. URL: http://eprints.lincoln.ac.uk/4795 Bowman-Grieve, Lorraine; Conway, Maura (2012, April): Exploring the Form and Function of Dissident Irish Republican Online Discourses. Media, War & Conflict, 5(1), 71-85. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635211434371 Boxall, Peter (2010): Slow Man, Dangling Man, Falling Man: Don DeLillo and the Ethics of Fiction. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 173-183. Boyd-Barrett, Oliver; Herrera, David; Baumann, Jim (2012): Hollywood, the CIA and the "War on Terror". In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 116-133. Boyle, Michael P. et al. (2004, March): Information Seeking and Emotional Reactions to the September 11 Terrorist Attacks. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 81(1), 155-167. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900408100111 Boyle, Michael P. et al. (2006): Expressive Responses to News Stories about Extremist Groups: A Framing Experiment. Journal of Communication, 56(2), 271-288. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1460-2466.2006.00019.x URL: http://www.journalism.wisc.edu/~dshah/JOC2006.pdf Brachman, Jarret M. (2006): High-Tech Terror: Al-Qaeda’s Use of New Technology. The Fletcher Forum of World Affairs, 30(2), 149-164. URL: http://www.dtic.mil/cgi-bin/GetTRDoc? AD=ADA458499 S45 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Brachman, Jarret; Fishman, Brian; Felter, Joseph (2008, April 21): The Power of Truth? Questions for Ayman al-Zawahiri. CTC Report. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/06/Power_of_Truth_4-21-2008.pdf Brachman, Jarret M.; Forest, James J. F. (2011): Exploring the Role of Virtual Camps. URL: http://www.aclu.org/files/fbimappingfoia/20111110/ACLURM003039.pdf Brachman, Jarret M.; Levine, Alix (2011, January 20): You too can be Awlaki! The Fletcher Forum of World Affairs, 35(1), 25-46. URL: http://www.fletcherforum.org/2011/01/20/brachmanlevine Brachman, Jarret M.; Levine, Alix (2011, April 13): The World of Holy Warcraft: How Al Qaeda is Using Online Game Theory to Recruit the Masses. Foreign Policy. URL: http://www.foreignpolicy.com/articles/2011/04/13/the_world_of_holy_warcraft Braman, Sandra (2011): Anti-Terrorism and the Harmonization of Media and Communication Policy. In: Robin Mansell; Marc Raboy (Eds.): The Handbook of Global Media and Communication Policy. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 486-504. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444395433.ch30 Brandon, James (2008, January): Virtual Caliphate: Islamic Extremists and their Websites. URL: http://www.socialcohesion.co.uk/files/1229624704_1.pdf Bratton, Benjamin H. (2009, December): On Geoscapes and the Google Caliphate: Reflections on the Mumbai Attacks. Theory, Culture & Society, 26(7-8), 329-342. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0263276409349826 Bräuchler, Birgit (2003, April): Cyberidentities at War: Religion, Identity, and the Internet in the Moluccan Conflict. Indonesia, 75, 123-151. Bräuchler, Birgit (2004): Public Sphere and Identity Politics in the Moluccan Cyberspace. The Electronic Journal of Communication, 14(3). URL: http://www.cios.org/EJCPUBLIC/014/3/01438.html S46 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Bräuchler, Birgit (2004, December): Islamic Radicalism Online: The Moluccan Mission of the Laskar Jihad in Cyberspace. The Australian Journal of Anthropology, 15(3), 267-285. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1835-9310.2004.tb00098.x Bräuchler, Birgit (2006): Constructed Identities Online: The Performance of the Moluccan Crisis on the Internet. In: Frank Heidemann; Alfonso de Toro (Eds.): New Hybridities: Societies and Cultures in Transition. Hildesheim: Georg Olms, 161-177. Bräuchler, Birgit (2006): Konfliktfaktor Internet: Der Molukkenkonflikt geht online. In: Julia Reuter; Corinne Neudorfer; Christoph Antweiler (Eds.): Strand, Bar, Internet: Neue Orte der Globalisierung. (Ethnologie: Forschung und Wissenschaft). Berlin: LIT Verlag, 84-103. Bräuchler, Birgit (2007): Religious Conflicts in Cyberage. Citizenship Studies, 11(4), 329-347. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13621020701476012 Braun, Peter (2010): Die Lebensgeschichte als Form: Zur Erzählweise und Funktion biographischer Darstellungen im Diskurs über die RAF. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 151-178. Bräunert, Svea (2008): Looping the RAF: Popkulturelle Erinnerungsstrategien in Arbeiten von Johannes Wohnseifer und Erin Cosgrove. literatur für leser, 31(2), 111-124. Bräunert, Svea (2010): Ghostly Sisters: Feminist Legacies in Second-Generation Perspectives on West German Terrorism: Judith Kuckart's Wahl der Waffen (1990) and Kaiserstraße (2006). In: Laurel Cohen-Pfister; Susanne Vees-Gulani (Eds.): Generational Shifts in Contemporary German Culture. (Studies in German Literature, Linguistics, and Culture). Rochester: Camden House, 161-183. Bräunert, Svea (2010): Soundscape Stammheim. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 199-222. URL: http://www.zeitgeschichteonline.de/portals/_rainbow/documents/pdf/raf/Braeunert_Soundscape_Stammheim.pdf S47 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Bräunert, Svea (2011, February): Video und Avantgarde: Zum Verhältnis von Kunst, Massenmedien und Terrorismus in Klaus vom Bruchs Das Schleyerband. Seminar, 47(1), 27-45. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1353/smr.2011.0005 Braunsperger, Gudrun (2012): Sergey Nechaev and Dostoevsky’s Devils: The Literary Answer to Terrorism in Nineteenth-Century Russia. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 27-40. Breckenridge, James N.; Zimbardo, Philip G. (2007): The Strategy of Terrorism and the Psychology of Mass-Mediated Fear. In: Bruce Bongar et al. (Eds.): Psychology of Terrorism. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 116-136. Breckenridge, James N.; Zimbardo, Philip G.; Sweeton, Jennifer L. (2010): After Years of Media Coverage, can one more Video Report Trigger Heuristic Judgments? A National Study of American Terrorism Risk Perceptions. Behavioral Sciences of Terrorism and Political Aggression, 2(3), 163-178. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19434471003768826 Breen, Gerald-Mark (2008): Examining Existing Counter-Terrorism Tactics and Applying Social Network Theory to Fight Cyberterrorism: An Interpersonal Communication Perspective. Journal of Applied Security Research, 3(2), 191-204. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19361610802135888 Brenner, Susan W. (2006): Cybercrime, Cyberterrorism and Cyberwarfare. Revue internationale de droit pénal, 77(3-4), 453-471. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3917/ridp.773.0453 URL: http://www.cairn.info/revue-internationale-de-droit-penal-2006-3-page-453.htm Brenner, Susan W. (2007, Winter): "At Light Speed": Attribution and Response to Cybercrime/Terrorism/Warfare. The Journal of Criminal Law and Criminology, 97(2), 379-475. URL: http://www.jstor.org/stable/40042831 S48 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Brereton, Pat; Cullotya, Eileen (2012): Post-9/11 Counterterrorism in Popular Culture: The Spectacle and Reception of The Bourne Ultimatum and 24. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 5(3), 483497. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539153.2012.723524 Breton, Larisa; Pearson, Adam (2010, November 6): Contextual Truth-Telling to Counter ExtremistSupportive Messaging Online: The Wikileaks "Collateral Murder" Case Study. Small Wars Journal, 6(10). URL: http://smallwarsjournal.com/jrnl/art/contextual-truth-telling-to-counterextremist-supportive-messaging-online Briant, Emma L. (2007): The Struggle for Public Opinion within the Media and Information War on Terror. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 89-107. Brickey, Jonalan (2012, August): Defining Cyberterrorism: Capturing a Broad Range of Activities in Cyberspace. CTC Sentinel, 5(8), 4-6. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2012/08/CTCSentinel-Vol5Iss8.pdf Brill, Alan E. (2010): From Hit and Run to Invade and Stay: How Cyberterrorists could be Living Inside your Systems. Defence Against Terrorism Review, 3(2), 23-36. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/datr6/DATR_Fall2010_.pdf Brinkerhoff, Jennifer M. (2006, January): Digital Diasporas and Conflict Prevention: The Case of Somalinet.com. Review of International Studies, 32(1), 25-47. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1017/S0260210506006917 Brinson, Mary; Stohl, Michael (2009): From 7/7 to 8/10: Media Framing of Terrorist Incidents in the United States and United Kingdom. In: David Canter (Ed.): The Faces of Terrorism: Multidisciplinary Perspectives. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 227-245. S49 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Brinson, Mary; Stohl, Michael (2012): Media Framing of Terrorism: Implications for Public Opinion, Civil Liberties, and Counterterrorism Policies. Journal of International and Intercultural Communication. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17513057.2012.713973 Britz, Marjie T. (2011): Chapter 8: Terrorism and Technology: Operationalizing Cyberterrorism and Identifying Concepts. In: Thomas J. Holt (Ed.): Crime On-line: Correlates, Causes, and Context. Durham: Carolina Academic Press, 193-220. Brodzinski, Emma (2010): Bodies of Terror: Performer and Witness. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 370-380. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch16 Bromley, Michael; Cushion, Stephen (2011): Media Fundamentalism: The Immediate Response of the UK National Press to Terrorism – From 9/11 to 7/7. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 212-231. Bronk, Christopher; Monk, Cody; Villasenor, John (2012): The Dark Side of Cyber Finance. Survival, 54(2), 129-142. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00396338.2012.672794 Brooten, Lisa (2008): The "Pint‐Sized Terrorists" of God's Army: Child Soldiers, Media, and Global Politics. Journal of Children and Media, 2(3), 219-234. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17482790802327459 Brosda, Carsten (2002): Sprachlos im Angesicht des Bildes: Überlegungen zum journalistischen Umgang mit bildmächtigen Ereignissen am Beispiel der Terroranschläge vom 11. September 2001. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 53-75. Brosius, Hans-Bernd; Weimann, Gabriel (1991): The Contagiousness of Mass-Mediated Terrorism. European Journal of Communication, 6(1), 63-75. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0267323191006001004 S50 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Brown, Clyde; Waltzer, Herbert (2004, Fall): Organized Interest Advertorials: Responding to the 9/11 Terrorist Attack and other National Traumas. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 9(4), 25-48. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X04271102 Brown, David (2009): The Role of the Media in Bioterrorism. In: Suzanne M. Lutwick; Larry I. Lutwick (Eds.): Beyond Anthrax: The Weaponization of Infectious Diseases. New York: Springer, 295-313. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-1-59745-326-4_15 URL: http://www.medlib.am/Fulltexts/BEYOND%20ANTHRAX.pdf Brown, Graham (2006): The Perils of Terrorism: Chinese Whispers, Kevin Bacon and Al Qaeda in Southeast Asia – A Review Essay. Intelligence and National Security, 21(1), 150-162. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/02684520600568626 Brown, Ian; Korff, Douwe (2009, March): Terrorism and the Proportionality of Internet Surveillance. European Journal of Criminology, 6(2), 119-134. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1477370808100541 Brown, Katherine E. (2011, December): Muriel’s Wedding: News Media Representations of Europe’s First Female Suicide Terrorist. European Journal of Cultural Studies, 14(6), 705-726. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1367549411419976 Brown, Malcolm D. (2006): Comparative Analysis of Mainstream Discourses, Media Narratives and Representations of Islam in Britain and France prior to 9/11. Journal of Muslim Minority Affairs, 26(3), 297-312. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13602000601141216 Brown, Steven D.; Hoskins, Andrew (2010): Terrorism in the New Memory Ecology: Mediating and Remembering the 2005 London Bombings. Behavioral Sciences of Terrorism and Political Aggression, 2(2), 87-107. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19434471003597399 Brown, William J. (1990, Spring): The Persuasive Appeal of Mediated Terrorism: The Case of the TWA Flight 847 Hijacking. Western Journal of Speech Communication, 54(2), 219-236. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10570319009374337 URL: http://www.uky.edu/~addesa01/documents/Brown.pdf S51 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Browne, Deborah; Silke, Andrew (2011): The Impact of the Media on Terrorism and Counter-Terrorism. In: Andrew Silke (Ed.): The Psychology of Counter-Terrorism. (Cass Series on Political Violence). London: Routledge, 89-110. Bruno, Marcello Walter (2003, January-March): "Apocalypse News": La comunicazione terroristica nell'epoca della cybersfera pubblica globale. Rivista trimestrale fondata da Camillo Pellizzi, 1. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1423/8567 Brunst, Phillip W. (2008): Legal Aspects of Cyberterrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Legal Aspects of Combating Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 47). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 63-76. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-58603-930-1-63 Brunst, Phillip W. (2008): Use of the Internet by Terrorists – A Threat Analysis. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 34-60. Brunst, Phillip W. (2010): Terrorism and the Internet: New Threats Posed by Cyberterrorism and Terrorist Use of the Internet. In: Marianne Wade; Almir Maljevic (Eds.): A War on Terror? The European Stance on a New Threat, Changing Laws and Human Rights Implications. New York: Springer, 51-78. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-0-387-89291-7_3 URL: http://www.springer.com/cda/content/document/cda_downloaddocument/9780387892900c1.pdf?SGWID=0-0-45-855750-p173866338 Bucy, Erik P. (2003, September): Emotion, Presidential Communication, and Traumatic News: Processing the World Trade Center Attacks. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 8(4), 7696. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X03256801 Bullis, Daryl R.; Irving, Richard D. (2012): Journals Supporting Terrorism Research: Identification and Investigation into their Impact on the Social Sciences. College & Research Libraries. Advance Online Publication. URL: http://crl.acrl.org/content/early/2012/01/09/crl-314.short?rss=1 S52 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Bunker, Robert J. (2000): Weapons of Mass Disruption and Terrorism. Terrorism and Political Violence, 12(1), 37-46. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550008427548 Burnett, Jonny; Whyte, Dave (2005): Embedded Expertise and the New Terrorism. Journal for Crime, Conflict and the Media, 1(4), 1-18. URL: http://www.diplomatie.gouv.fr/fr/IMG/pdf/expertise_terrorisme.pdf Busch, Peter (2009): Media Coverage of the 2008 Mumbai Attacks: Active Audience and Strategic Communication. In: A. Aykut Öncü; Troy Bucher; Osman Aytaç (Eds.): Strategic Communication for Combating Terrorism. Ankara: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE– DAT), 72-81. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/StratComm/StratComm2010.pdf Busst, Naomi; Pearson, Mark (2006, September): Anti-Terror Laws and the Media after 9/11: Three Models in Australia, NZ and the Pacific. Pacific Journalism Review, 12(2), 9-27. Buttenfield, Barbara P. (2004, December): Terrorism, Information Technology, and Vulnerability. Annals of the Association of American Geographers, 94(4), 992-994. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1467-8306.2004.445_1.x Byam, Hannah; Neu, Christopher (2010, March 3): Covering and Countering Extremism in Pakistan’s Developing Media. USIP Peace Brief 82. URL: http://www.usip.org/publications/covering-and-countering-extremism-in-pakistan-sdeveloping-media Byng, Michelle D. (2010, January): Symbolically Muslim: Media, Hijab, and the West. Critical Sociology, 36(1), 109-129. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0896920509347143 #C Caiani, Manuela; Parenti, Linda (2009): The Dark Side of the Web: Italian Right-Wing Extremist Groups and the Internet. South European Society and Politics, 14(3), 273-294. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13608740903342491 S53 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Caiani, Manuela; Wagemann, Claudius (2009): Online Networks of the Italian and German Extreme Right: An Explorative Study with Social Network Analysis. Information, Communication & Society, 12(1), 66-109. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691180802158482 Cali, Dennis D. (2002): Journalism after September 11: Unity as Moral Imperative. Journal of Mass Media Ethics, 17(4), 290-303. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/S15327728JMME1704_04 Callaghan, Karen; Schnell, Frauke (2005): Terrorism, Media Frames, and Framing Effects: A Macro- and Microlevel Analysis. In: Karen Callaghan; Frauke Schnell (Eds.): Framing American Politics. Pittsburgh: University of Pittsburgh Press, 123-147. Callahan, Kathe; Dubnick, Melvin J.; Olshfski, Dorothy (2006, July-August): War Narratives: Framing our Understanding of the War on Terror. Public Administration Review, 66(4), 554568. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1540-6210.2006.00616.x URL: http://www.unh.edu/news/docs/Dubnick_warnarrative.pdf Calvert, Clay (2004): Voyeur War? The First Amendment, Privacy & Images from the War on Terrorism. Fordham Intellectual Property, Media and Entertainment Law Journal, 15(1), 147-168. URL: http://ir.lawnet.fordham.edu/iplj/vol15/iss1/2 Campana, Paolo (2007): Beyond 9/11: Terrorism and Media in a Mid-Term Period View (1998– 2005). Global Crime, 8(4), 381-392. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17440570701739744 Campbell, Lisa J. (2006): The Use of Beheadings by Fundamentalist Islam. Global Crime, 7(3-4), 583-614. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17440570601073384 Campbell, Stephen (2008): Muslim Public Opinion and Al Qaeda Propaganda: Implications for U.S. Policy. PDC Tufts Papers. URL: http://publicdiplomacycouncil.org/sites/default/files/users/Lisa %20Retterath/Campbell_Muslim_Public_Opinion_and_Al_Qaeda_Propaganda_Implications_f or_US_Policy.pdf S54 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Camphuijsen, Marjolein; Vissers, Esther (2012): Terrorism and the Mass Media: A Symbiotic Relationship? Social Cosmos, 3(1), 14-24. URL: http://socialcosmos.library.uu.nl/index.php/sc/article/view/40 Campobasso, Paolo (2009): A World-Wide Financial Infrastructure to Confront Cyber Terrorism. In: Umberto Gori (Ed.): Modelling Cyber Security: Approaches, Methodology, Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 59): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 75-78. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-074-2-75 Canel, María-José (2012): Communicating Strategically in the Face of Terrorism: The Spanish Government's Response to the 2004 Madrid Bombing Attacks. Public Relations Review, 38(2), 214-222. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.pubrev.2011.11.012 Cano Paños, Miguel Angel (2008, December): Internet y terrorismo islamista: Aspectos criminológicos y legales. Eguzkilore: Cuaderno del Instituto Vasco de Criminología, 22, 67-88. URL: http://www.ivac.ehu.es/p278content/es/contenidos/boletin_revista/eguzkilore_numero22/es_numero22/adjuntos/03%20Can o.indd.pdf Cano Paños, Miguel Angel (2011; April-May): El binomio Internet/Terrorismo islamista: De una amenaza virtual a un peligro real. Iter Criminis, 5, 120-156. Cano Paños, Miguel Angel (2011; May): Reflexiones y experiencias desde las entrañas del yihadismo militante: Análisis de la autobiografía de Eric Breininger. UNISCI Discussion Papers, 26, 191-223. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.5209/rev_UNIS.2011.v26.37821 URL: http://revistas.ucm.es/index.php/UNIS/article/view/37821 Çapli, Bülent (2007): Television News and Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 7779. S55 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Carafano, James Jay; Weitz, Richard (2008, February): Combating Enemies Online: State-Sponsored and Terrorist Use of the Internet. The Heritage Foundation Backgrounder #2105. URL: http://www.heritage.org/research/reports/2008/02/combating-enemies-online-state-sponsoredand-terrorist-use-of-the-internet Carey, James W. (2011): American Journalism on, before, and after September 11. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 85-103. Carey, John (2002): Media Use during a Crisis. Prometheus, 20(3), 201-207. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141380 Carmon, Yigal (2008): The Enemy within: Where are the Islamist/Jihadist Websites Hosted, and what can be Done about it? In: Cecilia S. Gal; Paul B. Kantor; Bracha Shapira (Eds.): Security Informatics and Terrorism: Patrolling the Web: Social and Technical Problems of Detecting and Controlling Terrorists' Use of the World Wide Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 15). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 26-41. Carruthers, Susan L. (2000): Media and Terrorism. In: The Media at War: Communication and Conflict in the Twentieth Century. New York: St. Martin's Press, 163-196. Carruthers, Susan L. (2005): Two Faces of 1950s Terrorism: The Film Presentation of Mau Mau and the Malayan Emergency. In: J. David Slocum (Ed.): Terrorism, Media, Liberation. (Rutgers Depth of Field Series). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 70-93. Carter, Sean; Dodds, Klaus (2011): Hollywood and the "War on Terror": Genre-Geopolitics and "Jacksonianism" in The Kingdom. Environment and Planning D: Society and Space, 29(1), 98113. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1068/d7609 Carty, Victoria; Onyett, Jake (2006): Protest, Cyberactivism and New Social Movements: The Reemergence of the Peace Movement post 9/11. Social Movement Studies, 5(3), 229-249. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14742830600991586 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/14742830600991586 S56 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Cassim, Fawzia (2012, August): Addressing the Spectre of Cyber Terrorism: A Comparative Perspective. Potchefstroom Electronic Law Journal, 15(2), 380-415. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4314/pelj.v15i2.14 URL: http://www.nwu.ac.za/af/webfm_send/58102 Castonguay, James (2004, Summer): Conglomeration, New Media, and the Cultural Production of the "War on Terror". Cinema Journal, 43(4), 102-108. Castonguay, James (2006): Intermedia and the War on Terror. In: Andrew Martin; Patrice Petro (Eds.): Rethinking Global Security: Media, Popular Culture, and the "War on Terror". (New Directions in International Studies). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 151-178. Cataldo, Giovanni (2009): Fighting Terrorism in Cyberspace. In: Umberto Gori (Ed.): Modelling Cyber Security: Approaches, Methodology, Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 59): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 160-164. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-074-2-160 Cavelty, Myriam Dunn (2007, Spring): Cyber-Terror – Looming Threat or Phantom Menace? The Framing of the US Cyber-Threat Debate. Journal of Information Technology & Politics, 4(1), 19-36. URL: http://www.jitp.net/files/v004001/JITP4-1_Cyber_Terror_Cavelty.pdf Çelebi, Erdoğan (2008): Analysis of PKK/KONGRA-GEL Websites to Identify Points of Vulnerability. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 127-141. Çelebi, Erdoğan (2010): Female Seperatism: The Role of Women in the PKK/KONGRA-GEL Terrorist Organization. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 105-112. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-105 Ceresa, Alessia (2005): The Impact of "New Technology" on the "Red Brigades" Italian Terrorist Organisation: The Progressive Modernisation of a Terrorist Movement Active in Italy since the S57 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement 1970s. European Journal on Criminal Policy and Research, 11(2), 193-222. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10609-005-5664-y Chakravarty, Sumita S. (2005): Fragmenting the Nation: Images of Terrorism in Indian Popular Cinema. In: J. David Slocum (Ed.): Terrorism, Media, Liberation. (Rutgers Depth of Field Series). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 232-247. Chalfont, Lord (1987): Comment: Terrorism, Television, and Philosophic Doubt. Terrorism, 9(3), 297-305. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108708435633 Chalfont, Lord et al. (1980): Political Violence and the Role of the Media: Some Perspectives. Political Communication, 1(1), 79-99. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1980.9962717 Chamberlain, Robert; Haider-Markel, Donald P. (2005, September): "Lien On Me": State Policy Innovation in Response to Paper Terrorism. Political Research Quarterly, 58(3), 449-460. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/106591290505800307 Chambers, Peter (2012, February): Abu Musab Al Zarqawi: The Making and Unmaking of an American Monster (in Baghdad). Alternatives, 37(1), 30-51. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0304375412440871 Chan, Jennifer L. (2012): Performing Citizenship: The Concert for New York City and the Construction of Post-9/11 America. In: Jenny S. Spencer (Ed.): Political and Protest Theatre after 9/11: Patriotic Dissent. (Routledge Advances in Theatre and Performance Studies, Vol. 21). New York: Routledge, 208-218. Chandler, Michael E. G. (2007): Turning the Tables: Harnessing Media Means to Counter Radicalization. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 281-287. S58 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Charles, Jonathan (2007): Reporting on Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 152-157. Charvat, Julian (2009): Cyber Terrorism: A New Dimension in Battlespace. In: Christian Czosseck; Kenneth Geers (Eds.): The Virtual Battlefield: Perspectives on Cyber Warfare. (Cryptology and Information Security Series, Vol. 3). Amsterdam: IOS Press. URL: http://www.ccdcoe.org/publications/virtualbattlefield/05_CHARVAT_Cyber%20Terrorism.pdf Charvat, Julian (2010): Radicalization on the Internet. Defence Against Terrorism Review, 3(2), 7585. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/datr6/DATR_Fall2010_.pdf Chatterjee, Sushmita (2009, December): Cartooning Mumbai's 9/11: An Exploration of Image Decolonization. Studies in South Asian Film & Media, 1(2), 249-264. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/safm.1.2.249/1 Che, Eliot (2007, September): Securing a Network Society: Cyber-Terrorism, International Cooperation and Transnational Surveillance. RIEAS Research Paper. URL: http://www.rieas.gr/images/RIEAS113ELIOTCHE.pdf Chen, Hsinchun (2007): Computer-Assisted "Dark Web" Website and Forum Collection, Analysis and Visualization. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 119-139. Chen, Hsinchun (2007): Exploring Extremism and Terrorism on the Web: The Dark Web Project. In: Christopher C. Yang et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: Pacific Asia Workshop, PAISI 2007, Chengdu, China, April 11-12, 2007: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 4430). Berlin: Springer, 1-20. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-54071549-8_1 S59 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Chen, Hsinchun (2011): From Terrorism Informatics to Dark Web Research. In: Uffe Kock Wiil (Ed.): Counterterrorism and Open Source Intelligence. (Lecture Notes in Social Networks, Vol. 2). Wien: Springer, 317-341. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-7091-0388-3_16 Chen, Hsinchun et al. (2008): Case Study of Jihad on the Web: A Web Mining Approach. In: Hsinchun Chen et al. (Eds.): Terrorism Informatics: Knowledge Management and Data Mining for Homeland Security. (Integrated Series in Information Systems, Vol. 18). New York: Springer, 221-235. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-0-387-71613-8_11 Chen, Hsinchun et al. (2008): Studying Global Extremist Organizations' Internet Presence Using the DarkWeb Attribute System: A Three Region Comparison Study. In: Hsinchun Chen et al. (Eds.): Terrorism Informatics: Knowledge Management and Data Mining for Homeland Security. (Integrated Series in Information Systems, Vol. 18). New York: Springer, 237-266. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-0-387-71613-8_12 Chen, Hsinchun et al. (2008): Uncovering the Dark Web: A Case Study of Jihad on the Web. Journal of the American Society for Information Science and Technology, 59(8), 1347-1359. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/asi.20838 URL: http://ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/H%20Chen %20and%20W%20Chung%202008.pdf Chen, Hsinchun et al. (2011, March): Introduction to Special Issue on Terrorism Informatics. Information Systems Frontiers, 13(1), 1-3. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10796-010-9293-6 URL: http://www.springerlink.com/content/p373485141036393/fulltext.pdf Cheong, Marc; Lee, Vincent C. S. (2011, March): A Microblogging-Based Approach to Terrorism Informatics: Exploration and Chronicling Civilian Sentiment and Response to Terrorism Events via Twitter. Information Systems Frontiers, 13(1), 45-59. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10796-010-9273-x URL: http://www.springerlink.com/content/227530g65m706303/fulltext.pdf S60 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Cheong, Pauline Hope; Halverson, Jeffry R. (2010): Youths in Violent Extremist Discourse: Mediated Identifications and Interventions. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(12), 1104-1123. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2010.523862 URL: http://www.paulinehopecheong.com/media/c5be8d3f13534b9ffff86d4ffffe417.pdf Cheong, Pauline Hope; Lundry, Chris (2012, April): Prosumption, Transmediation, and Resistance: Terrorism and Man-Hunting in Southeast Asia. American Behavioral Scientist, 56(4), 488-510. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764211429365 Chermak, Steven M. (2002): Terrorists and Outsiders. In: Searching for a Demon: The Media Construction of the Militia Movement. Boston: Northeastern University Press, 109-142. Chermak, Steven M.; Gruenewald, Jeffrey (2006): The Media’s Coverage of Domestic Terrorism. Justice Quarterly, 23(4), 428-461. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/07418820600985305 Chidester, Phillip J. (2009): "The Toy Store of Life": Myth, Sport and the Mediated Reconstruction of the American Hero in the Shadow of the September 11th Terrorist Attacks. Southern Communication Journal, 74(4), 352-372. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10417940802510365 Chittester, Clyde G.; Haimes, Yacov Y. (2004, October): Risks of Terrorism to Information Technology and to Critical Interdependent Infrastructures. Journal of Homeland Security and Emergency Management, 1(4), Article 402. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.2202/1547-7355.1075 URL: http://www.medicine.virginia.edu/clinical/departments/psychiatry/sections/cspp/ciag/conferenc e/articles/s2006/chittester_haimes_risks_of_terrorism_to_information_technology_and_to_criti cal_interdependent_infrastructures.pdf Cho, Jaeho et al. (2003): Media, Terrorism, and Emotionality: Emotional Differences in Media Content and Public Reactions to the September 11th Terrorist Attacks. Journal of Broadcasting & Electronic Media, 47(3), 309-327. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15506878jobem4703_1 Cho, Yeok-il; Wilson, Franklin (2008): Terrorism and Media in Korea. Journal of the Institute of Justice & International Studies, 8/2008, 89-98. URL: http://www.ucmo.edu/cjinst/Issue8.pdf S61 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Chochliouros, Ioannis P.; Spiliopoulou, Anastasia S.; Chochliouros, Stergios P. (2008): Measures for Ensuring Data Protection and Citizen Privacy against the Threat of Crime and Terrorism: The European Response. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 420-430. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140991-5.ch049 Chomik, Andrew (2011): Making Friends in Dark Shadows: An Examination of the Use of Social Computing Strategy within the United States Intelligence Community since 9/11. Global Media Journal: Canadian Edition, 4(2), 95-113. URL: http://www.gmj.uottawa.ca/1102/v4i2_chomik_abstract.html Choudhary, Kaustubh (2012, Fall): Image Steganography and Global Terrorism. Global Security Studies, 3(4), 115-135. URL: http://globalsecuritystudies.com/Image%20Steganography.pdf Christian, Louise (2008): Beneath Contempt. Index on Censorship, 37(3), 185-191. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03064220802306739 URL: http://ioc.sagepub.com/content/37/3/185.full.pdf Christie, Thomas B. (2006, October): Framing Rationale for the Iraq War: The Interaction of Public Support with Mass Media and Public Policy Agendas. International Communication Gazette, 68(5-6), 519-532. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048506068728 Chu, Hai-Cheng et al. (2009): Next Generation of Terrorism: Ubiquitous Cyber Terrorism with the Accumulation of all Intangible Fears. Journal of Universal Computer Science, 15(12), 23732386. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3217/jucs-015-12-2373 URL: http://www.jucs.org/jucs_15_12/next_generation_of_terrorism/jucs_15_12_2373_2386_chu.pd f Cilluffo, Frank J.; Cardash, Sharon L.; Whitehead, Andrew J. (2007, Spring-Summer): Radicalization: Behind Bars and beyond Borders. The Brown Journal of World Affairs, 13(2), 113-122. URL: http://www.gwumc.edu/hspi/policy/BrownJournal_Radicalization.pdf S62 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Cilluffo, Frank J.; Gergely, Curt H. (1997): Information Warfare and Strategic Terrorism. Terrorism and Political Violence, 9(1), 84-94. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559708427388 URL: http://www.gwumc.edu/hspi/policy/InformationWarfareStrategicTerrorism.pdf Cilluffo, Frank J.; Nicholas, J. Paul (2006, Spring): Cyberstrategy 2.0. The Journal of International Security Affairs, 10, 23-31. URL: http://www.securityaffairs.org/issues/2006/10/cilluffo_nicholas.php Cioacă, Cătălin (2009, December): Cyber-Terrorism, an Instability Global Source. Review of the Air Force Academy, 2/2009, 105-110. URL: http://www.afahc.ro/revista/Nr_2_2009/Nr_2_2009.pdf Cioffi-Revilla, Claudio (2009): Modelling Deterrence in Cyberia. In: Umberto Gori (Ed.): Modelling Cyber Security: Approaches, Methodology, Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 59). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 125-131. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-074-2-125 Ciovacco, Carl J. (2009): The Contours of Al Qaeda's Media Strategy. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 32(10), 853-875. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100903182377 Çitlioğlu, Ercan (2007): Media and Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 39-42. Claassen, Cindy et al. (2011, May-June): Psychiatric Emergency "Surge Capacity" following Acts of Terrorism and Mass Violence with High Media Impact: What is Required? General Hospital Psychiatry, 33(3), 287-293. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.genhosppsych.2011.01.015 Clare, Jennifer (2011): Fata Morgana: Formen der Erfahrung und Wahrnehmung von 9/11 in deutschsprachigen literarischen Texten. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 842-858. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_41 S63 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Clarke, Oliver (2003): General Remarks on Terrorism and Media. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 65-66. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Clausen, Lisbeth (2003): Global News Communication Strategies: 9.11.2002 around the World. Nordicom Review, 24(2), 105-115. URL: http://www.nordicom.gu.se/common/publ_pdf/32_105-116.pdf Claycomb, Ryan (2012): Voices of the Other: Documentary and Oral History Performance in Post9/11 British Theatre. In: Jenny S. Spencer (Ed.): Political and Protest Theatre after 9/11: Patriotic Dissent. (Routledge Advances in Theatre and Performance Studies, Vol. 21). New York: Routledge, 93-110. Cloud, Dana L. (2004): "To Veil the Threat of Terror": Afghan Women and the Clash of Civilizations in the Imagery of the U.S. War on Terrorism. Quarterly Journal of Speech, 90(3), 285306. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0033563042000270726 Cochrane, Paul (2007, Spring): Bombs and Broadcasts: Al Manar's Battle to Stay on Air. Arab Media & Society, 1. URL: http://www.arabmediasociety.com/?article=19 Coe, Kevin et al. (2007): Masculinity as Political Strategy: George W. Bush, the “War on Terrorism,” and an Echoing Press. Journal of Women, Politics & Policy, 29(1), 31-55. Cohen, Elisia L.; Willis, Cynthia (2004, October): One Nation under Radio: Digital and Public Memory after September 11. New Media & Society, 6(5), 591-610. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/146144804047082 Cohen, Elisia L. et al. (2002): Civic Actions after September 11: Exploring the Role of Multi-Level Storytelling. Prometheus, 20(3), 221-228. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141344 S64 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Cohen, Fred (2002, May): Terrorism and Cyberspace. Network Security, 5/2002, 17-19. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1353-4858(02)05015-8 Cohen, Michael A.; Küpçü, Maria Figueroa (2006, December): Congress and the "YouTube War". World Policy Journal, 23(4), 49-54. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1162/wopj.2007.23.4.49 Cohen-Almagor, Raphael (2000): The Terrorists’ Best Ally: The Quebec Media Coverage of the FLQ Crisis in October 1970. Canadian Journal of Communication, 25(2). URL: http://www.cjc-online.ca/index.php/journal/article/view/1154 Cohen-Almagor, Raphael (2005): Media Coverage of Acts of Terrorism: Troubling Episodes and Suggested Guidelines. Canadian Journal of Communication, 30(3), 383-409. URL: http://www.cjc-online.ca/index.php/journal/article/view/1579 Cole, David R. (2007): Virtual Terrorism and the Internet E-learning Options. E-Learning and Digital Media, 4(2), 116-117. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.2304/elea.2007.4.2.116 URL: http://www.wwwords.co.uk/pdf/validate.asp? j=elea&vol=4&issue=2&year=2007&article=3_Cole_ELEA_4_2_web Cole, James (2012): Radicalisation in Virtual Worlds: Second Life through the Eyes of an Avatar. Journal of Policing, Intelligence and Counter Terrorism, 7(1), 66-79. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/18335330.2012.653197 Colebrook, Martyn (2010): Dial T for Terror: Don DeLillo's Mao II and Johan Grimonprez' Dial HI-S-T-O-R-Y. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 130-144. Coleman, Renita; Wu, H. Denis (2006, March): More than Words Alone: Incorporating Broadcasters' Nonverbal Communication into the Stages of Crisis Coverage Theory – Evidence from September 11th. Journal of Broadcasting & Electronic Media, 50(1), 1-17. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15506878jobem5001_1 URL: http://people.bu.edu/hdw/ColemanWu2006.pdf S65 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Coleman, Renita; Wu, H. Denis (2011): Television Impact: More than Words Alone. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 89-98. Coleman, Stephen (2006): E-Mail, Terrorism, and the Right to Privacy. Ethics and Information Technology, 8(1), 17-27. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10676-006-9103-5 Coll, Steve; Glasser, Susan B. (2008): The Internet Helps Promote Terrorism. In: Louise I. Gerdes (Ed.): Cyber Crime. Detroit: Greenhaven Press, 95-104. Combating Terrorism Center (CTC) (2006, March 1): The Islamic Imagery Project: Visual Motifs in Jihadi Internet Propaganda. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/posts/the-islamic-imagery-project Combs, Cindy C. (1997): The Media: A Weapon for both Sides? In: Terrorism in the Twenty-First Century. Upper Saddle River: Prentice Hall, 120-148. Combs, Cindy C. (2006): The Media as a Showcase for Terrorism. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Teaching Terror: Strategic and Tactical Learning in the Terrorist World. Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield, 200-232. Comer, Jonathan S. et al. (2008, August): Children and Terrorism-Related News: Training Parents in Coping and Media Literacy. Journal of Consulting and Clinical Psychology, 76(4), 568-578. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1037/0022-006X.76.4.568 Connell, Liam (2010): E‐Terror: Computer Viruses, Class and Transnationalism in Transmission and One Night @ the Call Center. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 46(3-4), 279-290. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2010.482377 Constantine, Larry (2011): Crossing the Line: Terrorism in Cyberspace and Targets in Real-Space. In: Marina L. Gavrilova (Ed.): Cyberworlds 2011: 2011 International Conference on Cyberworlds, Banff, Alberta, Canada, 4–6 October 2011: Proceedings. Los Alamitos: IEEE Computer Society Conference Publishing Services (CPS), 1-4. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/CW.2011.49 S66 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Conte, Alex (2010): Speech, the Media, and Incitement to Terrorism. In: Human Rights in the Prevention and Punishment of Terrorism: Commonwealth Approaches: The United Kingdom, Canada, Australia and New Zealand. Heidelberg: Springer, 619-650. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-642-11608-7_20 Conway, Maura (2003, December): Hackers as Terrorists? Why it doesn't Compute. Computer Fraud & Security, 12/2003, 10-13. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1361-3723(03)00007-1 URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/493/1/comp_fraud_12_2003.pdf Conway, Maura (2004, August): Mass Communication – Nitro to the Net. The World Today, 60(89), 19-22. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/513 Conway, Maura (2005): Terrorist "Use" of the Internet and Fighting Back. Paper prepared for presentation at the conference Cybersafety: Safety and Security in a Networked World: Balancing Cyber-Rights and Responsibilities, Oxford Internet Institute (OII), Oxford University, UK, 8-10 September, 2005. URL: http://www.oii.ox.ac.uk/microsites/cybersafety/extensions/pdfs/papers/maura_conway.pdf Conway, Maura (2005): Terrorist Web Sites: Their Contents, Functioning, and Effectiveness. In: Philip Seib (Ed.): Media and Conflict in the Twenty-First Century. Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 185-217. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/504 Conway, Maura (2006): Terrorism and the Internet: New Media – New Threat? Parliamentary Affairs, 59(2), 283-298. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/pa/gsl009 URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/515 Conway, Maura (2007): Cyberterrorism: Hype and Reality. In: Leigh Armistead (Ed.): Information Warfare: Separating Hype from Reality. Washington: Potomac Books, 73-94. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/501 Conway, Maura (2007): Terrorism and Internet Governance: Core Issues. Disarmament Forum, 2007(3), 23-34. URL: http://www.unidir.ch/pdf/articles/pdf-art2644.pdf S67 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Conway, Maura (2007): Terrorism and New Media: The Cyber-Battlespace. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Countering Terrorism and Insurgency in the 21st Century. (Vol. 2: Combating the Sources and Facilitators). Westport: Greenwood Publishing, 363-384. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/500 Conway, Maura (2007): Terrorism and the Making of the "New Middle East". In: Philip Seib (Ed.): New Media and the New Middle East. (The Palgrave Macmillan Series in International Political Communication). New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 235-258. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/503 Conway, Maura (2007): Terrorism, the Internet, and International Relations: The Governance Conundrum. In: Myriam Dunn Cavelty; Victor Mauer; Sai Felicia Krishna-Hensel (Eds.): Power and Security in the Information Age: Investigating the Role of the State in Cyberspace. Farnham: Ashgate, 95-127. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/514 Conway, Maura (2007): Terror TV? An Exploration of Hizbollah's al-Manar Television. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Countering Terrorism and Insurgency in the 21st Century. (Vol. 2: Combating the Sources and Facilitators). Westport: Greenwood Publishing, 401-419. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/499 Conway, Maura (2008): Media, Fear and the Hyperreal: The Construction of Cyberterrorism as the Ultimate Threat to Critical Infrastructures. Working Papers in International Studies, Centre for International Studies, Dublin City University, Working Paper 5 of 2008. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/2142/1/2008-5.pdf Conway, Maura (2008): Terrorism and the Making of the "New Middle East": New Media Strategies of Hizbollah and al Qaeda. Working Papers in International Studies, Centre for International Studies, Dublin City University, Working Paper 7 of 2008. URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/2144/1/2008-7.pdf Conway, Maura (2011): Against Cyberterrorism: Why Cyber-Based Terrorist Attacks are Unlikely to Occur. Communications of the ACM, 54(2), 26-28. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1145/1897816.1897829 URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/16237 S68 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Conway, Maura (2012): From al-Zarqawi to al-Awlaki: The Emergence of the Internet as a New Form of Violent Radical Milieu. URL: http://www.isodarco.it/courses/andalo12/doc/Zarqawi %20to%20Awlaki_V2.pdf Conway, Maura (2012): Introduction: Terrorism and Contemporary Mediascapes – Reanimating Research on Media and Terrorism. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 5(3), 445-453. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539153.2012.725979 Conway, Maura (2012): What is Cyberterrorism and how Real is the Threat? A Review of the Academic Literature, 1996 – 2009. In: Pauline C. Reich; Eduardo Gelbstein (Eds.): Law, Policy and Technology: Cyberterrorism, Information Warfare, and Internet Immobilization. Hershey: IGI Global, 279-307. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-61520-831-9.ch011 Conway, Maura (2012, November): From al-Zarqawi to al-Awlaki: The Emergence and Development of an Online Radical Milieu. Combating Terrorism Exchange, 2(4). URL: https://globalecco.org/from-al-zarqawi-to-al-awlaki-the-emergence-and-development-of-anonline-radical-milieu Conway, Maura; McInerney, Lisa (2008): Jihadi Video and Auto-Radicalisation: Evidence from an Exploratory YouTube Study. In: Daniel Ortiz-Arroyo et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: First European Conference, EuroISI 2008, Esbjerg, Denmark, December 3-5, 2008: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 5376). Berlin: Springer, 108-118. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-89900-6_13 URL: http://doras.dcu.ie/2253 Conway, Maura; McInerney, Lisa (2012, April): Terrorism in "Old" and "New" Media. Media, War & Conflict, 5(1), 3-5. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635211434349 Conway, Maura; McInerney, Lisa (2012, April): What’s Love Got to Do with it? Framing "JihadJane" in the US Press. Media, War & Conflict, 5(1), 6-21. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635211434373 Cordesman, Anthony H. (2004, April 16): Hostages, Murders, and Desecrated Corpses: Iraqi Political and Psychological Warfare. URL: http://www.csis.org/media/csis/pubs/iraq_hostages.pdf S69 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Cordesman, Anthony H. (2005, January-February): Weapons of Mass Media: The Real Message about Saudi Arabia and Terrorism. Officer, 82(1), 41-42. Corera, Gordon (2009): Terrorism and the Media: Information War. In: Michael S. Goodman; Robert Dover (Eds.): Spinning Intelligence: Why Intelligence Needs the Media, Why the Media Needs Intelligence. New York: Columbia University Press, 57-71. Corera, Gordon (2009): Traditional Media: Impact on Proterrorism Propaganda and Counterterrorim Policies. In: Steve Tsang (Ed.): Combating Transnational Terrorism: Searching for a New Paradigm. Westport: Greenwood Publishing, 123-135. Corman, Steven R.; Brachman, Jarret M. (2007, May 1): How to Win Enemies and Disgust People. COMOPS Journal. URL: http://csc.asu.edu/2007/05/01/how-to-win-enemies-and-disgustpeople Corman, Steven R.; Schiefelbein, Jill S. (2006, April 20): Communication and Media Strategy in the Jihadi War of Ideas. CSC Report #0601. URL: http://csc.asu.edu/2006/04/20/communication-and-media-strategy-in-the-jihadi-war-of-ideas Corman, Steven R.; Schiefelbein, Jill S. (2008): Communication and Media Strategy in the Islamist War of Ideas. In: Steven R. Corman; Angela Trethewey; H. L. Goodall, Jr. (Eds.): Weapons of Mass Persuasion: Strategic Communication to Combat Violent Extremism. New York: Peter Lang, 69-96. Costigan, Sean S. (2007): Terrorists and the Internet: Crashing or Cashing In? In: Sean S. Costigan; David Gold (Eds.): Terrornomics. Aldershot: Ashgate, 113-128. COT Institute for Safety, Security and Crisis Management et al. (2008, July 23): Terrorism and the Media. Deliverable 6, Workpackage 4. URL: http://www.transnationalterrorism.eu/tekst/publications/WP4%20Del%206.pdf S70 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement COT Institute for Safety, Security and Crisis Management et al. (2008, September 12): The Evolving Threat of Terrorism in Policymaking and Media Discourse. Deliverable 2, Workpackage 2. URL: http://www.transnationalterrorism.eu/tekst/publications/WP2%20Del%202.pdf Cottle, Simon (2006): Chapter 8: From "Terrorism" to the "Global War on Terror": The Media Politics of Outrage. In: Mediatized Conflicts. (Issues in Cultural and Media Studies). Maidenhead: Open University Press, 143-166. Cottle, Simon (2006): Mediatizing the Global War on Terror: Television's Public Eye. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 19-48. Cottle, Simon (2011): Television Agora and Agoraphobia Post-September 11. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 232-251. Cousins, Karen; Brunt, Paul (2002): Terrorism, Tourism and the Media. Security Journal, 15(1), 1932. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/palgrave.sj.8340102 Cowart, David (2010): The DeLillo Era: Literary Generations in the Postmodern Period. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 223-242. Cowen, Tyler (2006): Terrorism as Theater: Analysis and Policy Implications. Public Choice, 128(1-2), 233-244. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s11127-006-9051-y URL: http://cip.gmu.edu/archive/archive/Tyler-Cowen-Terrorism-as-Theater.pdf Cox, Robert (1981): The Media as a Weapon. Political Communication, 1(3), 297-300. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1981.9962730 Craft, Stephanie; Wanta, Wayne (2004): U.S. Public Concerns in the Aftermath Of 9-11: A Test of Second Level Agenda-Setting. International Journal of Public Opinion Research, 16(4), 456463. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/ijpor/edh039 S71 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Cram, Ian (2006): Regulating the Media: Some Neglected Freedom of Expression Issues in the United Kingdom's Counter-Terrorism Strategy. Terrorism and Political Violence, 18(2), 335355. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550600570184 Crawford, Alex (2010): Embedded – With the Taliban. In: Richard Lance Keeble; John Mair (Eds.): Afghanistan, War and the Media: Deadlines and Frontlines. Bury St Edmunds: arima publishing, 33-41. URL: http://eprints.lincoln.ac.uk/3357/1/Afghanistan_final.pdf Crawford, Karin L. (2009, Summer): Gender and Terror in Gerhard Richter's October 18, 1977 and Don DeLillo's "Baader-Meinhof". New German Critique, 36(2_107), 207-230. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/0094033X-2009-006 Creekmur, Corey K. (2010): The Sound of the "War on Terror". In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 83-96. Crelinsten, Ronald D. (1989): Images of Terrorism in the Media: 1966–1985. Terrorism, 12(3), 167198. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108908435785 Crelinsten, Ronald D. (1989): Terrorism and the Media: Problems, Solutions, and Counterproblems. Political Communication, 6(4), 311-339. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1989.9962881 Crelinsten, Ronald D. (1992): Victims' Perspectives. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 208-238. Crelinsten, Ronald D. (1994): The Impact of Television on Terrorism and Crisis Situations: Implications for Public Policy. Journal of Contingencies & Crisis Management, 2(2), 61-72. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1468-5973.1994.tb00027.x Crelinsten, Ronald D. (1997): Television and Terrorism: Implications for Crisis Management and Policy‐Making. Terrorism and Political Violence, 9(4), 8-32. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559708427428 S72 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Crelinsten, Ronald D. (2008, July): Terrorism, Counter-Terrorism and the Media. In: Hussein Tahiri; Sharon Pickering (Eds.): Counter-Terrorism International Conference 2007: 15-16 October 2007 Sofitel Hotel, Melbourne, Australia: Conference Papers. Melbourne: Victoria Police; Monash University, 19-22. URL: http://www.arts.monash.edu.au/politics/terror-research/-downloads/counterterrorreport08.pdf Crenshaw, Edward; Jenkins, J. Craig (2008): If it Bleeds, it Leads: Assessing Media Effects on Transnational Terrorism. Mershon Center Research Paper. URL: https://kb.osu.edu/dspace/handle/1811/36227 Crilley, Kathy (2001): Information Warfare: New Battle Fields Terrorists, Propaganda and the Internet. Aslib Proceedings, 53(7), 250-264. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1108/EUM0000000007059 Croft, Stuart; Moore, Cerwyn (2010, July): The Evolution of Threat Narratives in the Age of Terror: Understanding Terrorist Threats in Britain. International Affairs, 86(4), 821-835. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1468-2346.2010.00914.x Cronin, Audrey Kurth (2006): Cyber-Mobilization: The New Levée en Masse. Parameters, 36(2), 77-87. URL: http://www.carlisle.army.mil/USAWC/parameters/Articles/06summer/cronin.pdf Crowley, P. J. (2009): The Battle of Narratives: The Real Central Front against Al Qaeda. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 37-50. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Curran, Kevin; Concannon, Kevin; McKeever, Sean (2008): Cyber Terrorism Attacks. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 1-6. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-991-5.ch001 S73 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement #D Dabbous, Yasmine; Nasser, Khaled (2009): A Waste of Public Diplomacy? The Performance of AlHurra TV among Lebanon's University Students. Middle East Journal of Culture and Communication, 2(1), 100-114. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1163/187398609X430633 Daemberg, Judith (2012): Nahostkonflikt 2.0 – Israelis und Palästinenser zwischen virtueller Konfliktaustragung und Online-Frieden. KAS Auslandsinformationen, 11/2012, 6-20. URL: http://www.kas.de/wf/de/33.32763 Damphousse, Kelly R. (2008): The Dark Side of the Web: Terrorists’ Use of the Internet. In: Frank J. Schmalleger; Michael Pittaro (Eds.): Crimes of the Internet. Upper Saddle River: Pearson Education, 573-593. Damphousse, Kelly R.; Smith, Brent L. (1998): Chapter 12: The Internet: A Terrorist Medium for the 21st Century. In: Harvey W. Kushner (Ed.): The Future of Terrorism: Violence in the New Millennium. Thousand Oaks: SAGE, 208-224. Danowski, James A. (2008): Evaluative Word Locations in Semantic Networks from News Stories about Al Qaeda and Implications for Optimal Communication Messages in Anti-Terrorism Campaigns. In: Daniel Ortiz-Arroyo et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: First European Conference, EuroISI 2008, Esbjerg, Denmark, December 3-5, 2008: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 5376). Berlin: Springer, 271-273. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-89900-6_27 D’Arcangeli, Luciana (2009): Lo Stupro by Franca Rame: Political Violence and Political Theatre. In: Pierpaolo Antonello; Alan O’Leary (Eds.): Imagining Terrorism: The Rhetoric and Representation of Political Violence in Italy 1969-2009. (Italian Perspectives, Vol. 18). London: Legenda, 101-115. Dartnell, Michael (1999): Insurgency Online: Elements for a Theory of Anti‐Government Internet Communications. Small Wars & Insurgencies, 10(3), 116-135. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09592319908423252 S74 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Das, Enny et al. (2009): How Terrorism News Reports Increase Prejudice against Outgroups: A Terror Management Account. Journal of Experimental Social Psychology, 45(3), 453-459. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.jesp.2008.12.001 Dashty, Faheem (2003): Terrorism and Journalists in Afghanistan. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 77. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Dauber, Cori E. (2009): The Terrorist Spectacular and the Ladder of Terrorist Success. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Influence Warfare: How Terrorists and Governments Fight to Shape Perceptions in a War of Ideas. Westport: Praeger Security International, 93-123. Dauber, Cori E. (2009): YouTube War: Fighting in a World of Cameras in Every Cell Phone and Photoshop on Every Computer. URL: http://www.strategicstudiesinstitute.army.mil/pubs/display.cfm?pubID=951 Dauber, Cori E. (2009, January/February): The Truth is Out There: Responding to Insurgent Disinformation and Deception Operations. Military Review, 1, 13-24. URL: http://usacac.army.mil/CAC2/MilitaryReview/Archives/English/MilitaryReview_20090228_art 005.pdf Dauber, Cori E. (2012, January 24): The Importance of Images to America's Fight against Violent Jihadis. SSI Article. URL: http://www.strategicstudiesinstitute.army.mil/index.cfm/articles/The-Importance-of-Images-toAmericas-Fight-Against-Violent-Jihadism/2012/1/24 Dauber, Cori E. (2012, March 6): The Impact of Visual Images: Addendum. SSI Article. URL: http://www.strategicstudiesinstitute.army.mil/index.cfm/articles//The-Impact-of-Visual-ImagesAddendum/2012/3/6 S75 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Davies, Susanne (2004, November): Shining on in the Gloom: 9/11 and the Creation of an Appearance of Consensus. Media International Australia, 113, 44-54. Davis, Benjamin R. (2006, Fall): Ending the Cyber Jihad: Combating Terrorist Exploitation of the Internet with the Rule of Law and Improving Tools for Cyber Governance. CommLaw Conspectus, 15(1). 119-186. URL: http://commlaw.cua.edu/res/docs/articles/v15/davis.pdf Day, Michael (2010, December): From Inspiring to Instructing: The Significance of the March 2010 Adam Gadahn Propaganda Statement. Media, War & Conflict, 3(3), 355-364. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635210386417 URL: http://mwc.sagepub.com/content/3/3/355.full.pdf Dean, Geof; Bell, Peter; Newman, Jack (2012, July): The Dark Side of Social Media: Review of Online Terrorism. Pakistan Journal of Criminology, 4(1), 191-210. URL: http://www.pakistansocietyofcriminology.com/publications/2012_09_29_237.pdf Debatin, Bernhard (2002): "Plane Wreck with Spectators": The Semiotics of Terror. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 163-174. Debatin, Bernhard; Brosda, Carsten (2002): Semiotik des Terrors: Luftschiffbruch mit Zuschauern. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 25-39. Decker, Scott; Pyrooz, David (2011): Gangs, Terrorism, and Radicalization. Journal of Strategic Security, 4(4), 151-166. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.5038/1944-0472.4.4.7 URL: http://scholarcommons.usf.edu/jss/vol4/iss4/8 de Graaf, Beatrice (2012): Terroristen vor Gericht: Terrorismusprozesse als kommunikative Fortsetzung des Kampfes um Recht und Gerechtigkeit. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 281-300. S76 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement de Jesus, Melinda Quintos (2003): Media and Terrorism in the Philippines. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 81-83. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Dengg, Oliver (2010): Dschihad 2.0: Die Aktivitäten der "virtuellen Dschihadisten" im Social Web. Journal for Intelligence, Propaganda and Security Studies [JIPSS], 4(2), 125-37. URL: http://www.bmlv.gv.at/wissen-forschung/publikationen/beitrag.php?id=2031 Dengg, Oliver (2011, March 18): Islambruederschaft.com: Bekenntnisse eines radikal-islamischen Online-Netzwerkes. Schriftenreihe der Landesverteidigungsakademie, Österreichs Bundesheer. URL: http://www.bmlv.gv.at/wissen-forschung/publikationen/publikation.php?id=554 Deniston, John (2007): Influence in an Age of Terror: A Framework of Response to Islamist Influence Operations. Global Tides, 1(1), Article 3. URL: http://digitalcommons.pepperdine.edu/globaltides/vol1/iss1/3 Denning, Dorothy E. (2001): Activism, Hacktivism, and Cyberterrorism: The Internet as a Tool for Influencing Foreign Policy. In: John Arquilla; David Ronfeldt (Eds.): Networks and Netwars: The Future of Terror, Crime, and Militancy. RAND Monograph Report MR-1382. Santa Monica: RAND Corporation, 239-288. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/monograph_reports/MR1382.html Denning, Dorothy E. (2005): Cyberterrorism – Testimony before the Special Oversight Panel on Terrorism Committee on Armed Services U.S. House of Representatives. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 9. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 71-76. Denning, Dorothy E. (2005, August): Information Operations and Terrorism. URL: http://faculty.nps.edu/dedennin/publications/IO%20and%20Terrorism.pdf S77 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Denning, Dorothy E. (2009): Terror's Web: How the Internet is Transforming Terrorism. In: Yvonne Jewkes; Majid Yar (Eds.): Handbook of Internet Crime. Portland: Willan Publishing, 194-214. URL: http://faculty.nps.edu/dedennin/publications/Denning-TerrorsWeb.pdf Denning, Dorothy E. (2010): The Internet and the Iraq Conflict. In: Heather S. Gregg; Hy S. Rothstein; John Arquilla (Eds.): The Three Circles of War: Understanding the Dynamics of Conflict in Iraq. Washington: Potomac Books, 69-68. URL: http://faculty.nps.edu/dedennin/publications/The%20Internet%20in%20the%20Iraq %20Conflict%20-%20July%202008.pdf Denton, Robert E. (2004): Language, Symbols, and Media. Society, 42(1), 12-18. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/BF02687294 Derian, James Der (2005): Imaging Terror: Logos, Pathos and Ethos. Third World Quarterly, 26(1), 23-37. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0143659042000322883 URL: http://www.arts.ualberta.ca/~courses/PoliticalScience/357B1/documents/DerDerianImagingTerr orLogosPathosEthos.pdf Derian, James Der (2007): Keynote Speech: The Use and Abuse of the Internet in the Age of InfoTerror. St Antony's International Review, 3(1), 12-22. Desouza, Kevin C.; Hensgen, Tobin (2003, May): Semiotic Emergent Framework to Address the Reality of Cyberterrorism. Technological Forecasting and Social Change, 70(4), 385-396. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S0040-1625(03)00003-9 Desouza, Kevin C.; Koh, Winston T. H.; Ouksel, Aris M. (2007, February): Information Technology, Innovation and the War on Terrorism. Technological Forecasting and Social Change, 74(2), 125-128. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.techfore.2006.07.006 Devost, Matthew G.; Houghton, Brian K.; Pollard, Neal Allen (1997): Information Terrorism: Political Violence in the Information Age. Terrorism and Political Violence, 9(1), 72-83. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559708427387 S78 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Díaz, Gustavo; Merlos, Alfonso (2008, January): The Role of Intelligence in the Battle against Terrorism on the Internet: Revisiting 3/11. RIEAS Research Paper No. 117. URL: http://www.rieas.gr/images/rieas117.pdf Diewald-Kerkmann, Gisela (2012): Ausstiegs- und Befriedungsstrategien am Beispiel des bundesdeutschen Linksterrorismus. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 223-240. Diffrient, David Scott (2008): Spectator Sports and Terrorist Reports: Filming the Munich Olympics, (Re)imagining the Munich Massacre. Sport in Society, 11(2-3), 311-329. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17430430701823562 Dillinger, Johannes (2008): "Die Echtheit der Videobotschaft steht außer Zweifel...": Terrorismus und Medien. In: Terrorismus: Wissen was stimmt. Freiburg: Herder, 99-106. Dobkin, Bethami A. (2005): The Television Terrorist. In: J. David Slocum (Ed.): Terrorism, Media, Liberation. (Rutgers Depth of Field Series). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 121136. Dodds, Klaus (2007, June): Steve Bell's Eye: Cartoons, Geopolitics and the Visualization of the "War on Terror". Security Dialogue, 38(2), 157-177. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0967010607078536 Dodds, Klaus (2008): Hollywood and the Popular Geopolitics of the War on Terror. Third World Quarterly, 29(8), 1621-1637. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01436590802528762 Dodds, Klaus (2008): Screening Terror: Hollywood, the United States and the Construction of Danger. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 1(2), 227-243. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150802184629 S79 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Dodwell, Brian (2012, May): The Abbottabad Documents: The Quiet Ascent of Adam Gadahn. CTC Sentinel, 5(5), 19-22. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2012/05/CTCSentinel-Vol5Iss5.pdf Dominguez, Ricardo (2008): Electronic Civil Disobedience Post‐9/11: Forget Cyber‐Terrorism and Swarm the Future Now! Third Text, 22(5), 661-670. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09528820802442454 Domke, David et al. (2006): Going Public as Political Strategy: The Bush Administration, an Echoing Press, and Passage of the Patriot Act. Political Communication, 23(3), 291-312. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584600600808844 Don, Bruce W. et al. (2007): Network Technologies for Networked Terrorists: Assessing the Value of Information and Communication Technologies to Modern Terrorist Organizations. RAND Technical Report TR454. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/technical_reports/TR454.html Donnar, Glen (2009, February): A Support Withdrawn: "Spain's 9/11" and Australian Newspaper Framing. Media International Australia, 130, 39-49. URL: http://rmit.academia.edu/GlenDonnar/Papers/172321/_A_Support_Withdrawn_Spains_9_11_an d_Australian_Newspaper_Framing_ Donnelly, K. J. (2005): "Troubles Tourism": The Terrorism Theme Park on and off Screen. In: David Crouch; Rhona Jackson; Felix Thompson (Eds.): The Media and the Tourist Imagination: Converging Cultures. London: Routledge, 92-104. Dooley, Kevin J.; Corman, Steven R. (2002): The Dynamics of Electronic Media Coverage. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 121-136. Dougall, Angela Liegey; Hayward, Michele C.; Baum, Andrew (2005): Media Exposure to Bioterrorism: Stress and the Anthrax Attacks. Psychiatry, 68(1), 28-42. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1521/psyc.68.1.28.64188 URL: http://www.impactkenniscentrum.nl/doc/kennisbank/1000011322-1.pdf S80 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Doval-Avendaño, Montserrat (2010, July): Information Sources in the Spanish Social Media during the "Three Days of March" (11-13 March 2004). Revista Latina de Comunicación Social, 65, 325-339. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4185/RLCS-65-2010-903-325-339-EN Dowling, Ralph E. (1986): Terrorism and the Media: A Rhetorical Genre. Journal of Communication, 36(1), 12-24. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1460-2466.1986.tb03036.x Dowling, Ralph E. (1989): Victimage and Mortification: Terrorism and its Coverage in the Media. Terrorism, 12(1), 47-62. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108908435760 Drake, Michael S. (2012): The Returns of War: Bodies, Images and Invented Ritual in the War on Terror. In: Athina Karatzogianni (Ed.): Violence and War in Culture and the Media: Five Disciplinary Lenses. (Media, War and Security). London: Routledge, 131-147. Drakos, Konstantinos (2007, October): The Size of Under-Reporting Bias in Recorded Transnational Terrorist Activity. Journal of the Royal Statistical Society: Series A (Statistics in Society), 170(4), 909-921. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1467-985X.2007.00488.x URL: http://ecours.univ-reunion.fr/mcs/Articles/Drakos2007.pdf Drakos, Konstantinos; Gofas, Andreas (2006, October): The Devil you Know but are Afraid to Face: Underreporting Bias and its Distorting Effects on the Study of Terrorism. The Journal of Conflict Resolution, 50(5), 714-735. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0022002706291051 Drakos, Konstantinos; Gofas, Andreas (2007): Evidence for the Existence of Under-Reporting Bias in Observed Terrorist Activity: The Message in Press Freedom Status Transitions. Democracy and Security, 3(2), 139-155. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17419160701274798 Dreher, Tanja (2007): News Media Responsibilities in Reporting on Terrorism. In: Andrew Lynch; Edwina MacDonald; George Williams (Eds.): Law and Liberty in the War on Terror. Annandale: Federation Press, 211-221. S81 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Driscoll, Paul D.; Salwen, Michael B.; Garrison, Bruce (2005): Public Fear of Terrorism and the News Media. In: Paul D. Driscoll; Michael B. Salwen; Bruce Garrison (Eds.): Online News and the Public. Mahwah: Lawrence Erlbaum, 165-184. Drori-Avraham, Adi (2006): September 11th and the Mourning after: Media Narrating Grief. Continuum, 20(3), 289-297. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304310600814110 D'Souza, Shanthie Mariet (2009): Media and Counter-Terrorism: The Indian Experience. Strategic Analysis, 33(5), 637-641. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09700160903064430 Dubnick, Melvin J.; Olshfski, Dorothy F.; Callahan, Kathe (2009): Aggressive Action: In Search of a Dominant Narrative. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 924. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Dubowitz, Mark (2009, Fall): Wanted: A War on Terrorist Media. The Journal of International Security Affairs, 17. URL: http://www.securityaffairs.org/issues/2009/17/dubowitz.php Ducol, Benjamin (2012, April): Uncovering the French-Speaking Jihadisphere: An Exploratory Analysis. Media, War & Conflict, 5(1), 51-70. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635211434366 Duggan, Robert (2010): Ghosts of Gotham: 9/11 Mourning in Patrick McGrath’s Ghost Town and Michael Cunningham’s Specimen Days. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 46(3-4), 381-393. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2010.482426 Dunn, Elisabeth W.; Moore, Moriah; Nosek, Brian A. (2005): The War of the Words: How Linguistic Differences in Reporting Shape Perceptions of Terrorism. Analyses of Social Issues and Public Policy, 5(1), 67-86. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1530-2415.2005.00056.x URL: http://dunnlab.150m.com/publications/Dunn,%20Moore,%20and%20Nosek.pdf S82 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Dutta-Bergman, Mohan J. (2004, October): Interpersonal Communication after 9/11 via Telephone and Internet: A Theory of Channel Complementarity. New Media & Society, 6(5), 659-673. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/146144804047086 Dutta-Bergman, Mohan J. (2005): Depression and News Gathering after September 11: The Interplay of Affect and Cognition. Communication Research Reports, 22(1), 7-14. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0882409052000343471 Duve, Freimut (2005): Media Murders, Islam and the Image. New Perspectives Quarterly, 22(1), 36-37. Dwivedi, Ratnesh (2008, December): International Terrorism: Role of Media. Pragyaan: Mass Communication, 6(2), 12-18. URL: http://ims.edu.in/pragyaan/Pragyaan_Mass_Comm_Dec08.pdf#page=13 Dziundziuk, Viacheslav (2011, September): Stopping Cyberterror: Countries must Work Together to Thwart Efforts of Internet Criminals. per Concordiam, 2(2), 17-21. URL: http://www.marshallcenter.org/mcpublicweb/MCDocs/files/College/F_Publications/perConcord ium/per_Concordiam_V2N2_English_print_21_Sept_2011.pdf #E Eaglestone, Robert (2010): "The Age of Reason was over … An Age of Fury was Dawning": Contemporary Fiction and Terror. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 361-369. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch15 Edge, Sarah (1999, March): Why did they Kill Barney? Media, Northern Ireland and the Riddle of Loyalist Terror. European Journal of Communication, 14(1), 91-116. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0267323199014001004 Edgerton, Gary (1996): Quelling the "Oxygen of Publicity": British Broadcasting and "The Troubles" during the Thatcher Years. The Journal of Popular Culture, 30(1), 115-132. S83 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Edwards-Winslow, Frances (2002, August): Telling it Like it is: The Role of the Media in Terrorism Response and Recovery. Perspectives on Preparedness, 9. URL: http://belfercenter.ksg.harvard.edu/files/role%20of%20the%20media.pdf Edy, Jill A.; Meirick, Patrick C. (2007): Wanted, Dead or Alive: Media Frames, Frame Adoption, and Support for the War in Afghanistan. Journal of Communication, 57(1), 119-141. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1460-2466.2006.00332.x URL: http://www.unc.edu/~fbaum/teaching/articles/J-Communication-2007-7.pdf Egbert, Marie-Luise (2012): Narratives of Terror: A New Paradigm for the Novel? In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 235-248. Egerton, Frazer (2008): The Internet and Militant Jihadism: Global to Local Re-Imaginings. In: Athina Karatzogianni (Ed.): Cyber Conflict and Global Politics. (Contemporary Security Studies). London: Routledge, 115-128. Egerton, Frazer (2011): (Hyper)media and the Construction of the Militant Community. In: Jihad in the West: The Rise of Militant Salafism. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 73-99. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1017/CBO9780511757594.005 Eid, Mahmoud (2010, October-December): Cyber-Terrorism and Ethical Journalism: A Need for Rationalism. International Journal of Technoethics, 1(4), 1-19. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/jte.2010100101 Eiffler, Sven (2010): Jihadist Propaganda on the Internet: Impact and Challenges for the Security Community. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 71-79. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-71 S84 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ekwueme, Anthony Chinedu; Obayi, Paul Martins (2012): Boko Haram Assault on Nigeria: Towards Effective Mass Media Response. New Media and Mass Communication, 5/2012, 1-7. URL: http://www.iiste.org/Journals/index.php/NMMC/article/view/2791 El Difraoui, Asiem (2012, Februar): jihad.de: Jihadistische Online-Propaganda: Empfehlungen für Gegenmaßnahmen in Deutschland. SWP-Studie S5. URL: http://www.swpberlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studien-de/swp-studiendetail/article/jihadistische_online_propaganda.html El Difraoui, Asiem (2012, October): Web 2.0 – mit einem Klick im Medienjihad. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 67-75. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studien-de/swp-studiendetail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html El Difraoui, Asiem; Steinberg, Guido (2011, January/February): Der Feind in unserem Netz: Wie bekämpft man Al-Kaida & Co im virtuellen Raum? Internationale Politik, 1-2/2011, 20-25. URL: http://www.swpberlin.org/fileadmin/contents/products/fachpublikationen/dfr_sbg_Der_Feind_in_unserem_Net z_IP_Februar_2011.pdf el Houri, Walid; Saber, Dima (2010): Filming Resistance: A Hezbollah Strategy. Radical History Review, 2010(106), 184-193. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/01636545-2009-021 El-Ibiary, Rasha (2009): Mediatisation of Terror in Cyberspace: Scrutinizing Al-Qaeda’s Media Strategy. In: Daniel Riha; Anna Maj (Eds.): The Real and the Virtual. Oxford: Inter-Disciplinary Press, 193-202. URL: http://www.inter-disciplinary.net/publishing/id-press/ebooks/thereal-and-the-virtual El-Ibiary, Rasha (2011, December): Questioning the Al-Jazeera Effect: Analysis of Al-Qaeda’s Media Strategy and its Relationship with Al-Jazeera. Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 199-204. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427479 S85 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Elliott, Deni (1988): Family Ties: A Case Study of Coverage of Families and Friends during the Hijacking of TWA Flight 847. Political Communication, 5(1), 67-75. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1988.9962838 Elliott, Deni (2004): Terrorism, Global Journalism, and the Myth of the Nation State. Journal of Mass Media Ethics, 19(1), 29-45. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15327728jmme1901_3 Elliott, Philip; Murdock, Graham; Schlesinger, Philip (1983): "Terrorism" and the State: A Case Study of the Discourses of Television. Media, Culture & Society, 5(2), 155-177. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/016344378300500204 El Marzouki, Mohamed (2011, December): Mediating Terror: Hollywood Narratives of Terrorism and Young Moroccan Audiences. Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 251-256. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427498 Elmaz, Orhan (2013): Traditions to Die For: Abu Yahya al-Libi’s Collection of 40 ahadith. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 89-102. Elovici, Yuval (2005): TDS – An Innovative Terrorist Detection System. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 75-90. Elovici, Yuval; Glezer, Chanan; Englert, Roman (2008): How to Protect Critical Infrastructure from Cyber-Terrorist Attacks. In: Cecilia S. Gal; Paul B. Kantor; Bracha Shapira (Eds.): Security Informatics and Terrorism: Patrolling the Web: Social and Technical Problems of Detecting and Controlling Terrorists' Use of the World Wide Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 15). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 224-232. Elovici, Yuval et al. (2008): Content-Based Detection of Terrorists Browsing the Web Using an Advanced Terror Detection System (ATDS). In: Hsinchun Chen et al. (Eds.): Terrorism Informatics: Knowledge Management and Data Mining for Homeland Security. (Integrated Series in Information Systems, Vol. 18). New York: Springer, 365-384. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-0-387-71613-8_17 S86 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Elovici, Yuval et al. (2010): Detection of Access to Terror-Related Web Sites Using an Advanced Terror Detection System (ATDS). Journal of the American Society for Information Science and Technology, 61(2), 405-418. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/asi.21249 URL: http://www.ise.bgu.ac.il/faculty/mlast/papers/Elovici2010.pdf Elsea, Jennifer (2002): Terrorism: Media Access to National Security Information Constitutional Questions. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 4. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 165-168. Elter, Andreas (2006): Die RAF und die Medien: Ein Fallbeispiel für terroristische Kommunikation. In: Wolfgang Kraushaar (Ed.): Die RAF und der linke Terrorismus. Hamburg: Hamburger Edition, 1060-1074. Embar-Seddon, Ayn (2002, February): Cyberterrorism: Are we under Siege? American Behavioral Scientist, 45(6), 1033-1043. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764202045006007 Endy, Charles Lim; Eng, Kho I.; Nugroho, Anto Satriyo (2010): Implementation of Intelligent Searching Using Self-Organizing Map for Webmining Used in Document Containing Information in Relation to Cyber Terrorism. In: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE) (Ed.): ACT 2010: 2010 Second International Conference on Advances in Computing, Control and Telecommunication Technologies, Jakarta, Indonesia, 2-3 December 2010: Proceedings. Los Alamitos: IEEE Computer Society Conference Publishing Services (CPS), 195-197. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/ACT.2010.35 Engle, Karen (2007, November): The Face of a Terrorist. Cultural Studies <=> Critical Methodologies, 7(4), 397-424. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1532708607305124 Entman, Robert M. (2003): Cascading Activation: Contesting the White House's Frame after 9/11. Political Communication, 20(4), 415-432. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584600390244176 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/10584600390244176 S87 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Epkins, Heather Davis (2012, April): Working the "Front Lines" in Washington, DC: Digital Age Terrorism Reporting by National Security Prestige Press. Media, War & Conflict, 5(1), 22-36. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635211434365 Erez, Amichai (2006): Cyber-Terrorism – How much of a Threat is it? In: Fernando Duarte Carvalho; Eduardo Mateus da Silva (Eds.): Cyberwar-Netwar – Security in the Information Age. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 4). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 51-52. Erez, Edna; Weimann, Gabriel; Weisburd, A. Aaron (2011, October 31): Jihad, Crime, and the Internet: Content Analysis of Jihadist Forum Discussions. Report submitted to the National Institute of Justice in fulfillment of requirements for Award Number 2006-IJ-CX-0038. URL: https://www.ncjrs.gov/pdffiles1/nij/grants/236867.pdf Erickson, Christian W. (2008): Thematics of Counterterrorism: Comparing 24 and MI-5/Spooks. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 1(3), 343-358. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150802515012 Erickson, Christian W.; Barratt, Bethany A. (2004, November): Prudence or Panic? Preparedness Exercises, Counterterror Mobilization, and Media Coverage – Dark Winter, TOPOFF 1 and 2. Journal of Homeland Security and Emergency Management, 1(4). DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.2202/1547-7355.1065 Erjavec, Karmen; Volcic, Zala (2006, October): Mapping the Notion of "Terrorism" in Serbian and Croatian Newspapers. Journal of Communication Inquiry, 30(4), 298-318. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0196859906290429 Erk, Corina (2012): Narrative des Erinnerns zwischen Konstruktion und Dekonstruktion des Mythos RAF: Bernhard Schlinks Das Wochenende. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 271-290. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 S88 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ermlich, Ferdinand A. (1987): Terrorism and the Media: Strategy, Coverage, and Responses. Political Communication, 4(2), 135-139. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962815 Ette, Mercy (2012, April): "Nigeria as a Country of Interest in Terrorism": Newspaper Framing of Farouk Abdulmutallab, the Underwear Bomber. Journal of African Media Studies, 4(1), 45-59. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jams.4.1.45_1 Ettinger, Patrik; Udris, Linards (2009): Islam as a Threat? Problematisation of Muslims in the Mass Media and Effects on the Political System. In: Lee Marsden; Heather Savigny (Eds.): Media, Religion and Conflict. Farnham: Asghate, 59-80. Evans, Alex (2010): Superman is the Faultline: Fissures in the Monomythic Man of Steel. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 117-126. Everard, Paul (2008): NATO and Cyber Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 118-126. Ewart, Jacqui (2012): Chapter 6: Terrorism, the Media and Twitter. In: Patrick Keyzer; Jane Johnston; Mark Pearson (Eds.): The Courts and the Media: Challenges in the Era of Digital and Social Media. Braddon: Halstead Press, n. p. Ewart, Jacqui (2012): Framing an Alleged Terrorist: How Four Australian News Media Organizations Framed the Dr. Mohamed Haneef Case. Journal of Media and Religion, 11(2), 91-106. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15348423.2012.688667 Ewart, Jacqui; Rane, Halim (2011): Moving On from 9/11: How Australian Television Reported the Ninth Anniversary. Journal of Media and Religion, 10(2), 55-72. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15348423.2011.572437 S89 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Exum, Andrew (2008, Summer): The Spectacle of War: Insurgent Video Propaganda and Western Response, 1990-Present. Arab Media & Society, 5. URL: http://www.arabmediasociety.com/? article=672 #F Fahmy, Shahira S. (2004, April): Picturing Afghan Women: A Content Analysis of AP Wire Photographs during the Taliban Regime and after the Fall of the Taliban Regime. International Communication Gazette, 66(2), 91-112. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0016549204041472 URL: http://www.pf.jcu.cz/stru/katedry/spol_vedy/emmirreader/01Fahmy_Picturing%20Afghan %20Women.pdf Fahmy, Shahira S. (2005, October): Emerging Alternatives or Traditional News Gates: Which News Sources were Used to Picture the 9/11 Attack and the Afghan War? International Communication Gazette, 67(5), 381-398. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0016549205056048 URL: http://site.iugaza.edu.ps/mamer/files/News-Sources-used-to-Frame-War1.pdf Fahmy, Shahira S. (2010, December): Contrasting Visual Frames of our Times: A Framing Analysis of English- and Arabic-Language Press Coverage of War and Terrorism. International Communication Gazette, 72(8), 695-717. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048510380801 URL: http://gaz.sagepub.com/content/72/8/695.full.pdf Fahmy, Shahira S.; Al Emad, Mohammed (2011, April): Al-Jazeera vs Al-Jazeera: A Comparison of the Network’s English and Arabic Online Coverage of the US/Al Qaeda Conflict. International Communication Gazette, 73(3), 216-232. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048510393656 Fahmy, Shahira S.; Johnson, Thomas J. (2007): Mediating the Anthrax Attacks: Media Accuracy and Agenda Setting during a Time of Moral Panic. Atlantic Journal of Communication, 15(1), 19-40. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15456870701212583 S90 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Fahmy, Shahira S. et al. (2006): Visual Agenda-Setting after 9/11: Individuals' Emotions, Image Recall, and Concern with Terrorism. Visual Communication Quarterly, 13(1), 4-15. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15551407vcq1301_2 Fahoum, Keely M.; Width, Jon (2006, November): Marketing Terror: Effects of Anti-Messaging on GSPC Recruitment. Strategic Insights, 5(8). URL: http://calhoun.nps.edu/public/handle/10945/11169 Falcous, Mark; Silk, Michael (2005, February): Manufacturing Consent: Mediated Sporting Spectacle and the Cultural Politics of the "War on Terror". International Journal of Media & Cultural Politics, 1(1), 59-65. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/macp.1.1.59/3 Fall, Lisa T.; Massey, Joseph Eric (2005): The Significance of Crisis Communication in the Aftermath of 9/11: A National Investigation of how Tourism Managers have Re-Tooled their Promotional Campaigns. Journal of Travel & Tourism Marketing, 19(2-3), 77-90. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1300/J073v19n02_07 Fan, David P.; Kemming, Samantha; Anderson, Betsey Neibergall (2005): Even Negative News can Raise Awareness of Terrorists' Causes. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 275287. Farah, Douglas (2011, September 1): Islamist Cyber Networks in Spanish-Speaking Latin America. WHEMSAC Report. URL: http://www.strategycenter.net/research/pubID.262/pub_detail.asp Farmanfarmaian, Roxane (2002): The Media and the War on Terrorism: Where does the Truth Lie? Cambridge Review of International Affairs, 15(1), 159-163. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09557570220126379 Farnen, Russell F. (1990): Terrorism and the Mass Media: A Systemic Analysis of a Symbiotic Process. Terrorism, 13(2), 99-143. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576109008435820 S91 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Farnsworth, Stephen J.; Lichter, S. Robert (2005): Reporting on Two Presidencies: News Coverage of George W. Bush's First Year in Office. Congress & the Presidency, 32(2), 91-108. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/07343460509507679 Farrell, Laura C.; Littlefield, Robert S. (2012, June): Identifying Communication Strategies in Cases of Domestic Terrorism: Applying Cultural Context to the Fort Hood Shooting. Journal of Homeland Security and Emergency Management, 9(1). DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1515/15477355.1949 Farwell, James P. (2010): Jihadi Video in the "War of Ideas". Survival, 52(6), 127-150. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00396338.2010.540787 Feigenbaum, Anna (2012, June): Security for Sale! The Visual Rhetoric of Marketing Counter-Terrorism Technologies. The Poster, 2(1), 75-92. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/post.2.1.75_1 Feinman Todd, Barbara (2011): The Pearl Project: Key Findings. Middle East Media Educator, 1(1), 76-81. URL: http://ro.uow.edu.au/meme/vol1/iss1/14 Fernandes, Hugo (2003): Is the Safety of Journalists in Timor Leste Guaranteed? In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 78-79. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Ferrell, Jeff; Greer, Chris; Jewkes, Yvonne (2005, March): Hip Hop Graffiti, Mexican Murals and the War on Terror. Crime Media Culture, 1(1), 5-9. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1741659005050240 Figenschou, Tine Ustad (2006): Courting, Criticism, Censorship and Bombs: The Bush Administration’s Troubled Relations with Al-Jazeera Channel from September 11 to the War in Iraq. Nordicom Review, 27(1), 81-96. URL: http://www.nordicom.gu.se/common/publ_pdf/226_figenschou.pdf S92 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Fighel, Jonathan (2007): Radical Islamic Internet Propaganda: Concepts, Idioms and Visual Motifs. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 34-38. Fighel, Jonathan (2009, December 19): The Saudi Double-Game: The Internet "Counter-Radicalization" Campaign in Saudi Arabia. ICT Article. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Articles/tabid/66/Articlsid/789/currentpage/6/Default.aspx Finaud, Marc (2006, June): Information Technology, Terrorism, and Global Security. In: Nayef R. F. Al-Rodhan (Ed.): Policy Briefs on the Transcultural Aspects of Security and Stability. (Geneva Centre for Security Policy). Zürich: LIT Verlag, 167-178. URL: http://mercury.ethz.ch/serviceengine/Files/ISN/26472/ipublicationdocument_singledocument/af f3994a-7ec2-4142-ab31-f39d47362ff9/en/Brief-1.pdf Finch, Simon (2008): Cyber-Terrorism Poses a Serious Threat to Global Security. In: Louise I. Gerdes (Ed.): Cyber Crime. Detroit: Greenhaven Press, 35-40. Fine, Janet (2010): Alternative Viewpoints: The Indian Media Perspective on the 9/11 Attacks. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 217-226. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Finnegan, Lisa (2009): A Distracted Media: Sidetracked and Hoodwinked. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 99-118. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Finsnes, Cecilie (2010, March 26): What is Audio-Visual Jihadi Propaganda? An Overview of the Content of FFI’s Jihadi Video Database. FFI/RAPPORT-2010/00960. URL: http://rapporter.ffi.no/rapporter/2010/00960.pdf S93 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Fisher Liu, Brooke; Briones, Rowena L. (2012): New Media, Public Relations, and Terrorism Resilience. In: Sandra Duhé (Ed.): New Media and Public Relations. (2nd ed.). New York: Peter Lang, 126-133. Fleming, Dan (2011): The Talk of the Town: 9/11, the Lost Image, and the Machiavellian Moment. Global Media Journal: Canadian Edition, 4(2), 63-77. URL: http://www.gmj.uottawa.ca/1102/v4i2_fleming_abstract.html Fleming, Robert S. (2008): Corporate Expectations of the IT Department in an Age of Terrorism: Ensuring "Battle Readiness". Information Security Journal, 17(5-6), 243-246. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19393550802520162 Foggetti, Nadina (2009): Cyber-Terrorism and the Right to Privacy in the Third Pillar Perspective. Masaryk University Journal of Law and Technology, 3(3), 365-376. URL: http://mujlt.law.muni.cz/view.php?cisloclanku=2010030029 Ford, Elisabeth (2011): Let's Roll: Hollywood Takes on 9/11. In: Aviva Briefel; Sam J. Miller (Eds.): Horror after 9/11: World of Fear, Cinema of Terror. Austin: University of Texas Press, 40-61. Forest, James J. F. (2012): Media and the Internet. In: The Terrorism Lectures. Santa Ana: Nortia Press, 99-118. Forest, James J. F. (2012, March): Perception Challenges Faced by Al-Qaeda on the Battlefield of Influence Warfare. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(1), 8-22. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/forest-perception-challenges Forster, Peter K. (2012, November): Countering Individual Jihad: Perspectives on Nidal Hasan and Colleen LaRose. Combating Terrorism Exchange, 2(4). URL: https://globalecco.org/countering-individual-jihad-perspectives-on-nidal-hasan-and-colleenlarose S94 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Fourie, Pieter J. (2001): Unit 17: Media and Terrorism. In: Media Studies. (Vol. 1: Institutions, Theories and Issues). Lansdowne: Juta, 537-567. Fox, Julia R. (2005): Where were you on Sept. 11? TV Viewing and Recall of Events. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 231-240. Fox, Richard (2006): Strong and Weak Media? On the Representation of "Terorisme" in Contemporary Indonesia. Modern Asian Studies, 40(4), 993-1052. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1017/S0026749X06002307 Fox, Richard (2007): Visions of Terror: On the Use of Images in the Mass Mediated Representations of the Bali Bombing. In: Hillel Nossek; Annabelle Sreberny; Prasun Sonwalkar (Eds.): Media and Political Violence. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 211-246. URL: http://berubah2.files.wordpress.com/2011/09/4-visions-of-terror.pdf Foxley, Tim (2007, June): The Taliban’s Propaganda Activities: How Well is the Afghan Insurgency Communicating and what is it Saying? SIPRI Project Paper. URL: www.sipri.org/research/conflict/publications/foxley Foxley, Tim (2010, December): Countering Taliban Information Operations in Afghanistan. PRISM, 1(4), 79-94. URL: http://www.ndu.edu/press/countering-taliban-information-operations.html Fraley, Todd; Roushanzamir, Elli Lester (2006): Critical Media Theory, Democratic Communication, and Global Conflict. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 125-144. Francisc-Norbert, Ormeny (2010): Terrorism and the Media (A Case Study on Robert Mcliam Wilson’s Novel Eureka Street). Studia Universitatis Babes-Bolyai – Ephemerides, 1/2010, 7192. S95 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Frank, Michael C. (2012): Plots on London: Terrorism in Turn-Of-The-Century British Fiction. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 41-67. Frank, Michael C.; Gruber, Eva (2012): Literature and Terrorism: Introduction. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 1-26. Frank, Russell (2004, October): When the Going Gets Tough, the Tough Go Photoshopping: September 11 and the Newslore of Vengeance and Victimization. New Media & Society, 6(5), 633658. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/146144804047084 Franks, Anton (2008): School Drama and Representations of War and Terror – Some Theoretical Approaches to Understanding Learning in Drama in Troubled Times. Research in Drama Education, 13(1), 23-37. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13569780701825211 Franks, Suzanne; Shaw, Ibrahim Seaga (2012, April): Global Media and the War on Terror: Why some Wars Matter. Journal of African Media Studies, 4(1), 5-11. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jams.4.1.5_7 Frederking, Lauretta Conklin (2012): A Comparative Study of Framing Immigration Policy after 11 September 2001. Policy Studies, 33(4), 283-296. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01442872.2012.694184 Freedman, Des; Thussu, Daya Kishan (2012): Introduction: Dynamics of Media and Terrorism. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 1-20. Fremont, Wanda P.; Pataki, Caroly; Beresin, Eugene V. (2005, July): The Impact of Terrorism on Children and Adolescents: Terror in the Skies, Terror on Television. Child and Adolescent Psychiatric Clinics of North America, 14(3), 429-451. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.chc.2005.02.001 S96 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Frenett, Ross; Smith, M. L. R. (2012): IRA 2.0: Continuing the Long War – Analyzing the Factors Behind Anti-GFA Violence. Terrorism and Political Violence, 24(3), 375-395. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2011.624862 Frey, Bruno S.; Rohner, Dominik (2006, April): Blood and Ink! The Common-Interest-Game Between Terrorists and the Media. Institute for Empirical Research in Economics Working Paper Series, No. 285. URL: http://www.iew.unizh.ch/wp/iewwp285.pdf Freyer, Walter; Schröder, Alexander (2007): Tourism and Terrorism: An Analytical Framework with Special Focus on the Media. In: Eric Laws; Bruce Prideaux; Kaye Chon (Eds.): Crisis Management in Tourism. Wallingford: CABI, 129-141. Fried, Amy (2005, Summer): Terrorism as a Context of Coverage before the Iraq War. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 10(3), 125-132. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X05279509 Friedman, Barbara (2008, December): Unlikely Warriors: How Four U.S. News Sources Explained Female Suicide Bombers. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 85(4), 841-859. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900808500408 Friedman, Menahem; Schneider, Moti; Kandel, Abraham (2005): Clustering Algorithms for Variable-Length Vectors and their Application to Detecting Terrorist Activities. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 91-104. Frohneberg, Rosaviola; Steinberg, Guido (2012, October): Videopropaganda und Radikalisierung. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 76-88. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studien-de/swp-studiendetail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html Frosh, Paul; Wolfsfeld, Gadi (2007, January): ImagiNation: News Discourse, Nationhood and Civil Society. Media, Culture, & Society, 29(1), 105-129. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0163443706072001 URL: http://politics.huji.ac.il/gadiwolfsfeld/pdf/ImagiNation%20News%20Discourse.pdf S97 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Frost, Laura (2011): Black Screens, Lost Bodies: The Cinematic Apparatus of 9/11 Horror. In: Aviva Briefel; Sam J. Miller (Eds.): Horror after 9/11: World of Fear, Cinema of Terror. Austin: University of Texas Press, 13-39. Froula, Anna (2010): Prolepsis and the "War on Terror": Zombie Pathology and the Culture of Fear in 28 Days Later... In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 195-208. Fu, Laura (2011): The Government Response to 9/11: Communications Technology and the Media. Library & Archival Security, 24(2), 103-118. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01960075.2011.592034 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/01960075.2011.592034 Fu, Tianjun; Abbasi, Ahmed; Chen, Hsinchun (2010, June): A Focused Crawler for Dark Web Forums. Journal of the American Society for Information Science and Technology, 61(6), 12131231. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/asi.21323 URL: http://ahmedabbasi.com/uploads/Fu_JASIST_2.pdf Fu, Tianjun; Huang, Chun-Neng; Chen, Hsinchun (2009): Identification of Extremist Videos in Online Video Sharing Sites. In: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE) (Ed.): IEEE International Conference on Intelligence and Security Informatics, ISI 2009, Dallas, Texas, USA, June 8-11, 2009: Proceedings. Atlanta: IEEE, 179-181. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/ISI.2009.5137295 Fuller, Linda K. (1988): Terrorism as Treated by the Christian Science Monitor, 1977–1987. Political Communication, 5(2), 121-137. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1988.9962844 Furnell, S. M.; Warren, M. J. (1999): Computer Hacking and Cyber Terrorism: The Real Threats in the New Millennium? Computers & Security, 18(1), 28-34. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S0167-4048(99)80006-6 S98 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement #G Gaasholt, Øystein (2005, December): A Note on "Terror(ism) and the Media". P.O.V., 20. URL: http://pov.imv.au.dk/Issue_20/section_1/artc8A.html Gaber, Ivor; Thomas, Lisa (2009): Is the BBC Biased? The Corporation and the Coverage of the 2006 Israeli–Hezbollah War. In: Lee Marsden; Heather Savigny (Eds.): Media, Religion and Conflict. Farnham: Asghate, 39-58. Gable, Kelly A. (2010): Cyber-Apocalypse Now: Securing the Internet against Cyberterrorism and Using Universal Jurisdiction as a Deterrent. Vanderbilt Journal of Transnational Law, 43, 57118. URL: http://www.vanderbilt.edu/jotl/2012/07/cyber-apocalypse-now-securing-theinternet-against-cyberterrorism-and-using-universal-jurisdiction-as-a-deterrent Gadarian, Shana Kushner (2010, April): The Politics of Threat: How Terrorism News Shapes Foreign Policy Attitudes. The Journal of Politics, 72(2), 469-483. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1017/S0022381609990910 Gaisbauer, Felix (2012): Darstellungen von Viktimisierung und Verantwortlichkeit während der Zweiten Intifada und dem Gazakrieg in deutschen Qualitätstageszeitungen. conflict & communication online, 11(2). URL: http://www.cco.regener-online.de/2012_2/pdf/gaisbauer_dt.pdf Galtung, Johan; Ruge, Marie Holmboe (1965): The Structure of Foreign News: The Presentation of the Congo, Cuba and Cyprus Crises in Four Norwegian Newspapers . Journal of Peace Research, 2(1), 64-91. URL: http://xa.yimg.com/kq/groups/22925642/1051560752/name/Galtung+and+Ruge+The+Structure+of+Foreign+News.pdf Galvin, Michael (2003): September 11 and the Logistics of Communication. Continuum, 17(3), 303-313. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304310302733 S99 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ganor, Boaz (2007): Chapter 8: Dilemmas Concerning Media Coverage of Terrorist Attacks. In: The Counter-Terrorism Puzzle: A Guide for Decision Makers. New Brunswick: Transaction Books, 229-250. Ganor, Boaz (2009): Terrorism Networks: It Takes a Network to Beat a Network. In: Paul R. Kleindorfer; Yoram (Jerry) R. Wind; Robert E. Gunther (Eds): The Network Challenge: Strategy, Profit, and Risk in an Interlinked World. Upper Saddle River: Pearson Education, 453-470. Gao, Mobo C. F.; Liang, Ming (2010): Chinese Print Media Coverage of 9/11 since 2001. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 186-205. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Gardella, Todd M. (2006, Spring): Beyond Terrorism: The Potential Chilling Effect on the Internet of Broad Law Enforcement Legislation. St. John's Law Review, 80(2), 655-692. URL: http://www.stjohns.edu/media/3/4a419a82882b4ddf8a05ffa924b311df.pdf Gardner, Elizabeth (2007): Is there Method to the Madness? Worldwide Press Coverage of Female Terrorists and Journalistic Attempts to Rationalize their Involvement. Journalism Studies, 8(6), 909-929. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14616700701556799 Garfield, Andrew (2007): The U.S. Counter-Propaganda Failure in Iraq. Middle East Quarterly, 14(4), 22-32. URL: http://www.meforum.org/1753/the-us-counter-propaganda-failure-in-iraq Garner, George (2011, January): Case Studies in Exploiting Terrorist Group Divisions with Disinformation and Divisive/Black Propaganda. Journal of Terrorism Research, 1(1), 3-14. URL: http://ojs.st-andrews.ac.uk/index.php/jtr/article/view/164 Gartenstein-Ross, Daveed; Vassefi, Tara (2012): Perceptions of the "Arab Spring": Within the Salafi-Jihadi Movement. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 35(12), 831-848. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2012.720241 S100 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Gartner, Scott Sigmund (2004): Making the International Local: The Terrorist Attack on the USS Cole, Local Casualties, and Media Coverage. Political Communication, 21(2), 139-159. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584600490443859 Gätje, Olaf (2010): Der Logos der RAF im Terrorismusdiskurs der Medien oder die diskursive Produktion von Unverstand und Unverständlichkeit. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 223-244. Gauthier, Tim (2010): 9/11, Image Control, and the Graphic Narrative: Spiegelman, Rehr, Torres. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 46(3-4), 369-380. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2010.482420 Geoff, Dean; Peter, Bell; Jack, Newman (2012, January): The Dark Side of Social Media: Review of Online Terrorism. Pakistan Journal of Criminology, 3(3), 103-122. URL: http://pakistansocietyofcriminology.com/backoffice/editor/upload/PDF%20of%20Vol %203%20No_%203.pdf Gerbner, George (2007): Television Violence at a Time of Turmoil and Terror. In: Donaldo P. Macedo; Shirley R. Steinberg (Eds.): Media Literacy: A Reader. New York: Peter Lang, 103-115. Gerbner, George; Signorielli, Nancy (1988): Violence and Terror in the Mass Media. UNESCO Reports and Papers on Mass Communication, No. 102. URL: http://unesdoc.unesco.org/images/0008/000826/082684eo.pdf Gercke, Marco (2010): Challenges in Developing a Legal Response to Terrorist Use of the Internet. Defence Against Terrorism Review, 3(2), 37-58. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/datr6/DATR_Fall2010_.pdf Gercke, Marco (2012): Legal Responses to Terrorist Use of the Internet. In: Kenan Tokgöz (Ed.): Enhancing Cooperation in Defence against Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 99): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 19-34. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-61499-103-8-19 S101 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement German, Tracey (2007): Terrorism in the Caucasus: A Western Perspective. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 131-140. Germer, Kerstin (2012): Zwischen Politisierung und Ästhetisierung – Der Tod Benno Ohnesorgs in den Romanen Uwe Timms. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 257-270. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4-bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 Gerrits, Robin P. J. M. (1992): Terrorists' Perspectives: Memoirs. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 29-61. Gerwarth, Robert (2012): "Krieg im Frieden": Der "Weiße Terror" in den Nachfolgestaaten des Habsburgerreiches. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 123-136. Ghetti, Michelle Ward (2008, June): The Terrorist is a Star! Regulating Media Coverage of Publicity-Seeking Crimes. Federal Communications Law Journal, 60(3), 481-434. URL: http://www.law.indiana.edu/fclj/pubs/v60/no3/8-Ghetti.pdf Giacomello, Giampiero (2004): Bangs for the Buck: A Cost-Benefit Analysis of Cyberterrorism. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 27(5), 387-408. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100490483660 URL: https://imtlucca.it/whats_new/_seminars_docs/000196-paper_giacomello.pdf Gibbons, Meghan (2009): Representing the Real on The Road to Guantanamo. ́ In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 103-126. S102 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Gilbert, Paul (1992): The Oxygen of Publicity: Terrorism and Reporting Restrictions. In: Andrew Belsey; Ruth F. Chadwick (Eds.): Ethical Issues in Journalism and the Media. London: Routledge, 101-112. Gillespie, Marie (2006): Transnational Television Audiences after September 11. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 903-921. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761511 Gillespie, Marie (2011): "Our Ground Zeros": Diaspora, Media and Memory. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 252-270. Gillespie, Marie; O'Loughlin, Ben (2009): News Media, Threats and Insecurities: An Ethnographic Approach. Cambridge Review of International Affairs, 22(4), 667-685. Ginsberg, Terri (2011): Radical Rationalism as Cinema Aesthetics: The Palestinian-Israeli Conflict in North American Documentary and Experimental Film. Situations: Project of the Radical Imagination, 4(1), 91-115. URL: http://ojs.gc.cuny.edu/index.php/situations/article/download/767/1198 Giroux, Henry A. (2007): Beyond the Spectacle of Terrorism: Rethinking Politics in the Society of the Image. Situations: Project of the Radical Imagination, 2(1), 17-52. URL: http://ojs.gc.cuny.edu/index.php/situations/article/view/153 Glaab, Sonja (2007): Die RAF und die Medien in den 1970er Jahren. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 31-50. Glaab, Sonja (2007): Medien und Terrorismus – eine Einführung. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 11-15. S103 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Glück, Cornelia (2007): ETA und die Medien. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 17-30. Glynn, Ruth (2009): Through the Lens of Trauma: The Figure of the Female Terrorist in Il prigioniero and Buongiorno, notte. In: Pierpaolo Antonello; Alan O’Leary (Eds.): Imagining Terrorism: The Rhetoric and Representation of Political Violence in Italy 1969-2009. (Italian Perspectives, Vol. 18). London: Legenda, 63-76. Goede, Marieke de (2008): Money, Media and the Anti-Politics of Terrorist Finance. European Journal of Cultural Studies, 11(3), 289-310. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1367549408091845 URL: http://peer.ccsd.cnrs.fr/docs/00/57/15/79/PDF/PEER_stage2_10.1177%252F136754940809184 5.pdf Goede, Marieke de (2008, April): Beyond Risk: Premediation and the Post-9/11 Security Imagination. Security Dialogue, 39(2-3), 155-176. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0967010608088773 URL: http://www.uva.nl/binaries/hst%3Ahst/hst%3Asites/uva-nl/hst %3Acontent/personalpages/g/o/m.degoede/en/tab-one/tab-one/cpitem%5B30%5D/asset Goede, Marieke de (2012): Fighting the Network: A Critique of the Network as a Security Technology. Distinktion. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1600910X.2012.697073 Gohel, Sajjan M. (2009, December): The Internet and its Role in Terrorist Recruitment and Operational Planning. CTC Sentinel, 2(12), 12-15. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinel-Vol2Iss12.pdf Gokul, T. G. (2011, December): Covering Crises: Indian News Channels and the Mumbai Terror Attacks. Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 269-274. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427501 S104 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Gold, Steve (2011, July): Terrorism and Bluetooth. Network Security, 7/2011, 5-7. URL: http://www.univie.ac.at/jihadism/blog/wp-content/uploads/2011/07/Steve-Gold-Terrorism-andBluetooth-Network-Security-July-2011.pdf Golubev, Vladimir (2008): Cybercrime and Cyberterrorism as a New Security Threat. In: Cecilia S. Gal; Paul B. Kantor; Bracha Shapira (Eds.): Security Informatics and Terrorism: Patrolling the Web: Social and Technical Problems of Detecting and Controlling Terrorists' Use of the World Wide Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 15). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 20-25. Gonçalves, Diana (2012): From Panic to Mourning: 9/11 and the Need for Spectacle. In: Daniela Agostinho; Elisa Antz; Cátia Ferreira (Eds.): Panic and Mourning: The Cultural Work of Trauma. (Culture & Conflict, Vol. 1). Berlin: De Gruyter, 233-246. Gong, Gang; Leipnik, Mark R. (2008): Use of Remotely Sensed Imagery in Cyber Warfare and Cyber Counterterrorism. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 298-305. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140991-5.ch035 Goodall, H. L. et al. (2012, March): Rhetorical Charms: The Promise and Pitfalls of Humor and Ridicule as Strategies to Counter Extremist Narratives. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(1), 70-79. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/goodall-et-al-rhetorical Goodman, Marc (2008): Understanding International "Cyberterrorism": A Law Enforcement Perspective. In: Cecilia S. Gal; Paul B. Kantor; Bracha Shapira (Eds.): Security Informatics and Terrorism: Patrolling the Web: Social and Technical Problems of Detecting and Controlling Terrorists' Use of the World Wide Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 15). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 8-16. Goodman, Marc (2011, June): Killer Apps – The Revolution in Network Terrorism. Jane's Intelligence Review, 23(7), 14-19. S105 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Goodman, Seymour E.; Kirk, Jessica C.; Kirk, Megan H. (2007, February): Cyberspace as a Medium for Terrorists. Technological Forecasting and Social Change, 74(2), 193-210. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.techfore.2006.07.007 Gordon, Avishag (1995): Terrorism and Computerized Databases: An Examination of Multidisciplinary Coverage. Terrorism and Political Violence, 7(4), 171-177. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559508427323 Gordon, Avishag (1996): Research Note: Terrorism and Science, Technology and Medicine Databases: New Concepts and Terminology. Terrorism and Political Violence, 8(1), 167-173. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559608427338 Gordon, Avishag (1997): Terrorism on the Internet: Discovering the Unsought. Terrorism and Political Violence, 9(4), 159-165. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559708427435 Gordon, Avishag (1998): The Spread of Terrorism Publications: A Database Analysis. Terrorism and Political Violence, 10(4), 190-193. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559808427488 Gordon, Avishag (2004): The Effect of Database and Website Inconstancy on the Terrorism Field's Delineation. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 27(2), 79-88. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100490275076 Gordon, Sarah (2011): Cyberterrorism? Symantec White Paper. URL: http://www.symantec.com/avcenter/reference/cyberterrorism.pdf Gordon, Sarah; Ford, Richard (2002, November): Cyberterrorism? Computers & Security, 21(7), 636-647. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S0167-4048(02)01116-1 Gorge, Mathieu (2007, February): Cyberterrorism: Hype or Reality? Computer Fraud & Security, 2/2007, 9-12. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1361-3723(07)70021-0 URL: http://www.vigitrust.com/mysitecaddy/sitedata/vigitrust.com/images/pdf/resource/legal/CyberC rime_CFS_2007.pdf S106 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Gormly, Eric (2004): Peering Beneath the Veil: An Ethnographic Content Analysis of Islam as Portrayed on The 700 Club following the September 11th Attacks. Journal of Media and Religion, 3(4), 219-238. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15328415jmr0304_3 Goth, Greg (2008, April): Terror on the Internet: A Complex Issue, and Getting Harder. IEEE Distributed Systems Online, 9(3), Article No. 0803-o3003. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/MDSO.2008.11 URL: http://ieeexplore.ieee.org/stamp/stamp.jsp? tp=&arnumber=4483781 Gowing, Nik (2003): Journalists and War: The Troubling New Tensions post 9/11. In: Daya Kishan Thussu; Des Freedman (Eds.): War and the Media: Reporting Conflict 24/7. London: SAGE, 231-240. Graber, Doris A. (2003): Terrorism, Censorship and the 1st Amendment: In Search of Policy Guidelines. In: Pippa Norris; Montague Kern; Marion Just (Eds.): Framing Terrorism: The News Media, the Government and the Public. New York: Routledge, 27-42. Grabes, Herbert (2012): The Impact of "September 11": Dramatic and Narrative Creations. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 249-262. Graves, Kristi D.; Schmidt, John E.; Andrykowski, Michael A. (2005, September): Writing about September 11, 2001: Exploration of Emotional Intelligence and the Social Environment. Journal of Language and Social Psychology, 24(3), 285-299. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0261927X05278389 Gray, David H.; Head, Albon (2009): The Importance of the Internet to the Post-Modern Terrorist and its Role as a Form of Safe Haven. European Journal of Scientific Research, 25(3), 396-404. URL: http://www.eurojournals.com/ejsr_25_3_05.pdf Green, Joshua (2008): The Problem of Cyberterrorism is Exaggerated. In: Louise I. Gerdes (Ed.): Cyber Crime. Detroit: Greenhaven Press, 40-51. S107 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Green, Lelia (2003, November): The New "Others": Media and Society Post-September 11. Media International Australia, 109, 7-13. Greenberg, Nathaniel (2010, Fall): War in Pieces: AMIA and The Triple Frontier in Argentine and American Discourse on Terrorism. A Contracorriente, 8(1), 61-93. URL: http://www.ncsu.edu/acontracorriente/fall_10/articles/Greenberg.pdf Griffin, Michael (2004, November): Picturing America’s "War on Terrorism" in Afghanistan and Iraq: Photographic Motifs as News Frames. Journalism, 5(4), 381-402. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1464884904044201 URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/2052/photo.pdf Grindstaff, Davin Allen; DeLuca, Kevin Michael (2004): The Corpus of Daniel Pearl. Critical Studies in Media Communication, 21(4), 305-324. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0739318042000245345 Grinyaev, Sergey (2003): The Mass Media and Terrorism: A Russian View. European Security, 12(2), 85-88. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09662830412331308086 Gronnvoll, Marita (2010): 24: Reshaping the Messiah. In: Media Representations of Gender and Torture Post-9/11. (Routledge Studies in Rhetoric and Communication, Vol. 4) New York: Routledge, 109-127. Gronnvoll, Marita (2010): Torture Television. In: Media Representations of Gender and Torture Post-9/11. (Routledge Studies in Rhetoric and Communication, Vol. 4) New York: Routledge, 82-108. Gross, Andrew; Stapf, Ingrid (2002): Terror und Konsens: Reaktionen der US-Medien infolge des Terroranschlags am 11. September. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 129-139. S108 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Gross, Kimberly; Aday, Sean; Brewer, Paul R. (2004, Fall): A Panel Study of Media Effects on Political and Social Trust after September 11, 2001. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 9(4), 49-73. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X04269138 Grössinger, Leif (2010): Public Image and Self-Representation: Don DeLillo's Artists and Terrorists in Postmodern Mass Society. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 81-92. Gruber, Eva (2012): Narrating Terrorism on the Eve of 9/11: Ann Patchett’s Bel Canto. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 87-102. Gruen, Madeleine (2006): Innovative Recruitment and Indoctrination Tactics by Extremists: Video Games, Hip Hop, and the World Wide Web. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): The Making of a Terrorist. (Vol. 1. Recruitment). Westport: Praeger Security International, 11-22. Grumke, Thomas (2010): "Andi" – Educational Comic and Website for Democracy and against Extremism. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 211-220. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-211 Grusin, Elinor Kelley; Utt, Sandra H. (2005): The Challenge: To Examine Media's Role, Performance on 9/11 and after. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 1-12. Guadagno, Rosanna E. et al. (2010): Social Influence in the Online Recruitment of Terrorists and Terrorist Sympathizers. International Review of Social Psychology, 23(1), 25-56. URL: http://osil.psy.ua.edu/pubs/socialinfluence&terrorism.pdf Guclu, Idris; Sevinc, Bilal (2011): The Impact of Information Society on Terrorism and Counterterrorism: A Case Study of Turkey. In: Sıddık Ekici (Ed.): Counter Terrorism in Diverse Commu- S109 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement nities. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 90). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 136-144. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-970-7-136 Gugler, Thomas K. (2012): From Kalashnikov to Keyboard: Pakistan’s Jihadiscapes and the Transformation of Lashkar-e Tayba. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 37-62. Gunaratna, Rohan (2008): Understanding the Challenge of Ideological Extremism. UNISCI Discussion Papers, 18, 113-126. URL: http://revistas.ucm.es/index.php/UNIS/article/view/UNIS0808330113A Gupta, Manish; Rao, H. R. (2008): Role of FS-ISAC in Countering Cyber Terrorism. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 83-90. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-991-5.ch011 #H Habermann, Mario (2012): Die Agitatoren von Stammheim: Die 1. Generation der RAF im Licht von Brechts Maßnahme. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 291308. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4-bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 Hacker, Frederick J. (1980): Terror and Terrorism: Modern Growth Industry and Mass Entertainment. Terrorism, 4(1-4), 143-159. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108008435488 Hackett, Robert A. (2007): Media Terror? Media Development, 3/2007. URL: http://www.waccglobal.org/en/20073-media-and-terror/469-Media-terror.html Hacohen, Eli (2010): Digital Hate: Terror, Anti-Semitism and Racism on the Internet. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 3-6. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-3 S110 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Haes, Joachim W. H. (2002): Catching the Wave: German Media on September 11. Prometheus, 20(3), 277-280. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141335 Hafez, Kai (2005): Islamismus und Medien – eine unheilvolle Symbiose – Transkript einer Rede. In: Jörgen Klußmann (Ed.): Terrorismus und Medien – eine komplexe Beziehung. Bonn: Evangelische Akademie im Rheinland, 55-60. Hafez, Kai; Richter, Carola (2007): Das Islambild von ARD und ZDF. Aus Politik und Zeitgeschichte, 26-27/2007. URL: http://www.bpb.de/apuz/30402/das-islambild-von-ard-und-zdf? p=all Hafez, Mohammed M. (2007): Martyrdom Mythology in Iraq: How Jihadists Frame Suicide Terrorism in Videos and Biographies. Terrorism and Political Violence, 19(1), 95-115. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550601054873 URL: http://www.international.ucla.edu/cms/files/Martyrdom%20Mythology%20in%20Iraq.pdf Häfner, Lutz (2012): Russland als Geburtsland des modernen "Terrorismus"? oder: "Das classische Land des politischen Attentats". In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 65-98. Hahn, Oliver; Lönnendonker, Julia (2009, October): Transatlantic Foreign Reporting and Foreign Correspondents after 9/11: Trends in Reporting Europe in the United States. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 14(4), 497-515. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1940161209336218 Hairgrove, Frank; McLeod, Douglas M.; Shah, Dhavan V. (2009): Strategic Uses of the Internet by Hizbut Tahrir-Indonesia. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Influence Warfare: How Terrorists and Governments Fight to Shape Perceptions in a War of Ideas. Westport: Praeger Security International, 329-343. S111 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Halchin, L. Elaine (2002): Electronic Government in the Age of Terrorism. Government Information Quarterly, 19(3), 243-254. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S0740-624X(02)00104-1 URL: http://www.ekt.gr/content/img/product/4428/Government%20Information%20Quarterly%3B %2019%20(3)%202002,%20p.243-54.pdf Hale, W. Chris (2012): Extremism on the World Wide Web: A Research Review. Criminal Justice Studies. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1478601X.2012.704723 Halevi, Jonathan Dahoah (2010): The Israeli-Palestinian Conflict Reflected through the Internet. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 115-121. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/9781-60750-537-2-115 Halevi, Leor (2012, February): The Consumer Jihad: Boycott Fatwas and Nonviolent Resistance on the World Wide Web. International Journal of Middle East Studies, 44(1), 45-70. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1017/S0020743811001243 Halfmann, Roman (2010): Neo-Terrorismus im Zeichen der RAF: Die Aufarbeitung des Deutschen Herbstes in der deutschen Gegenwartsliteratur zwischen Klischee und Absetzung. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 333-348. Hall, C. Michael (2002): Travel Safety, Terrorism and the Media: The Significance of the Issue-Attention Cycle. Current Issues in Tourism, 5(5), 458-466. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13683500208667935 Hallams, Ellen (2010, December): Digital Diplomacy: The Internet, the Battle for Ideas & US Foreign Policy. CEU Political Science Journal, 5(4), 538-574. URL: http://www.ceu.hu/sites/default/files/field_attachment/page/node-15553/vol54.pdf S112 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Haller, Michael (2002): Der Journalismus im Medien-Theater. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 46-53. Haller, Michael (2002, April 2): Der Journalismus im Medien-Theater. Medienheft. URL: http://www.medienheft.ch/uploads/media/k18_HallerMichael.pdf Halse, Rolf (2011): The Muslim-American Neighbour as Terrorist: The Representation of a Muslim Family in 24. Reconstruction, 11(4). URL: http://reconstruction.eserver.org/114/halse_rolf.shtml Halse, Rolf (2012): Negotiating Boundaries between us and them: Ethnic Norwegians and Norwegian Muslims Speak out about the "Next Door Neighbour Terrorist" in 24. Nordicom Review, 33(1), 37-52. URL: http://www.nordicom.gu.se/common/publ_pdf/359_halse.pdf Halse, Rolf (2012, November): The Muslim-American Neighbour as Terrorist: The Representation of a Muslim Family in 24. Journal of Arab & Muslim Media Research, 5(1), 3-18. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jammr.5.1.3_1 Halverson, Jeffry R.; Way, Amy K. (2012, August): The Curious Case of Colleen LaRose: Social Margins, New Media, and Online Radicalization. Media, War & Conflict, 5(2), 139-153. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635212440917 Hamada, Basyouni I. (2003): Media, Violence and Terrorism in the Arab World. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 101-106. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Hammitt, Harry (2005, Winter): Less Safe: The Dismantling of Public Information Systems after 9/11. Social Science Computer Review, 23(4), 429-438. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0894439305278872 S113 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hammond, Adam (2008, June 28): Terrorists and Terrorism: The Cost of a Redundant State Media Strategy. Small Wars Journal, June/2008. URL: http://smallwarsjournal.com/jrnl/art/the-costof-a-redundant-state-media-strategy Hammond, Philip (2003): The Media War on Terrorism. Journal for Crime, Conflict and the Media, 1(1), 23-36. URL: http://ics-www.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/2116/HammondGWOT.pdf Hammond, Philip (2007): The Media War on Terrorism. In: Media, War and Postmodernity. London: Routledge, 59-80. Hanani, Uri (2008): Web Harvesting Intelligent Anti-Terror System – Technology and Methodology. In: Cecilia S. Gal; Paul B. Kantor; Bracha Shapira (Eds.): Security Informatics and Terrorism: Patrolling the Web: Social and Technical Problems of Detecting and Controlling Terrorists' Use of the World Wide Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 15). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 202-223. Handley, Robert L. (2008, April): Israeli Image Repair: Recasting the Deviant Actor to Retell the Story. Journal of Communication Inquiry, 32(2), 140-154. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0196859907311695 Hansen, James V. et al. (2007, August): Genetic Programming for Prevention of Cyberterrorism through Dynamic and Evolving Intrusion Detection. Decision Support Systems, 43(4), 13621374. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.dss.2006.04.004 Harb, Zahera; Bessaiso, Ehab (2006): British Arab Muslim Audiences and Television after September 11. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 1063-1076. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761529 URL: http://telematica.politicas.unam.mx/biblioteca/archivos/040106022.pdf Hardy, Keiran (2010): Operation Titstorm: Hacktivism or Cyberterrorism? University of New South Wales Law Journal, 33(2), 474-502. URL: http://www.austlii.edu.au/au/journals/UNSWLJ/2010/21.pdf S114 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hardy, Keiran (2011, April): WWWMDs: Cyber-Attacks against Infrastructure in Domestic Anti-Terror Laws. Computer Law & Security Review, 27(2), 152-161. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.clsr.2011.01.008 URL: http://www.gtcentre.unsw.edu.au/sites/gtcentre.unsw.edu.au/files/Hardy_2011CLSR.pdf Harindranath, Ramaswami (2009): Mediated Terrorism and Democracy in India. South Asia: Journal of South Asian Studies, 32(3), 518-532. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00856400903374376 Harrison, Simon J.; Todd, Zazie; Lawton, Rebecca (2008, December): Talk about Terrorism and the Media: Communicating with the Conduit Metaphor. Communication, Culture & Critique, 1(4), 378-395. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1753-9137.2008.00031.x Harrow, Martin (2011, May): Video-Recorded Decapitations: A Seemingly Perfect Terrorist Tactic that did not Spread. DIIS Working Paper 2011:08. URL: http://www.diis.dk/graphics/Publications/WP2011/WP%202011-08.martin-Harrow_videorecorded-decapitations_web.pdf Hasan, Daisy (2009, December): Guns and Guys in the Jungle; News and Terrorism in North-East India. Studies in South Asian Film & Media, 1(2), 265-283. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/safm.1.2.265/1 Hassan, Muhammad Haniff; Mohamed, Zulkifli (2012, December): Research Note: Inside an Indonesian Online Library for Radical Materials. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(6), 74-89. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/232 Hattotuwa, Sanjana (2009, February): Terrorised Media. Index on Censorship, 38(1), 40-44. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03064220802712183 Haußecker, Nicole (2007): Nachrichtenberichterstattung über Terrorismus: Eine Analyse der TVNachrichten über die Terroranschläge in Kenia 2002. conflict & communication online, 6(1). URL: http://www.cco.regener-online.de/2007_1/pdf/haussecker.pdf S115 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hawkins, Virgil (2012, April): Terrorism and News of Africa Post-9/11 Coverage in The New York Times. Journal of African Media Studies, 4(1), 13-25. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jams.4.1.13_1 Hawley, John C. (2010): Jihad as Rite of Passage: Tahar Djaout’s The Last Summer of Reason and Slimane Benaïssa’s The Last Night of a Damned Soul. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 46(34), 394-404. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2010.482429 Hays, Charles A. (2011): The 9/11 Decade: Social Imaginary and Healing Virtual Community Fracture. Global Media Journal: Canadian Edition, 4(2), 79-94. URL: http://www.gmj.uottawa.ca/1102/v4i2_hays_abstract.html Hazan, D. (2006, May 17): Al-Tajdeed Versus Al-Hesbah: Islamist Websites & the Conflict between Rival Arab & Muslim Political Forces. MEMRI Inquiry and Analysis Series, No. 275. URL: http://www.memrijttm.org/content/en/report.htm?report=1691¶m=IDTA Healey, Jason (2012, June 1): Preparing for Cyber 9/12. Atlantic Council Issue Brief. URL: http://www.acus.org/publication/preparing-cyber-912 Hedges, Joshua W. (2008): Eliminating the Learning Curve: A Pragmatic Look at Jihadist Use of the Internet. Journal of Applied Security Research, 3(1), 71-91. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1300/J530v03n01_07 Heffelfinger, Christopher (2010, March): Anwar al-`Awlaqi: Profile of a Jihadi Radicalizer. CTC Sentinel, 3(3), 1-4. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinelVol3Iss3.pdf Hegghammer, Thomas (2004, October 10): The Iraq Hostage Crisis: Abductions in Iraq, April-August 2004. FFI/RAPPORT-2004/03105. URL: http://rapporter.ffi.no/rapporter/2004/03105.pdf Held, Virginia (1997): The Media and Political Violence. The Journal of Ethics, 1(2), 187-202. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1023/A:1009797007570 S116 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Held, Virginia (2008): The Media and Political Violence. In: How Terrorism is Wrong: Morality and Political Violence. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 110-125. Hellberg, Ivar (1999): Hostage Negotiations and Control of the Media. Contemporary Security Policy, 20(1), 137-149. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13523269908404215 Helms, Andrew (2009): Politics of Information: The Internet and Islamist Politics in Jordan, Morocco and Egypt. Journal of Middle East Media, 5(1). URL: http://www2.gsu.edu/~wwwaus/Helms2009.pdf Henderson, Joseph V. (2005): The Virtual Terrorism Response Academy: Training for High‐Risk, Low‐Frequency Threats. In: James D. Westwood et al. (Eds.): Medicine Meets Virtual Reality 13 – The Magical Next Becomes the Medical Now. (Studies in Health Technology and Informatics, Vol. 111). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 185-190. URL: http://www.ists.dartmouth.edu/library/38.pdf Henschen, Jan (2010): Die Baader-Bande, die Medien und eine Montage – Der Roman "Rosenfest" von Leander Scholz. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 295-310. Hensgen, Tobin et al. (2003): Playing the "Cyber Terrorism Game": Towards a Semiotic Definition. Human Systems Management, 22(2), 51-61. Henze, Sylvia (2010): Die RAF und die DDR – Zur künstlerischen Darstellung eines "blinden Flecks" in Ulrich Woelks "Die letzte Vorstellung", Ulrich Plenzdorfs "Vater, Mutter, Mörderkind" und Volker Schlöndorffs "Die Stille nach dem Schuss". In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 179-198. Herbert, David (2007, August): Shifting Securities in Northern Ireland: "Terror" and "the Troubles" in Global Media and Local Memory. European Journal of Cultural Studies, 10(3), 343-359. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1367549407079706 S117 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Herman, Michael (2003): Counter-Terrorism, Information Technology and Intelligence Change. Intelligence and National Security, 18(4), 40-58. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/02684520310001693181 Hermann, Margaret G.; Hermann, Charles F. (1998): Hostage Taking, the Presidency, and Stress. In: Walter Reich (Ed.): Origins of Terrorism: Psychologies, Ideologies, Theologies, States of Mind. Washington: Woodrow Wilson Center Press, 211-230. Herz, Marion (2006): Prime Time Terror: The Case of La Jetée and 12 Monkeys. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 53-68. Hester, Joe Bob (2005): NYTimes Coverage before, during and after 9/11. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 39-48. Heuston, Sean (2005, April): Weapons of Mass Instruction: Terrorism, Propaganda Film, Politics, and us: New Media, New Meanings. Studies in Popular Culture, 27(3), 59-73. URL: http://pcasacas.org/SiPC/27.3/Weapons%20of%20Mass%20Instruction%20-%20Terrorism, %20Propoganda%20Film,%20Po.pdf Hewitt, Christopher (1992): Public's Perspectives. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 170-207. Hildreth, Steven A. (2002): Cyberwarfare. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 5. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 101-116. Hill, Andrew (2008): Hostage Videos in the War on Terror. In: Sean Redmond; Karen Randell (Eds.): War Body on Screen. London: Continuum, 247-262. URL: http://oro.open.ac.uk/17377 Hill, Matthew B. (2009): Tom Clancy, 24, and the Language of Autocracy. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 127-148. S118 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hillebrand, Claudia (2012): The Role of News Media in Intelligence Oversight. Intelligence and National Security, 27(5), 689-706. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/02684527.2012.708521 Hills, Jill (2006, June): What's New? War, Censorship and Global Transmission from the Telegraph to the Internet. International Communication Gazette, 68(3), 195-216. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048506063761 Hills, Matt (2011): Cutting into Concepts of "Reflectionist" Cinema? The Saw Franchise and Puzzles of Post-9/11 Horror. In: Aviva Briefel; Sam J. Miller (Eds.): Horror after 9/11: World of Fear, Cinema of Terror. Austin: University of Texas Press, 107-123. Hiltner, Eric (2005, Fall): Insurgent Media. Radical History Review, 2005(93), 101-106. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/01636545-2005-93-101 Hinde, Stephen (2003, April): Cyber-Terrorism in Context. Computers & Security, 22(3), 188-192. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S0167-4048(03)00303-1 Hindman, Douglas Blanks (2004): Media System Dependency and Public Support for the Press and President. Mass Communication and Society, 7(1), 29-42. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15327825mcs0701_3 Hinnen, Todd M. (2004): The Cyber-Front in the War on Terrorism: Curbing Terrorist Use of the Internet. The Columbia Science and Technology Law Review, 5. URL: http://www.stlr.org/html/volume5/hinnen.pdf Hinnen, Todd M. (2005): Responding to the Challenge of Terrorism on the Internet. In: Rohan Gunaratna (Ed.): Combating Terrorism. (Regionalism & Regional Security). Singapore: Marshall Cavendish Academic, 170-225. URL: http://www.perkinscoie.com/files/upload/PS_11_11TerroristUseInternet.pdf Hirji, Faiza (2011): Through the Looking Glass: Muslim Women on Television – An Analysis of 24, Lost, and Little Mosque on the Prairie. Global Media Journal: Canadian Edition, 4(2), 33-47. URL: http://www.gmj.uottawa.ca/1102/v4i2_hirji_abstract.html S119 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hirschmann, Kai (2003): Grundelemente im terroristischen Kalkül. In: Terrorismus. (wissen 3000). Hamburg: Europäische Verlagsanstalt, 36-55. Hissnauer, Christian (2010): "Mogadischu": Opferdiskurs doku/dramatisch – Narrative des Erinnerns an die RAF im bundesdeutschen Fernsehen 1978–2008. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 99-126. Hobart, Mark (2007): Round Up the Usual Suspects: Some Radical Implications of Indonesian and Euro-American Media Coverage of "Terrorist" Attacks. In: Hillel Nossek; Annabelle Sreberny; Prasun Sonwalkar (Eds.): Media and Political Violence. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 183-210. Hochberg-Marom, Anat (2009): Al-Qaeda: Its Global Marketing Strategy. In: Umberto Gori (Ed.): Modelling Cyber Security: Approaches, Methodology, Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 59): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 109-113. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-074-2-109 Hocking, Jennifer Jane (1992): Governments' Perspectives. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 86-104. Hoffbauer, Andreas Michael (2011): Competing Claims: When do Corsican Nationalists Gain Foreign News Coverage? Terrorism and Political Violence, 23(4), 623-641. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2011.587065 Hoffman, Aaron M. (2010): How does the Business of News Influence Terrorism Coverage? Evidence from The Washington Post and USA Today. Terrorism and Political Violence, 22(4), 559580. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2010.493778 Hoffman, Bruce (2006): The New Media, Terrorism, and the Shaping of Global Opinion. In: Inside Terrorism. (Revised and Expanded Edition). New York: Columbia University Press, 197-229. Hoffman, Bruce (2006): The Old Media, Terrorism, and Public Opinion. In: Inside Terrorism. (Revised and Expanded Edition). New York: Columbia University Press, 173-197. S120 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hoffman, Bruce (2006): The Use of the Internet by Islamic Extremists. Testimony presented to the House Permanent Select Committee on Intelligence, on May 4, 2006. RAND Testimony Series, CT-262-1. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/testimonies/2006/RAND_CT262-1.pdf Hoffman, Bruce (2007, December): Countering Terrorist Use of the Web as a Weapon. CTC Sentinel, 1(1), 4-6. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2010/07/CTCSentinelVol1Iss1.pdf Hogenboom, Karen (2008, January): Lessons Learned about Access to Government Information after World War II can be Applied after September 11. Government Information Quarterly, 25(1), 90-103. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.giq.2007.08.002 Holland, Jack (2011, September): "When you Think of the Taliban, Think of the Nazis": Teaching Americans "9/11" in NBC’s The West Wing. Millennium, 40(1), 85-106. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0305829811408680 Holt, Thomas J. (2012): Exploring the Intersections of Technology, Crime, and Terror. Terrorism and Political Violence, 24(2), 337-354. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2011.648350 Holtmann, Philipp (2010, June): Virtueller Dschihad: Eine reale Gefahr: Terroristische Internet-Propaganda wird zunehmend in die Tat umgesetzt. SWP-Aktuell 2010/A 48. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/fileadmin/contents/products/aktuell/2010A48_hlt_ks.pdf Holtmann, Philipp (2010, August): "Folgt der Karawane der Märtyrer!": Mit Internet-Propaganda werben deutsche Jihadisten in Waziristan um neue Mitglieder. SWP-Aktuell 2010/A 58. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/fileadmin/contents/products/aktuell/2010A58_hlt_ks.pdf Holtmann, Philipp (2011): No Threat at First Sight: Invisible Terrorist Environments on Facebook and Youtube. Jihadism online. URL: http://www.univie.ac.at/jihadism/blog/wpcontent/uploads/2011/03/Philipp-Holtmann-No-threat-at-first-sight-Invisible-terroristenvironments-on-Facebook-and-Youtube.pdf S121 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Holtmann, Philipp (2012): Virtual Jihad: A Real Danger. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 9-14. Holtmann, Philipp (2012): Virtual Leadership: How Jihadists Guide each other in Cyberspace. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 63-124. Holtmann, Philipp (2013): Casting Supernatural Spells and Fostering Communitas: Abu Yahya AlLibi’s Qasida Poetry . In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 103-120. Holtmann, Philipp (2013): The Symbols of Online Jihad. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 9-64. Homeland Security Policy Institute (HSPI); Critical Incident Analysis Group (CIAG) (2007): NETworked Radicalization: A Counter-Strategy. URL: http://www.gwumc.edu/hspi/policy/NETworkedRadicalization.pdf Hoo, Kevin Soo; Goodman, Seymour; Greenberg, Lawrence (1997): Information Technology and the Terrorist Threat. Survival, 39(3), 135-155. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00396339708442930 Horowitz, Edward M.; Wanstrom, Johan (2008): Young Adults' Media Use, Emotional Reactions, and Judgements about Terrorism: Their Effects on Political Socialization in the Post-9/11 World. In: Dan O'Hair et al. (Eds.): Terrorism: Communication and Rhetorical Perspectives. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 359-382. Horvit, Beverly (2005): Some Papers Gave Scant Space to Taliban, Afghanistan Pre-9/11. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 131-142. S122 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hosein, Ian (2004): The Sources of Laws: Policy Dynamics in a Digital and Terrorized World. The Information Society, 20(3), 187-199. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01972240490456854 Hoskins, Andrew (2006, December): Temporality, Proximity and Security: Terror in a MediaDrenched Age. International Relations, 20(4), 453-466. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0047117806069407 Hoskins, Andrew (2009, August): Media and the Myth of Radicalization. Media, War & Conflict, 2(2), 107-110. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635209105608 Hoskins, Andrew (2011): 7/7 and Connective Memory: Interactional Trajectories of Remembering in Post-Scarcity Culture. Memory Studies, 4(3), 269-280. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750698011402570 Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2008): The Internet as a Weapon of War? Radicalisation, Publics and Legitimacy. In: Athina Karatzogianni (Ed.): Cyber Conflict and Global Politics. (Contemporary Security Studies). London: Routledge, 31-48. Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2009): Pre-Mediating Guilt: Radicalisation and Mediality in British News. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 2(1), 81-93. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150902752820 Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2010): Remediating Jihad for Western News Audiences: The Renewal of Gatekeeping? The Open University Working Paper Series, No. 21. URL: http://www8.open.ac.uk/researchprojects/diasporas/projects/remediating-jihad-for-westernnews-audiences-the-renewal-of-gatekeeping Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2010): Security Journalism and "the Mainstream" in Britain since 7/7: Translating Terror but Inciting Violence? International Affairs, 86(4), 903-924. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1468-2346.2010.00919.x URL: http://www.chathamhouse.org/sites/default/files/public/International %20Affairs/2010/86_4hoskins.pdf S123 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hoskins, Andrew; O'Loughlin, Ben (2011): Remediating Jihad for Western News Audiences: The Renewal of Gatekeeping? Journalism, 12(2), 199-216. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1464884910388592 Hotchkiss, Nikole (2010, October): Globalizing Security? Media Framing of National Security in France and the United States from the Cold War through 11 September. International Journal of Comparative Sociology, 51(5), 366-386. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0020715210376867 Houston, J. Brian (2009): Media Coverage of Terrorism: A Meta-Analytic Assessment of Media Use and Posttraumatic Stress. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 86(4), 844-861. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900908600408 Howard, Russell D.; Forest, James J. F.; Moore, Joanne (2005): Terrorists, the Media, and Homeland Security. In: Homeland Security and Terrorism: Readings and Interpretations. (The McGraw-Hill Homeland Security Series). New York: McGraw-Hill, 338-355. Howie, Luke (2006): Terrorism as Opiniotainment: Perceptions Warriors and the Public Battlefield. In: Craig Valli; Andrew Woodward (Eds.): Proceedings of the 7th Australian Information Warfare and Security Conference, Edith Cowan University, Perth Western Australia, 4th – 5th December, 2006, 36-43. URL: http://igneous.scis.ecu.edu.au/proceedings/2006/iwar/Proceedings_IWAR_2006.pdf Howie, Luke (2012): Like a Weapon in the Street: Terrorism and the Media in the 21st Century. In: Witnesses to Terror: Understanding the Meaaustralian information warfanings and Consequences of Terrorism. Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 42-64. Hua, Jian; Bapna, Sanjay (2011, December): Optimal IS Security Investment: Cyber Terrorism vs. Common Hacking. In: Dennis F. Galletta; Ting-Peng Liang (Eds.): ICIS 2011 Proceedings, Paper 4. Atlanta: Association for Information Systems. URL: http://aisel.aisnet.org/icis2011/proceedings/ISsecurity/4 S124 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hua, Jian; Bapna, Sanjay (2012): How can we Deter Cyber Terrorism? Information Security Journal, 21(2), 102-114. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19393555.2011.647250 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/19393555.2011.647250 Huband, Mark (2008): Talking Terror: Hype, Facts and the Media. In: George Kassimeris (Ed.): Playing Politics with Terrorism: A User's Guide. New York: Columbia University Press, 277300. Hughes, Jenny (2012): Camping on the Streets, Squares, and Wastelands of Power: Theatrical Protest and the "War On Terror" in the U.K. In: Jenny S. Spencer (Ed.): Political and Protest Theatre after 9/11: Patriotic Dissent. (Routledge Advances in Theatre and Performance Studies, Vol. 21). New York: Routledge, 174-190. Hughes, Sallie; Arroyave, Jesus (2010): September 11 and the U.S. Image in Latin American Media. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 341-362. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Hui, Jennifer Yang (2008, October 10): The Internet in Indonesia: Development and Impact of Radical Websites. RSIS Working Paper Series, No. 167. URL: http://www.rsis.edu.sg/publications/WorkingPapers/WP167.pdf Hui, Jennifer Yang (2010): The Internet in Indonesia: Development and Impact of Radical Websites. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(2), 171-191. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100903400605 URL: http://95.211.138.23/wpcontent/uploads/2012/07/2010-Radical-websites-Indonesia.pdf Huk, Peter (2005, April): Monological Discourse and the Creation of Villains: A Staging of Witnesses after 9/11. Third World Quarterly, 26(3), 543-550. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01436590500033933 Hülsse, Rainer; Spencer, Alexander (2008, December): The Metaphor of Terror: Terrorism Studies and the Constructivist Turn. Security Dialogue, 39(6), 571-592. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0967010608098210 S125 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Hunt, John (2011): The New Frontier of Money Laundering: How Terrorist Organizations Use Cyberlaundering to Fund their Activities, and how Governments are Trying to Stop them. Information & Communications Technology Law, 20(2), 133-152. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13600834.2011.578933 URL: http://lexopus.yiil.org/lexopus/works/1159-1.pdf Hussain, Yasmin; Bagguley, Paul (2012): Funny Looks: British Pakistanis' Experiences after 7 July 2005. Ethnic and Racial Studies. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01419870.2011.645844 Hutcheson, John et al. (2004): U.S. National Identity, Political Elites, and a Patriotic Press following September 11. Political Communication, 21(1), 27-50. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584600490273254 URL: http://queensu.ca/politics/pols419/hutcheson.pdf Hutchinson, W. (2011): Information Terrorism: Networked Influence. In: Craig Valli; Andrew Woodward (Eds.): Proceedings of the 7th Australian Information Warfare and Security Conference, Edith Cowan University, Perth Western Australia, 4th – 5th December, 2006, 44-49. URL: http://igneous.scis.ecu.edu.au/proceedings/2006/iwar/Proceedings_IWAR_2006.pdf #I Ian Ross, Jeffrey (2006): The Role of the Mass Media. In: Political Terrorism: An Interdisciplinary Approach. New York: Peter Lang, 183-200. Ian Ross, Jeffrey (2007): Deconstructing the Terrorism–News Media Relationship. Crime Media Culture, 3(2), 215-225. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1741659007078555 URL: http://www.jeffreyianross.com/uploads/Ross-__terrorism_and_media.pdf Ibrahim, Dina (2009, April): Framing of Arab Countries on American News Networks following the September 11 Attacks. Journal of Arab & Muslim Media Research, 1(3), 279-296. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jammr.1.3.279_1 S126 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ibrahim, Dina (2010, February): The Framing of Islam on Network News following the September 11Th Attacks. International Communication Gazette, 72(1), 111-125. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048509350342 Ijeomah, Chigozi (2012): Deconstructing the Reporting of Hostage Taking in the Niger Delta. Global Media Journal African Edition, 6(1), 23-42. URL: http://globalmedia.journals.ac.za/pub/article/view/81 Inan, Alev (2007): E-Dschihad: Der "Heilige Krieg" und das Internet. .SIAK-Journal, 1/2007, 5361. URL: https://www3.cepol.europa.eu/dspace/bitstream/123456789/352/1/Ausgabe0107_art05-inan.pdf Institute for Strategic Dialogue (ISD) (2011): Radicalisation: The Role of the Internet. PPN Working Paper. URL: http://www.strategicdialogue.org/allnewmats/idandsc2011/StockholmPPN2011_BackgroundPa per_FINAL.pdf IntelCenter (2004, July): Al-Qaeda in the Arabian Peninsula: Shooting, Hostage Taking, Kidnapping Wave – May/June 2004 (AQAP-SHK-WMJ04). v1.1. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/AQAP-SHK-PUB-v1-1.pdf IntelCenter (2004, September): Al-Qaeda Videos & 3rd 9-11 Anniversary. v1.0. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/Qaeda-Vid-911-3rdA-PUB-v1-0.pdf IntelCenter (2004, November): Osama bin Laden Message Analysis & Threat Assessment (OBLMATA). v1.1. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/OBLMATAPUB-v1-1.pdf IntelCenter (2005, May): Evolution of Jihadi Video (EJV). v1.0. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/EJV-PUB-v1-0.pdf IntelCenter (2005, August): Ayman al-Zawahiri Audio/Video Release Analysis (AZAVRA). v1.1. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/AZAVRA-PUB-v1-1.pdf S127 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement IntelCenter (2005, December): Al-Qaeda Warning Cycle Completion for CONUS (QWCC-CONUS). v1.1. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/QWCCACONUS-PUBv1-1.pdf IntelCenter (2006, May): Jihadi Master Video Guide (JMVG). v1.1. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/JMVG-V1-1.pdf IntelCenter (2007, September): Al-Qaeda Messaging Statistics (QMS). v3.3. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/QMS-PUB-v3-3.pdf IntelCenter (2009, January): Gaza Response: Analysis of Jihadist Statements & Threatened Targets. v1.0. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/GazaResponse-v1-030Jan2009.pdf IntelCenter (2010, July): Al-Qaeda Messaging/Attacks Timeline. v8.0. Public Release Version. IntelCenter Analytical Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/qaeda-timeline-v8-0.pdf IntelCenter (2012, September): Primary Spoken Language Breakout for 308 Terrorist/Rebel Videos Released from 1/1/2012 to 9/5/2012. IntelCenter Database (ICD) Video Report. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/reports/ICD-PrimarySpoken-1Jan2012-5Sep2012.pdf IntelCenter (2012, October): IntelCenter Database (ICD) "Innocence of Muslims" Interactive Threat Map 3 Oct. 2012. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/icd/icd-innocence-muslims-threatmap.html IntelCenter (2012, October): IntelCenter Terrorist & Rebel Video Listing for Sep. 2012. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/reports/ICD-Video-Sep2012-Listing-25Oct2012.pdf IntelCenter (2012, October): Terrorist/Rebel Video Country Focal Points Jun-Sep 2012. IntelCenter Database (ICD) Map. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/icd/icd-terrorist-video-map.html IntelCenter (2012, November): IntelCenter Terrorist & Rebel Video Listing for October 2012. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/reports/ICD-Video-Oct2012-Listing-20Nov2012.pdf S128 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement International Crisis Group (ICG) (2006, February): In their Own Words: Reading the Iraqi Insurgency. Middle East Report No. 50. URL: http://www.crisisgroup.org/~/media/Files/Middle %20East%20North%20Africa/Iraq%20Syria%20Lebanon/Iraq/In%20Their%20Own %20Words%20Reading%20the%20Iraqi%20Insurgency.pdf International Crisis Group (ICG) (2008, July): Taliban Propaganda: Winning the War of Words? Asia Report No. 158. URL: http://www.crisisgroup.org/~/media/Files/asia/southasia/afghanistan/158_taliban_propaganda___winning_the_war_of_words.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2008, September): Jihad Organization’s Methods of Operation on the Internet Exposed on Saudi Television. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Saudi%20Report.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2008, December): Switzerland as a Target for Radical Islamist Propaganda. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Switzerland_Radical_Islam.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, February): An Analysis of the Terrorist Attacks in Mumbai Based on Publications in Jihadi Online Forums. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Mumbai_Attacks_Analysis.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, March): Jihadi Online Forums Explain how to Become an Al-Qaeda Member. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring%20Group/JWMG_AlQaeda_Member.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, April): Efforts to Carry Out Electronic Jihad on the Part of the Jihadi Online Forum Members. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Electronic_Jihad.pdf S129 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, April): Training Jihad Activists via the Internet. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Training_Jihad_Via_the_Internet.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, May): Members of Jihadi Forums Revive Debate on the Question: Is it Permissible to Harm the Innocent? JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Discussion_on_Killing_Innocent.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, June): Al-Qaeda and Weapons of Mass Destruction as Seen on Jihadi Online Forums. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring%20Group/JWMG_AlQaeda_WMD.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, June): The Internet at the Service of Jihad Organizations. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/JMWG_Internet_Jihad.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2009, July): Threats on Germany in a Series of Jihadi Clips. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Threats_on_Germany.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2010, February): The Jihadi Forums: An Open Forum with Abu Abdullah Al-Maqdisi. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Open_Forum_Abu_Abdullah_Al-Maqdisi.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2010, February): The Jihadi Forums: An Open Forum with Abu Muhammad Al-Maqdisi. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Open_Forum_Abu_Muhammad_Al-Maqdisi.pdf S130 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2010, April): Mounting Efforts on Jihadi Forums to Target China for Terrorist Attacks. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Turkistan_China.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2011, February): The Jihadi Forums: An Open Forum with Sheikh Abu Sa‘ad Al-‘Amili. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring %20Group/JWMG_Open_Forum_Sheikh_Al-Amili.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT) (2011, May): Osama Bin Laden's Elimination – First Responses from Jihadi Forums. ICT Special Report: The Death of Osama bin Laden. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Portals/0/Internet%20Monitoring%20Group/ICT%20SPECIAL %20REPORT%20-%20THE%20DEATH%20OF%20OSAMA%20BIN%20LADEN.pdf International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT) (2011, July): Osama Bin Laden's Elimination through the Prism of Al-Qaeda's Affiliates and Global Jihad Supporters – Follow-Up Report. ICT Special Report: The Death of Osama bin Laden. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/LinkClick.aspx?fileticket=_wciKVnJUs0%3d&tabid=320 International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2011, November): The Assassination of Bin Laden: A Comparative Look at the Official Response and "Popular Opinion" in the Online Arab Media. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/LinkClick.aspx?fileticket=btnAGPApjOg%3d&tabid=320 International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2012, February): In the Depths of Jihadist Web Forums: Understanding a Key Component of the Propaganda of Jihad. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/LinkClick.aspx? fileticket=w8IXa95zve0%3d&tabid=320 S131 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT)'s Jihadi Websites Monitoring Group (2012, September): Salafi-Jihadist Groups Exploit the Movie "Innocence of Muslims" to Recruit Supporters and Foment Terrorism against the West. JWMG Insights. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/ResearchPublications/JihadiWebsitesMonitoring/JWMGInsights/tabid/320 /Articlsid/1110/currentpage/1/Default.aspx International Media Support (IMS); International Foundation for Protection of Freedom of Speech "Adil Soz"; Public Association "Journalists" (2008, August): Political Extremism, Terrorism, and Media in Central Asia: The Examples of Kazakhstan and Kyrgyzstan. IMS Report. URL: http://www.i-m-s.dk/files/publications/1353%20CentralAsia%20GB.web.pdf Introvigne, Massimo (2000): "So Many Evil Things": Anti-Cult Terrorism via the Internet. In: Jeffrey K. Hadden; Douglas E. Cowan (Eds.): Religion on the Internet: Research Prospects and Promises. (Religion and the Social Order Series, Vol. 8). New York: JAI/Elsevier, 277-306. Introvigne, Massimo (2005): A Symbolic Universe: Information Terrorism and New Religions in Cyberspace. In: Morten T. Højsgaard; Margit Warburg (Eds.): Religion and Cyberspace. London: Routledge, 102-118. Irvin, Cynthia L. (1992): Terrorists' Perspectives: Interviews. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 62-85. Ishak, Mohd. Shuhaimi Bin Haji; Solihin, Sohirin Mohammad (2012): Islam and Media. Asian Social Science, 8(7), 263-269. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.5539/ass.v8n7p263 URL: http://www.ccsenet.org/journal/index.php/ass/article/view/17632 Ismail, Amani (2008, Spring): To Counter and to Resist: Cyber Discourses of Hezbollah and Palestinian Islamic Jihad. Global Media Journal: Mediterranean Edition, 3(1), 35-49. URL: http://globalmedia.emu.edu.tr/images/stories/ALL_ARTICLES/2008/spring2008/issues/4.%20 Cyber%20discourses%20of%20Hezbollah%20and%20Palestinian%20Islamic%20Jihad.pdf S132 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ismail, Amani (2008, August): Mission Statehood: Portraits of the Second Palestinian Intifada in US News Media. Media, War & Conflict, 1(2), 177-201. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635208090956 Ismail, Amani (2009): In the Eye of the Occupier: News Coverage of Iraq War "Terrorism" in The New York Times and The Times of India. Journalism Practice, 3(4), 456-471. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17512780903010892 Ismail, Amani (2009, Fall): Communicating Politics Online: The Rhetoric of "Terrorism" and "Resistance". Global Media Journal: Mediterranean Edition, 4(2), 1-12. URL: http://globalmedia.emu.edu.tr/images/stories/ALL_ARTICLES/2009/fall2009/issues/1_Amani_ Ismail_pp1_12.pdf Ismail, Amani (2010, March): When the "Fortress Crumbled": The Israel-Jenin Story in U.S. News Media. Communication, Culture & Critique, 3(1), 66-84. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.17539137.2009.01058.x Ismail, Amani; Berkowitz, Dan (2009, Spring): "Terrorism" Meets Press System: The New York Times and China Daily before and after 9/11. Global Media Journal: Mediterranean Edition, 4(1), 15-28. URL: http://globalmedia.emu.edu.tr/images/stories/ALL_ARTICLES/2009/spring2009/issues/2_Ama ni_Ismail_and_Dan_Berkowitz_pp_15_28.pdf Iyer, Aarti; Oldmeadow, Julian (2006): Picture this: Emotional and Political Responses to Photographs of the Kenneth Bigley Kidnapping. European Journal of Social Psychology, 36(5), 635647. Izard, Ralph (2011): Crisis Interviewing: Preparation and Sensitivity. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 85-88. S133 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement #J Jackob, Nikolaus (2007): Die Diffusion von Terrormeldungen, die Wirkung von Anschlägen auf die öffentliche Meinung und die Folgen für das Vertrauen in der Demokratie. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 155-174. Jackson, Geoffrey, Sir (1990): Terrorism and the News Media. Terrorism and Political Violence, 2(4), 521-528. DOI: 10.1080/09546559008427080 Jackson, Richard (2009): The 9/11 Attacks and the Social Construction of a National Narrative. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 25-36. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Jacob, Jacob Udo-Udo (2011, May 14): Battling Radical Islamist Propaganda in Somalia. Small Wars Journal, 7(5). URL: http://smallwarsjournal.com/jrnl/art/battling-radical-islamistpropaganda-in-somalia Jacobson, George V. (2009): Botnets, Cybercrime, and Cyberterrorism: Vulnerabilities and Policy Issues for Congress. In: George V. Jacobson (Ed.): Cybersecurity, Botnets, and Cyberterrorism. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 1-52. Jacobson, Michael (2009, June): Terrorist Financing on the Internet. CTC Sentinel, 2(6), 17-20. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2010/07/CTCSentinel-Vol2Iss6.pdf Jacobson, Michael (2010): Terrorist Financing and the Internet. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(4), 353-363. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576101003587184 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/10576101003587184 Jaecker, Tobias (2005): Antisemitische Verschwörungstheorien im deutschen Mediendiskurs nach dem 11. September. soFid Kommunikationswissenchaft, 2005/1, 9-20. URL: http://www.jaecker.com/wp-content/uploads/2005/sofid.pdf S134 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Jaeger, Charles W. (2004): Cyberterrorism. In: Hossein Bidgoli (Ed.): The Internet Encyclopedia: Volume 1. Hoboken: John Wiley & Sons, 353-372. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/047148296X.tie032 Jäger-Gogoll, Anne Maximiliane (2012): Wider den Krieg der Bilder: Palästinensische Selbstmordattentäter im israelischen und palästinensischen Film. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 193-218. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 Jain, Anuja (2010): "Beaming it Live": 24-Hour Television News, the Spectator and the Spectacle of the 2002 Gujarat Carnage. South Asian Popular Culture, 8(2), 163-179. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14746681003797989 Jameson, Jessica Katz; Entman, Robert M. (2004, Spring): The Role of Journalism in Democratic Conflict Management: Narrating the New York Budget Crisis after 9/11. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 9(2), 38-59. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X03262443 URL: http://www.ensani.ir/storage/Files/20110209165114%D9%86%D9%82%D8%B4%20%D8%B1%D9%88%D8%B2%D9%86%D8%A7%D9%85% D9%87%20%D8%AF%D8%B1%20%D9%85%D8%AF%DB%8C%D8%B1%DB%8C %D8%AA%20%D8%AA%D8%B6%D8%A7%D8%AF.pdf Janbek, Dana M. (2011): Terrorism in the Age of the Internet: The Case of Muslim Arab Foreign Terrorist Organizations. Journal of Religious & Theological Information, 10(1-2), 5-15. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10477845.2011.561717 Janbek, Dana M. (2012, November): Rethinking the Role of Virtual Communities in Terrorist Websites. Combating Terrorism Exchange, 2(4). URL: https://globalecco.org/rethinking-the-role-ofvirtual-communities-in-terrorist-websites Jansen, Sue Curry (2002): Media in Crises: Gender and Terror, September 2001. Feminist Media Studies, 2(1), 139-141. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/146807702753745428 S135 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Janssen, Elmar (2011): Kommunikationsmanagement und Kriegsführung im 21. Jahrhundert: Die neue Art des Feindkontakts zwischen psychologischer Kampfführung und PR-Schlachten nach 9/11. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 717-738. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_35 Jayanthi, S. K.; Sasikala, S. (2011): XGraphticsCLUS: Web Mining Hyperlinks and Content of Terrorism Websites for Homeland Security. International Journal of Advanced Networking and Applications, 2(6), 941-949. URL: http://ijana.in/papers/v2i6-10.pdf Jenkins, Brian Michael (1974): Terrorism and Kidnapping. RAND Paper Series, P-5255. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/papers/2006/P5255.pdf Jenkins, Brian Michael (1981): The Psychological Implications of Media-Covered Terrorism. RAND Paper Series, P-6627. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/papers/P6627.html Jenkins, Brian Michael (2011): Is Al Qaeda’s Internet Strategy Working? Testimony presented before the House Homeland Security Committee, Subcommittee on Counterterrorism and Intelligence on December 6, 2011. RAND Testimony Series, CT-371. URL: http://www.rand.org/content/dam/rand/pubs/testimonies/2011/RAND_CT371.pdf Jenkins, Brian Michael (2011): Stray Dogs and Virtual Armies : Radicalization and Recruitment to Jihadist Terrorism in the United States since 9/11. RAND Occasional Papers, OP-343. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/occasional_papers/OP343.html Jenkins, Philip (2003): Terrorism and the Mass Media. In: Images of Terror: What we can and can't Know about Terrorism. New York: Aldine de Gruyter, 138-163. Jesus, Diego Santos Vieira de; Fernandes, Verônica Daminelli (2011): From "Suicide" to "Barbarian Terror": Media and Exclusion in Brazilian Foreign Policy September 11 according to O Globo and Folha de S. Paulo. Revista Brasileira de História, 31(61). DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1590/S0102-01882011000100013 S136 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Jha, Sonora; Izard, Ralph (2011): Sources: No Time for the Rolodex. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 79-84. Jiwani, Yasmin (2004, Fall): Gendering Terror: Representations of the Orientalized Body in Quebec's Post‐September 11 English‐Language Press. Critique: Critical Middle Eastern Studies, 13(3), 265-291. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1066992042000300657 Jiwani, Yasmin (2005, February): "War Talk" Engendering Terror: Race, Gender and Representation in Canadian Print Media. International Journal of Media & Cultural Politics, 1(1), 15-22. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/macp.1.1.15/3 John, Sue Lockett et al. (2007, Summer): Going Public, Crisis after Crisis: The Bush Administration and the Press from September 11 to Saddam. Rhetoric & Public Affairs, 10(2), 195-220. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1353/rap.2007.0039 Johnson, Thomas H. (2007): The Taliban Insurgency and an Analysis of Shabnamah (Night Letters). Small Wars and Insurgencies, 18(3), 317-344. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09592310701674176 URL: http://www.nps.edu/programs/ccs/Docs/Pubs/Small_Wars_%20Pub.pdf Johnson, Thomas H.; Waheed, Ahmad (2011): Analyzing Taliban Taranas (Chants): An Effective Afghan Propaganda Artifact. Small Wars & Insurgencies, 22(1), 3-31. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09592318.2011.546572 URL: http://www.dtic.mil/cgibin/GetTRDoc?AD=ADA539768 Johnson, Thomas J.; Fahmy, Shahira S. (2008, October): The CNN of the Arab World or a Shill for Terrorists? How Support for Press Freedom and Political Ideology Predict Credibility of AlJazeera among its Audience. International Communication Gazette, 70(5), 338-360. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048508094290 Jones, Andrew (2005, June): Cyber Terrorism: Fact or Fiction. Computer Fraud & Security, 6/2005, 4-7. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1361-3723(05)70220-7 S137 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Jones, David Martin; Smith, M. L. R. (2005, October): Greetings from the Cybercaliphate: Some Notes on Homeland Insecurity. International Affairs, 81(5), 925-950. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1468-2346.2005.00495.x URL: http://www.chathamhouse.org/sites/default/files/public/International %20Affairs/2005/inta81_5_925.pdf Jones, David Martin; Smith, M. L. R. (2010): Terror and the Liberal Conscience: Political Fiction and Jihad – The Novel Response to 9/11. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(10), 933-948. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2010.508511 URL: http://reassessingcounterinsurgency.files.wordpress.com/2012/02/jones-and-rainsboroughterror-and-the-liberal-conscience.pdf Jones, Ronald H. (2005, June): Terrorist Beheadings: Cultural and Strategic Implications. Carlisle Papers in Security Strategy. URL: http://www.strategicstudiesinstitute.army.mil/pdffiles/PUB608.pdf Jones, Steve; Rainie, Lee (2002): Internet Use and the Terror Attacks. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 27-38. URL: http://stevejones.me/pubs/2002/InternetUseAndTheTerrorAttacks.pdf Joosse, Paul (2012, April): Elves, Environmentalism, and "Eco-Terror": Leaderless Resistance and Media Coverage of the Earth Liberation Front. Crime Media Culture, 8(1), 75-93. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1741659011433366 Jordan, Javier; Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2007, March-April): Internet y actividades terroristas: El caso del 11-M. El profesional de la información, 16(2), 123-130. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3145/epi.2007.mar.04 URL: http://www.elprofesionaldelainformacion.com/contenidos/2007/marzo/05.pdf Jordan, Javier; Torres Soriano, Manuel R.; Horsburgh, Nicola (2005): The Intelligence Services' Struggle against al-Qaeda Propaganda. International Journal of Intelligence and CounterIntelligence, 18(1), 31-49. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08850600590905663 URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/2860/s3.pdf S138 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Jordán, José Solís (2007): Call him a Terrorist, the Rest is Covered: Political Murder in the U.S. Colony of Puerto Rico. In: Donaldo P. Macedo; Shirley R. Steinberg (Eds.): Media Literacy: A Reader. New York: Peter Lang, 242-256. Joshi, Manoj (2004): September 11 and after: Pressure for Regulation and Self-Regulation in the Indian Media. In: Shoma Munshi; Peter van der Veer (Eds.): Media, War and Terrorism: Responses from the Middle East and Asia. London: Routledge, 118-137. Judy, Michael (2011, Winter): Terrorism's Virtual Safe Haven and the Effects on Terror Operations. Global Security Studies, 2(1), 34-44. URL: http://globalsecuritystudies.com/Judy %20Virtual.pdf Justus, Z. S.; Hess, Aaron (2008): One Message for Many Audiences: Framing the Death of Abu Musab al-Zarqawi. CSC Report #0605. URL: http://csc.asu.edu/wpcontent/uploads/pdf/115.pdf Justus, Z. S.; Hess, Aaron (2008): One Message for Many Audiences: Framing the Death of Abu Musab al-Zarqawi. In: Steven R. Corman; Angela Trethewey; H. L. Goodall, Jr. (Eds.): Weapons of Mass Persuasion: Strategic Communication to Combat Violent Extremism. New York: Peter Lang, 115-128. #K Kabir, Nahid (2006): Representation of Islam and Muslims in the Australian Media, 2001-2005. Journal of Muslim Minority Affairs, 26(3), 313-328. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13602000601141281 Kaigo, Muneo; Watanabe, Isao (2007, July): Ethos in Chaos? Reaction to Video Files Depicting Socially Harmful Images in the Channel 2 Japanese Internet Forum. Journal of Computer-Mediated Communication, 12(4), 1248-1268. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.10836101.2007.00372.x URL: http://onlinelibrary.wiley.com/doi/10.1111/j.10836101.2007.00372.x/pdf S139 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kalansooriya, Ranga (2010, January): An External View of the Vernacular Press in Pakistan. PIPS Paper. URL: http://san-pips.com/download.php?f=149.pdf Kalb, Marvin; Saivetz, Carol (2007, July): The Israeli-Hezbollah War of 2006: The Media as a Weapon in Asymmetrical Conflict. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 12(3), 43-66. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X07303934 URL: http://www.brookings.edu/~/media/Files/events/2007/0217islamic %20world/2007islamforum_israel%20hezb%20war.pdf Kamboj, Atul; Singh, Mukhdeep (2007, September): Cyber Terrorism: Terrorists Go Hi-Tech. Egyptian Computer Science Journal, 29(3), n.p. Kanihan, Stacey Frank; Gale, Kendra L. (2005): Within 3 Hours, 97 Percent Learn about 9/11 Attacks. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 207-218. Kanli, Yusuf (2007): Ethical Balance of Reporting on Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 21-25. Kaplan, Abraham; Weimann, Gabriel (2011): The Theater of Terror: Modern Terrorism and the Mass Media. In: Freedom and Terror: Reason and Unreason in Politics. (Contemporary Terrorism Studies). London: Routledge, 90-97. Kaplan, E. Ann (2005): Discourses of Terrorism, Feminism, and the Family in von Trotta's Marianne and Juliane. In: J. David Slocum (Ed.): Terrorism, Media, Liberation. (Rutgers Depth of Field Series). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 111-120. Karim, Karim H. (2011): Covering Muslims: Journalism as Cultural Practice. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 131-146. S140 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Karzai, Hekmat (2009): Understanding the Role of the Media in Facilitating the Spread of the Extremist Message in Afghanistan. Journal of Policing, Intelligence and Counter Terrorism, 4(1), 76-86. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/18335300.2009.9686925 Kassimeris, George; Jackson, Leonie (2011): The West, the Rest, and the "War on Terror": Representation of Muslims in Neoconservative Media Discourse. Contemporary Politics, 17(1), 1933. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13569775.2011.552684 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/13569775.2011.552684 Katz, Elihu; Liebes, Tamar (2007): "No More Peace!": How Disaster, Terror and War have Upstaged Media Events. International Journal of Communication, 1, 157-166. URL: http://ijoc.org/ojs/index.php/ijoc/article/view/44 Katz, Elihu; Liebes, Tamar (2009): "No More Peace!": How Disaster, Terror and War have Upstaged Media Events. In: Nick Couldry; Andreas Hepp; Friedrich Krotz (Eds.): Media Events in a Global Age. London: Routledge, 32-42. Katz, Maureen (2006): The Beheading of America: Reclaiming our Minds. In: Lynne Layton; Nancy Caro Hollander; Susan Gutwill (Eds.): Psychoanalysis, Class and Politics: Encounters in the Clinical Setting. London: Routledge, 141-153. Katz, Rita; Devon, Josh (2007, February 14): The Online Jihadist Threat. Testimony before the House Armed Services Committee Terrorism, Unconventional Threats and Capabilities Subcommittee United States House of Representatives. URL: http://www.globalsecurity.org/military/library/congress/2007_hr/070214-katz.pdf Katz, Rita; Devon, Josh (2010, April): The Imagined Community of Jihadists. inSITE, 2(11), 4-5. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_April_2010.pdf Katz, Rita; Devon, Josh (2010, July): Jihad on YouTube. inSITE, 2(12), 4-5. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_July_2010.pdf S141 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kauffman, Linda S. (2008): The Wake of Terror: Don Delillo’s "In The Ruins of The Future," "Baader-Meinhof," and Falling Man. MFS: Modern Fiction Studies, 54(2), 353-377. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1353/mfs.0.0010 URL: http://dhillisresearch.wikispaces.com/file/view/kauffman.pdf Kauffman, Linda S. (2010): The Wake of Terror: Don DeLillo's "In the Ruins of the Future," "Baader-Meinhof," and Falling Man. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 19-39. Kaufman, Edward (2002): A Broadcasting Strategy to Win Media Wars. The Washington Quarterly, 25(2), 115-127. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1162/01636600252820171 URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/516/kaufman.pdf Kavoori, Anandam P. (2006): International Communication after Terrorism: Towards a Postcolonial Dialectic. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 179-198. Kavoori, Anandam P. (2006, Fall): Journalism Education in an Age of Globalization and Terrorism: Insights from "The World in Focus". Global Media Journal: Mediterranean Edition, 1(2), 5458. URL: http://globalmedia.emu.edu.tr/images/stories/ALL_ARTICLES/2006/fall2006/Fall_2006_Issue 2/10Anandam_P_Kavooripdf.pdf Kavoori, Anandam P. (2008, Fall): Gaming, Terrorism and the Right to Communicate. Global Media Journal, 7(13). URL: http://lass.purduecal.edu/cca/gmj/fa08/gmj-fa08-kavoori.htm Keene, Shima D. (2011): Terrorism and the Internet: A Double-Edged Sword. Journal of Money Laundering Control, 14(4), 359-370. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1108/13685201111173839 S142 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Keller, Arthur (2008, July): Propaganda and Peace Deals: The Taliban’s Information War in Pakistan. CTC Sentinel, 1(8), 15-18. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/07/CTCSentinel-Vol1Iss8.pdf Kellner, Douglas (2002, May): September 11, the Media, and War Fever. Television & New Media, 3(2), 143-151. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/152747640200300204 URL: http://ics.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/1865/Kellner2.pdf Kellner, Douglas (2002, August): September 11, Social Theory and Democratic Politics. Theory, Culture & Society, 19(4), 147-159. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0263276402019004011 URL: http://rcirib.ir/articles/pdfs/cd1%5CIngenta_Sage_Articles_on_194_225_11_89/Ingenta954.pdf Kellner, Douglas (2003, Winter): September 11, Spectacles of Terror, and Media Manipulation: A Critique of Jihadist and Bush Media Politics. Logos, 2(1), 86-102. URL: http://logosonline.home.igc.org/kellner_media.pdf Kellner, Douglas (2004): 9/11, Spectacles of Terror, and Media Manipulation: A Critique of Jihadist and Bush Media Politics. Critical Discourse Studies, 1(1), 41-64. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17405900410001674515 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/17405900410001674515 Kellner, Douglas (2006): September 11, Social Theory, and Democratic Politics. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 161-178. Kellner, Douglas (2007): Media Spectacle, Fear and Terrorism. Media Development, 3/2007. URL: http://www.waccglobal.org/en/20073-media-and-terror/467-Media-spectacle-fear-andterrorism.html Kellner, Douglas (2010): Hollywood's 9/11 and Spectacles of Terror. In: Cinema Wars: Hollywood Film and Politics in the Bush-Cheney Era. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 98-131. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444314809.ch2 S143 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kellner, Douglas (2012): The Dark Side of the Spectacle: Terror in Norway and the UK Riots. Cultural Politics, 8(1), 1-43. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/17432197-1571967 Kelly, Micheal J.; Mitchell, Thomas H. (1981): Transnational Terrorism and the Western Elite Press. Political Communication, 1(3), 269-296. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1981.9962729 Kelsey, Darren (2012): Pound for Pound Champions: The Myth of the Blitz Spirit in British Newspaper Discourses of the City and Economy after the 7 July Bombings. Critical Discourse Studies, 9(3), 285-299. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17405904.2012.688299 Kemp, Matthew A. (2008, June): Re-Readings of the Algerian War during the US "War on Terror": Between Recognition and Denial. Journal of European Studies, 38(2), 157-175. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0047244108090208 URL: http://www.uk.sagepub.com/martin3study/articles/Kemp.pdf Kempf, Wilhelm; Thiel, Stephanie (2012): On the Interaction between Media Frames and Individual Frames of the Israeli-Palestinian Conflict. conflict & communication online, 11(2). URL: http://www.cco.regener-online.de/2012_2/pdf/kempf-thiel-neu.pdf Kennedy, Christine; Charlesworth, Annemarie; Chen, Jyu-Lin (2004, October): Disaster at a Distance: Impact of 9.11.01 Televised News Coverage on Mothers’ and Children’s Health. Journal of Pediatric Nursing, 19(5), 329-339. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.pedn.2004.09.003 URL: http://www.impact.arq.org/doc/kennisbank/1000011327-1.pdf Kennedy, Jonathan; Weimann, Gabriel (2011): The Strength of Weak Terrorist Ties. Terrorism and Political Violence, 23(2), 201-212. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2010.521087 Kennedy, Sean (2011, September 4): New Media: A Boon for Insurgents or Counterinsurgents? Small Wars Journal, 7(9). URL: http://smallwarsjournal.com/node/11414 S144 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kenney, Michael (2010): Beyond the Internet: Mētis, Techne, and the Limitations of Online Artifacts for Islamist Terrorists. Terrorism and Political Violence, 22(2), 177-197. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550903554760 Kepel, Gilles (2008): The Propaganda Battle in Europe. In: Beyond Terror and Martyrdom: The Future of the Middle East. (Pascale Ghazaleh, Trans.). Cambridge: Belknap Press of Harvard University Press, 214-256. Keränen, Lisa; Sanprie, Virginia (2008): "Oxygen of Publicity" and "Lifeblood of Liberty": Communication Scholarship on Mass Media Coverage of Terrorism for the Twenty-First Century. In: Christina S. Beck (Ed.): Communication Yearbook 32. London: Routledge, 231-277. Kern, Montague; Just, Marion; Norris, Pippa (2003): The Lessons of Framing Terrorism. In: Pippa Norris; Montague Kern; Marion Just (Eds.): Framing Terrorism: The News Media, the Government and the Public. New York: Routledge, 281-302. URL: http://comminfo.rutgers.edu/~mkern/docs/Chapter14.pdf Keskinen, Mikko (2010): 6,500 Weddings and 2,750 Funerals: Mao II, Falling Man, and the Mass Effect. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 67-80. Khalil, Ezzeldeen (2012, November): Jihadbook, the Evolution of Online Islamist Forums. Jane's Intelligence Review, 24(11), 14-18. Khan, Katy (2007): "Sonic Jihad": Black Popular Music and the Renegotiation of Muslim Identities in Post 9/11. Muziki, 4(2), 200-208. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/18125980802298609 Khan, Mahmud Hasan; Govindasamy, Subramaniam (2011, August): Islamic Militancy in Bangladeshi Newspaper Editorials: A Discourse Analysis. Multilingua, 30(3-4), 357-376. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1515/mult.2011.017 S145 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Khan, Mukhtar A. (2009, May 26): The FM Mullahs and the Taliban’s Propaganda War in Pakistan. TerrorismMonitor, 7(14), 7-10. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_007_25.pdf Khatib, Lina (2012, January): Hizbullah’s Image Management Strategy. CPD Perspectives on Public Diplomacy, Paper 1, 2012. URL: http://uscpublicdiplomacy.org/publications/perspectives/CPD_Perspectives_Paper1_2012_Final .pdf Kili, Justin (2003): The Safety of Journalists in the Pacific. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 80. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Kim, Hun Shik (2012, June): War Journalists and Forces of Gatekeeping during the Escalation and the De-Escalation Periods of the Iraq War. International Communication Gazette, 74(4), 323341. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048512439815 Kim, In Jung; Lee, Cheol-Won; Im, Eul Gyu (2007): Changes of Cyber-Terrorism: Autonomous Terrors and Counter-Measures. In: Osvaldo Gervasi; Marina L. Gavrilova (Eds.): Computational Science and Its Applications – ICCSA 2007: International Conference, Kuala Lumpur, Malaysia, August 26-29, 2007: Proceedings, Part II. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 4706). DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-74477-1_7 Kim, Yong-Chan et al. (2004, October): Internet Connectedness before and after September 11 2001. New Media & Society, 6(5), 611-631. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/146144804047083 Kim, Yung Soo (2012): News Images of the Terrorist Attacks: Framing September 11th and its Aftermath in the Pictures of the Year International Competition. Atlantic Journal of Communication, 20(3), 158-184. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15456870.2012.692237 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/15456870.2012.692237 S146 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kimmage, Daniel (2008, March): The Al-Qaeda Media Nexus: The Virtual Network behind the Global Message. RFE/RL Special Report. URL: http://docs.rferl.org/enUS/AQ_Media_Nexus.pdf Kimmage, Daniel (2010, March): Al-Qaeda Central and the Internet. Counterterrorism Strategy Initiative Policy Paper. URL: http://counterterrorism.newamerica.net/sites/newamerica.net/files/policydocs/kimmage2_0.pdf Kimmage, Daniel; Ridolfo, Kathleen (2007, June): The War of Images and Ideas: How Sunni Insurgents in Iraq and their Supporters Worldwide are Using the Media. RFE/RL Special Report. URL: http://realaudio.rferl.org/online/OLPDFfiles/insurgent.pdf King, Erika G.; deYoung, Mary (2008, April): Imag(in)ing September 11: Ward Churchill, Frame Contestation, and Media Hegemony. Journal of Communication Inquiry, 32(2), 123-139. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0196859907311670 King, Samantha (2009, February): Virtually Normal: Mark Bingham, the War on Terror, and the Sexual Politics of Sport. Journal of Sport and Social Issues, 33(1), 5-24. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0193723508328631 Kingston, Shane (1995): Terrorism, the Media, and the Northern Ireland Conflict. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 18(3), 203-231. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576109508435980 Kirchhoff, Susanne (2011): Krieg mit Metaphern: Über die symbolische Deutung der Terroranschläge im Mediendiskurs. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 968-988. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_47 Kirouac-Fram, Jaclyn (2011): "The Most Disturbing Aspects": Apprehending Public Reaction to Photographs of the 9/11 Jumpers. Radical History Review, 2011(111), 131-137. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/01636545-1268749 URL: http://rhr.dukejournals.org/content/2011/111/131.full.pdf S147 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kirsten, Gysbert M. (2008): Media and Terrorism. In: Pieter J. Fourie (Ed.): Media Studies: Vol. 2: Policy, Management and Media Representation. (2nd edition). Cape Town: Juta, n.p. Kitch, Carolyn (2011): "Our Duty to History": Newsmagazines and the National Voice. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 113-130. Kjaerland, Maria (2008): Profiling Coordinated Cyber Incidents towards the Critical Infrastructure in Norway. International Journal of Critical Infrastructures, 4(4), 335-352. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1504/IJCIS.2008.020155 Klausen, Jytte et al. (2012, March): The YouTube Jihadists: A Social Network Analysis of Al-Muhajiroun’s Propaganda Campaign. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(1), 36-53. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/klausen-et-al-youtube-jihadists Klimke, Daniela (2002): Dramaturgie eines Anschlags. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 39-46. Klopfenstein, Bruce (2006): Terrorism and the Exploitation of New Media. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 107-120. Knight, Alan (2007, September): Jihad and Cross-Cultural Media: Osama bin Laden as Reported in the Asian Press. Pacific Journalism Review, 13(2), 155-174. Knight, Alan; Ubayasiri, Kasun (2002): eTerror: Journalism, Terrorism and the Internet. Ejournalist, 2(1). URL: http://ejournalist.com.au/v2n1/alkas.pdf Knop, Katharina Von (2007): Countering Web-Based Islamist Narratives: Conceptualizing an Information War and a Counter-Propaganda Campaign. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace S148 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 245266. Knop, Katharina Von (2008): Institutionalization of a Web-Focused, Multinational Counter-Terrorism Campaign – Building a Collective Open Source Intelligent System – A Discussion Paper. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 8-23. Knowles, Chase Laurelle (2008, December): Towards a New Web Genre: Islamist Neorealism. Journal of War and Culture Studies, 1(3), 357-380. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jwcs.1.3.357_1 Knudsen, Britta Timm (2003): The Eyewitness and the Affected Viewer: September 11 in the Media. Nordicom Review, 24(2), 117-125. URL: http://www.nordicom.gu.se/common/publ_pdf/32_117-126.pdf Knysh, Alexander (2012): Islam and Arabic as the Rhetoric of Insurgency: The Case of the Caucasus Emirate. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 35(4), 315-337. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2012.656343 Koenen, Anne; Georgi-Findlay, Brigitte (2010): Reactions to 9/11 in the German Media. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 93-103. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Kohlmann, Evan F. (2000): A Web of Terror. The Journal of Counterterrorism & Security International, 6(3), 18-21. Kohlmann, Evan F. (2006): The Real Online Terrorist Threat. Foreign Affairs, 85(5), 115-124. Kohlmann, Evan F. (2006, August): Expert Report on the ~AQCORPO Website. Expert Witness Report on Behalf of New Scotland Yard. URL: http://nefafoundation.org//file/FeaturedDocs/ekirhaby0108.pdf S149 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kohlmann, Evan F. (2008, January): Al-Qa`ida’s "MySpace”: Terrorist Recruitment on the Internet. CTC Sentinel, 1(2), 8-9. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/07/CTCSentinel-Vol1Iss2.pdf Kohlmann, Evan F. (2008, July): "Homegrown" Terrorists: Theory and Cases in the War on Terror's Newest Front. The ANNALS of the American Academy of Political and Social Science, 618(1), 95-109. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002716208317203 Kohlmann, Evan F. (2008, December): Inside As-Sahaab: The Story of Ali al-Bahlul and the Evolution of Al-Qaida’s Propaganda. NEFA Report. URL: http://www.nefafoundation.org/miscellaneous/FeaturedDocs/nefabahlulsahaab1208.pdf Kohlmann, Evan F. (2009, March): Prominent Jihad Media Organizations in Central Asia. NEFA Chart. URL: http://nefafoundation.org//file/FeaturedDocs/nefajihadmedia0309.pdf Kohlmann, Evan F. (2009, May): Al-Qaida's Online Couriers: The Al-Fajr Media Center and the Global Islamic Media Front (GIMF). NEFA Chart. URL: http://nefafoundation.org//file/fajrchart9-FINAL.swf Kohlmann, Evan F. (2010, February): A Beacon for Extremists: The Ansar al-Mujahideen Web Forum. CTC Sentinel, 3(2), 1-4. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinel-Vol3Iss2.pdf Kohlmann, Evan F. (2011): The Antisocial Network: Countering the Use of Online Social Networking Technologies by Foreign Terrorist Organizations. Testimony submitted with Josh Lefkowitz and Laith Alkhouri before the House Homeland Security Committee, Subcommittee on Counterterrorism and Intelligence on December 6, 2011. URL: http://homeland.house.gov/sites/homeland.house.gov/files/Testimony%20Kohlmann %5B1%5D.pdf König, Michael (2011): "Alles wird anders" – Der 11. September in deutscher Literatur. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). S150 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 819-841. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/9783-531-94173-8_40 König, Michael (2012): Literary Accounts of Terrorism in Recent German Literature: An Attempt at Marginalization? In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 155174. Korchenko, Oleksandr; Vasiliu, Yevhen; Gnatyuk, Sergiy (2010): Modern Quantum Technologies of Information Security against Cyber‐Terrorist Attacks. Aviation, 14(2), http://dx.doi.org/10.3846/aviation.2010.10 Korn, Alina (2004): Israeli Press and the War against Terrorism: The Construction of the "Liquidation Policy". Crime, Law and Social Change, 41(3), 209-234. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1023/B:CRIS.0000024404.11674.23 Kossowska, Małgorzata; Golec de Zavala, Agnieszka; Kubik, Tomasz (2010): Stereotyped Images of Terrorists as Predictors of Fear of Future Terrorist Attacks. Behavioral Sciences of Terrorism and Political Aggression, 2(3), 179-197. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19434471003768834 Kostopoulos, George K. (2008): Cyberterrorism: The Next Arena of Confrontation. Communications of the IBIMA, 6(25), 165-169. URL: http://www.ibimapublishing.com/journals/CIBIMA/volume6/v6n25.pdf Kovacich, Gerald L.; Jones, Andy (2001): What InfoSec Professionals Should Know about Information Warfare Tactics by Terrorists. Computers & Security, 21(1), 35-41. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S0167-4048(02)00104-9 Kovacich, Gerald L.; Jones, Andy (2006): 22 – Terrorism – Crime or War? Its Impact on the HighTechnology Crime Investigator and the Profession. In: High-Technology Crime Investigator's Handbook: Establishing and Managing a High-Technology Crime Prevention Program. (2nd ed.). Amsterdam: Butterworth-Heinemann, 393-404. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/B978075067929-9.50069-5 S151 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Koven, Ronald (2003): Fairness is the Best Defence. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 67-68. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Kowalewski, Jennifer (2011): Public Response: Crisis and Presidential Approval. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 121-132. Kozol, Wendy; DeCola, Rebecca (2006): Remapping the Visual War on Terrorism: "U.S. Internationalism" and Transnational Citizenship. In: Andrew Martin; Patrice Petro (Eds.): Rethinking Global Security: Media, Popular Culture, and the "War on Terror". (New Directions in International Studies). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 179-205. Kraschinski, Antje (2009, February): Al-Qaida’s "A Bailout Plan for Germany": A NEFA Analysis. NEFA Report. URL: http://nefafoundation.org//file/FeaturedDocs/nefa_harrach0209.pdf Kratzer, Renee Martin; Kratzer, Brian (2005): How Newspapers Decided to Run Disturbing 9/11 Photos. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 25-38. Kraushaar, Wolfgang (2006): Kleinkrieg gegen einen Großverleger: Von der Anti-Springer-Kampagne der APO zu den Brand- und Bombenanschlägen der RAF. In: Wolfgang Kraushaar (Ed.): Die RAF und der linke Terrorismus. Hamburg: Hamburger Edition, 1075-1116. Krauß, Gunvor (2012): „manhattan-zeugenschrift“: Der 11. September in der deutschsprachigen Lyrik am Beispiel von Thomas Klings Manhattan Mundraum Zwei. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 219-238. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 S152 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Kreimeier, Klaus (2005): Die Konfiguration des Bösen: Ikonographische Anmerkungen zum Bild Osama bin Ladens in den Massenmedien. In: Heinz-Peter Preusser (Ed.): Krieg in den Medien. (Amsterdamer Beiträge zur neueren Germanistik, Vol. 57), 281-292. Kuipers, Giselinde (2002, November): Media Culture and Internet Disaster Jokes: Bin Laden and the Attack on the World Trade Center. European Journal of Cultural Studies, 5(4), 450-470. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1364942002005004296 URL: http://www.giselinde.nl/ejcs2002.pdf Kumar, Deepa (2010, July): Framing Islam: The Resurgence of Orientalism during the Bush II Era. Journal of Communication Inquiry, 34(3), 254-277. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0196859910363174 Kumar, Niven; Swiatek, Lucyna (2012): Representations of New Terror: "Auto-Anomie" in the Films of Michael Haneke. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 48(3), 311-321. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2012.678748 Kumar, Poonam; Mittal, Saurabh (2012): The Perpetration and Prevention of Cyber Crime: An Analysis of Cyber Terrorism in India. International Journal of Technoethics, 3(1), 43-52. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/jte.2012010104 Kumashiro, David J. (2005, December): Microsoft, Al Jazeera, and the Predator: The Challenges of Effects-Based Operations in the Global War on Terrorism. Air University Air Command and Staff College Wright Flyer Paper No. 21. URL: http://purl.access.gpo.gov/GPO/LPS110827 #L Lachlan, Kenneth A.; Spence, Patric R.; Seeger, Matthew (2009): Terrorist Attacks and Uncertainty Reduction: Media Use after September 11. Behavioral Sciences of Terrorism and Political Aggression, 1(2), 101-110. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19434470902771683 S153 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Lachow, Irving; Richardson, Courtney (2007, Summer): Terrorist Use of the Internet: The Real Story. Joint Force Quarterly, 45, 100-103. URL: http://www.au.af.mil/au/awc/awcgate/jfq/terr_internet_2q07.pdf LaFree, Gary; Dugan, Laura (2007): Introducing the Global Terrorism Database. Terrorism and Political Violence, 19(2), 181-204. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550701246817 URL: http://www.ccjs.umd.edu/sites/ccjs.umd.edu/files/pubs/FTPV_A_224594.pdf Laist, Randy (2010): The Concept of Disappearance in Don DeLillo's Cosmopolis. Critique: Studies in Contemporary Fiction, 51(3), 257-275. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00111610903379966 Lambe, Jennifer L. et al. (2004): Public Perceptions of Media Performance at the Beginning of the War on Terrorism. Communication Research Reports, 21(3), 299-309. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08824090409359992 Lamloum, Olfa (2009, December): Hezbollah’s Media: Political History in Outline. Global Media and Communication, 5(3), 353-367. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766509348673 Landau, Edan (2012, May 26): "...And Inspire The Believers". ICT Article. URL: http://www.ict.org.il/Articles/tabid/66/Articlsid/1074/currentpage/1/Default.aspx Landesamt für Verfassungsschutz Berlin (2007, March): Audio- und Videobotschaften von "al-Qa’ida" 2006. Lageanalyse. URL: http://www.berlin.de/imperia/md/content/seninn/verfassungsschutz/lage_audio_videobotschafte n_2006.pdf?download.html Landesamt für Verfassungsschutz Berlin (2008, March): Der "Medienjihad" der Islamisten. Lageanalyse. URL: http://www.berlin.de/imperia/md/content/seninn/verfassungsschutz/lage_medienjihad_islamiste n.pdf?download.html S154 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Landesamt für Verfassungsschutz Berlin (2011, September): Vom Gangster-Rap zum Jihad-Aufruf – radikalisierende Hymnen "neugeborener" Salafisten. Lageanalyse. URL: http://www.berlin.de/imperia/md/content/seninn/verfassungsschutz/lageanalyse_salafistische_k ampflieder_1.pdf?start&ts=1331195967&file=lageanalyse_salafistische_kampflieder_1.pdf Langenohl, Andreas; Schmidt-Beck, Kerstin (2008): Wenn Erinnerungsfilme scheitern – filmische Erinnerungen an den 11. September. In: Astrid Erll; Stephanie Wodianka (Eds.): Film und kulturelle Erinnerung: Plurimediale Konstellationen. Berlin: De Gruyter, 231-262. Lankala, Srinivas (2006): Mediated Nationalisms and "Islamic Terror": The Articulation of Religious and Postcolonial Secular Nationalisms in India. Westminster Papers in Communication and Culture, 3(2), 86-102. URL: http://www.westminster.ac.uk/__data/assets/pdf_file/0014/20138/5--Mediated_Nationalism.pdf La Porte Alfaro, María Teresa; Sádaba, María Teresa (2010): September 11 in the Spanish Press: War or Terrorism Frame? Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 104-121. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Larsen, Hanne Miriam (2005, December): Hostage Videos: Tropes of Terror as Social Practice. P.O.V., 20. URL: http://pov.imv.au.dk/Issue_20/section_1/artc2A.html Larson, Eric V. (2011): Al Qaeda’s Propaganda: A Shifting Battlefield. In: Brian Michael Jenkins; John Paul Godges (Eds.): The Long Shadow of 9/11: America's Response to Terrorism. RAND Monograph MG-1107. Santa Monica: RAND Corporation, 71-85. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/monographs/MG1107.html Lasorsa, Dominic (2005): News Media Perpetuate Few Rumors about 9/11 Crisis. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 13-24. S155 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Last, Jonathan V. (2007): Unwelcome Internet Guests: The Problem of Jihadist Websites Hosted in America. The Weekly Standard, 44(12). URL: http://www.weeklystandard.com/Content/Public/Articles/000/000/013/924bstsn.asp Last, Mark (2005): Using Data Mining Technology for Terrorist Detection on the Web. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 4162. Last, Mark; Markov, Alex; Kandel, Abraham (2008): Multi-Lingual Detection of Web Terrorist Content. In: Hsinchun Chen; Christopher C. Yang (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: Techniques and Applications. (Studies in Computational Intelligence, Vol. 3). Berlin: Springer, 79-96. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-69209-6_5 Latour, Philippe (2003): Brother with no Arms. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 59-64. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Lee, Christina (2008): Dot-Com, Dot-Bomb: (Cyber)terror on the Internet. In: Tara Brabazon (Ed.): The Revolution will not be Downloaded: Dissent in the Digital Age. Oxford: Chandos Publishing, 213-222. Lee, JinKyu; Rao, H. Raghav (2007, August): Perceived Risks, Counter-Beliefs, and Intentions to Use Anti-/Counter-Terrorism Websites: An Exploratory Study of Government-Citizens Online Interactions in a Turbulent Environment. Decision Support Systems, 43(4), 1431-1449. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.dss.2006.04.008 URL: http://www.som.buffalo.edu/isinterface/papers/JinKyu.pdf S156 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Lee, JinKyu; Rao, H. Raghav (2012, July): Service Source and Channel Choice in G2C Service Environments: A Model Comparison in the Anti/Counter-Terrorism Domain. Information Systems Journal, 22(4), 313-341. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1365-2575.2011.00388.x URL: http://www.som.buffalo.edu/isinterface/papers/ISJ2011_eGov_Service_Source_and_Channel_Choice.pdf Lee, Rensselaer; Perl, Raphael (2002): Overview: Information Warfare Issues. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 5. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 117-118. Lee, Suman; Rodriguez, Lulu (2008, March): Four Publics of Anti-Bioterrorism Information Campaigns: A Test of the Situational Theory. Public Relations Review, 34(1), 60-62. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.pubrev.2007.11.007 Lee, T.; Giles, C. (2003): Mediating and Mass Communicating Sept 11. Asia Pacific Media Educator, 14, 106-116. URL: http://ro.uow.edu.au/apme/vol1/iss14/8 Leggewie, Claus (2008): Der andere Elfte September: Mediale Spiegelungen eines freudig begrüßten Ereignisses. In: Friedrich Lenger; Ansgar Nünning (Eds.): Medienereignisse der Moderne. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 192-204. Leipnik, Mark R. (2008): Use of Geographic Information Systems in Cyber Warfare and Cyber Counterterrorism. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 291-297. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-9915.ch034 Lemack, Carie (2007): The Journey to September 12th: A 9/11 Victim's Experiences with the Press, the President, and Congress. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 30(9), 739-766. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100701503972 Lemyre, Louise (2006): Public Perception of Terrorism Threats and Related Information Sources in Canada: Implications for the Management of Terrorism Risks. Journal of Risk Research, 9(7), 755-774. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13669870600924477 S157 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Lennings, Christopher J. et al. (2010): Grooming for Terror: The Internet and Young People. Psychiatry, Psychology and Law, 17(3), 424-437. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13218710903566979 Lentini, Pete (2008, July): Muslim Media Interventions: Social Capital, Social Cohesion and Human Security in the Struggle against Terrorism. In: Hussein Tahiri; Sharon Pickering (Eds.): Counter-Terrorism International Conference 2007: 15-16 October 2007 Sofitel Hotel, Melbourne, Australia: Conference Papers. Melbourne: Victoria Police; Monash University, 12-18. URL: http://www.arts.monash.edu.au/politics/terror-research/-downloads/counterterrorreport08.pdf Lentini, Pete; Bakashmar, Muhammad (2007): Jihadist Beheading: A Convergence of Technology, Theology, and Teleology? Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 30(4), 303-325. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100701200140 Leps, Marie-Christine (2010): Falling Man: Performing Fiction. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 184-203. Leudar, Ivan; Nekvapil, Jiří (2007): The War on Terror and Muslim Britons’ Safety: A Week in the Life of a Dialogical Network. Ethnographic Studies, 9, 44-62. URL: http://www.socialsciences.manchester.ac.uk/disciplines/sociology/about/events/ethnography/jo urnal/issue9/documents/leudar-nekvapil-the-war-on-terror.pdf Lévesque, Stéphane (2003): “Bin Laden is Responsible; it was Shown on Tape”: Canadian High School Students' Historical Understanding of Terrorism. Theory & Research in Social Education, 31(2), 174-202. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00933104.2003.10473221 Levi, Michael; Wall, David S. (2004, June): Technologies, Security, and Privacy in the Post-9/11 European Information Society. Journal of Law and Society, 31(2), 194-220. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1467-6478.2004.00287.x S158 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Lewis, James Andrew (2002, December): Assessing the Risks of Cyber Terrorism, Cyber War and other Cyber Threats. CSIS Report. URL: http://csis.org/publication/assessing-risks-cyberterrorism-cyber-war-and-other-cyber-threats Lewis, James Andrew (2003): Cyber Terror: Missing in Action. Knowledge, Technology & Policy, 16(2), 34-41. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s12130-003-1024-6 Lewis, James Andrew (2006): Critical Infrastructure Protection and Cyber-Terrorism: Mass Destruction or Mass Annoyance? In: Anja Daalgard Nielsen; Daniel Hamilton (Eds.): Transatlantic Homeland Security? Protecting Society in the Age of Catastrophic Terrorism. London: Routledge, 65-79. Lewis, Jeff (2002, August): Propagating Terror: 9/11 and the Mediation of War. Media International Australia, 104, 80-91. Lewis, Jeff; de Masi, Sonya (2007, February): Unholy Wars: Media Representations of the First Bali Bombings and their Aftermath. Media International Australia, 122, 59-72. Lewis, Jeff; Lewis, Belinda (2005): After Infinite Justice: Australia, the Media and Global Violence. International Journal of Diversity in Organisations, 4, 67-76. Lewis, Jeff; Lewis, Belinda (2010): Transactions in Desire: Media Imaginings of Narcotics and Terrorism in Indonesia. Cultural Studies Review, 16(2), 140-158. URL: http://epress.lib.uts.edu.au/journals/index.php/csrj/article/view/1698 Lewis, Justin (2012): Terrorism and News Narratives. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 257-270. Lewis, Seth C.; Reese, Stephen D. (2009, March): What is the War on Terror? Framing through the Eyes of Journalists. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 86(1), 85-102. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900908600106 URL: http://journalism.utexas.edu/sites/journalism.utexas.edu/files/attachments/reese/what-is-warterror-framing-lewis-reese.pdf S159 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Leyendecker, Hans (2002): Kollateralschaden nach dem 11. September. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (iköPublikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 75-80. Li, Xigen (2007): Stages of a Crisis and Media Frames and Functions: U.S. Television Coverage of the 9/11 Incident during the First 24 Hours. Journal of Broadcasting & Electronic Media, 51(4), 670-687. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08838150701626578 Li, Xigen; Izard, Ralph (2005): 9/11 TV, Newspaper Coverage Reveals Similarities, Differences. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 89-104. Li, Xigen; Izard, Ralph (2011): Different Functions: Television and Newspapers. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 113-120. Li, Xigen; Perkins, Jay (2011): Consolation: Was it a Virtual Catharsis? In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 51-60. Lia, Brynjar (2006, January): Al-Qaeda Online: Understanding Jihadist Internet Infrastructure. Jane's Intelligence Review, 18(1), 14-19. Lia, Brynjar (2007, February): Jihadi Web Media Production: Characteristics, Trends, and Future Implications. Paper presented at the "Check the Web" Conference on "Monitoring, Research and Analysis of Jihadist Activities on the Internet – Ways to Deal with the Issue", Berlin, Germany, February 26-27, 2007. URL: https://docs.google.com/viewer? a=v&pid=sites&srcid=ZGVmYXVsdGRvbWFpbnxqaWhhZGlzbXN0dWRpZXNuZXR8Z3g6 NTNiOTQ5ZmZmMThkZWQzMA Lia, Brynjar (2008, May): Al-Qaida’s Appeal: Understanding its Unique Selling Points. Perspectives on Terrorism, 2(8), 3-10. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/44/91 S160 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Liebes, Tamar; Kampf, Zohar (2007, Winter): Routinizing Terror: Media Coverage and Public Practices in Israel, 2000-2005. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 12(1), 108-116. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X06297120 Liebes, Tamar; Kampf, Zohar (2009): Performance Journalism: The Case of Media's Coverage of War and Terror. The Communication Review, 12(3), 239-249. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10714420903124135 Lim, Merlyna (2005): Islamic Radicalism and Anti-Americanism in Indonesia: The Role of the Internet. East-West Center Policy Studies, No. 18. URL: http://www.eastwestcenter.org/publications/islamic-radicalism-and-anti-americanismindonesia-role-internet Limpattaamapane, Chavarong (2003): Media in Danger: South East Asia at a Glance. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 84-86. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Lipkin, Steve (2010): This Time it’s Personal: The Ethics of 9/11 Docudrama. In: Howard Good; Sandra L. Borden (Eds.): Ethics and Entertainment: Essays on Media Culture and Media Morality. Jefferson: McFarland & Company, 120-135. Lipschultz, Jeremy Harris (2007, March): Framing Terror: Violence, Social Conflict, and the "War on Terror". Electronic News, 1(1), 21-35. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19312430709336902 URL: http://www.unomaha.edu/wwwcomm/forms/publications/lipschultz_framing.pdf Liss, Carolin (2009): Framing Terrorism in the Southern Philippines: Foreign Media and the Abu Sayyaf. In: Arndt Graf; Peter Kreuzer; Rainer Werning (Eds.): Conflict in Moro Land: Prospects for Peace? Pulau Pinang: Penerbit Universiti Sains Malaysia, 115-146. S161 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Livingstone, David (2007, November): Taking on the Radicals. Index on Censorship, 36(4), 148153. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03064220701740608 URL: http://www.indexoncensorship.org/wp-content/uploads/2008/02/livingstone_dec_07.pdf Locher, Alexandra (2012): Der Weg in die Isolation: Kommunikative Strategien der Roten Brigaden im Italien der 1970er Jahre. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 241-260. Lockyer, Adam (2003, August): The Relationship between the Media and Terrorism. SDSC Opinion Piece. URL: http://ics-www.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/1767/lockyer.pdf Lohlker, Rüdiger (2011, November 7): Dschihadismus im Internet. bpb Dossier Islamismus. URL: http://www.bpb.de/politik/extremismus/islamismus/39442/dschihadismus-im-internet Lohlker, Rüdiger (2012): Introduction. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 7-8. Lohlker, Rüdiger (2012): The Forgotten Swamp Revisited. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 125-140. Lohlker, Rüdiger (2013): Introduction. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 7-8. Lohlker, Rüdiger (2013): Religion, Weapons, and Jihadism Emblematic Discourses. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 65-88. S162 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Lohlker, Rüdiger; Prucha, Nico (2007): Dschihadismus im Internet: Die praktische Seite. .SIAKJournal, 4/2007, 4-11. URL: https://www3.cepol.europa.eu/dspace/bitstream/123456789/416/1/SIAK_4_7_lohiker_prucha.p df Lombardi, Giancarlo (2009): Screening Terror: Political Terrorism in Italian Cinema. In: Pierpaolo Antonello; Alan O’Leary (Eds.): Imagining Terrorism: The Rhetoric and Representation of Political Violence in Italy 1969-2009. (Italian Perspectives, Vol. 18). London: Legenda, 88-100. Lorenzo-Dus, Nuria (2011, July): Dynamics of Memory: Commemorating the 2005 London Bombings in British Television News. Memory Studies, 4(3), 281-297. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750698011402573 Louw, P. Eric (2003): The "War against Terrorism": A Public Relations Challenge for the Pentagon. International Communication Gazette, 65(3), 211-230. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0016549203065003001 URL: http://www.sagepub.com/martin3study/articles/Louw.pdf Louw, P. Eric (2005): The Media and Terrorism. In: The Media and Political Process. London: SAGE, 238-251. Louw, Raymond (2003): 11 September: Consequences for Freedom of Information in South Africa. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 71-72. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Lowenstein, Adam (2011): Transforming Horror: David Cronenberg's Cinematic Gestures after 9/11. In: Aviva Briefel; Sam J. Miller (Eds.): Horror after 9/11: World of Fear, Cinema of Terror. Austin: University of Texas Press, 62-82. S163 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Lowrey, Wilson (2004): Media Dependency during a Large-Scale Social Disruption: The Case of September 11. Mass Communication and Society, 7(3), 339-357. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15327825mcs0703_5 Lule, Jack (1988): The Myth of my Widow: A Dramatistic Analysis of News Portrayals of a Terrorist Victim. Political Communication, 5(2), 101-120. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1988.9962843 Lule, Jack (2002, June): Myth and Terror on the Editorial Page: The New York Times Responds to September 11, 2001. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 79(2), 275-293. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900207900202 Lumbaca, Sonise; Gray, David H. (2011, Winter): The Media as an Enabler for Acts of Terrorism. Global Security Studies, 2(1), 45-54. URL: http://globalsecuritystudies.com/Media.pdf Lundry, Chris et al. (2012): Cooking the Books: Strategic Inflation of Casualty Reports by Extremists in the Afghanistan Conflict. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 35(5), 369-381. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2012.666821 Lurie, Susan (2012): Spectacular Bodies and Political Knowledge: 9/11 Cultures and the Problem of Dissent. American Literary History. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/alh/ajs058 Lynch, Andrew (2006): Maximising the Drama: "Jihad Jack", the Court of Appeal and the Australian Media. Adelaide Law Review, 27(2), 311-334. URL: http://www.austlii.edu.au/au/journals/AdelLawRw/2006/9.html Lynch, Jake (2007): Issues in the Media Coverage of Terrorism. Media Development, 3/2007. URL: http://www.waccglobal.org/en/20073-media-and-terror/464-Issues-in-the-media-coverage-ofterrorism.html S164 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement #M Machin, David; Suleiman, Usama (2006): Arab and American Computer War Games: The Influence of a Global Technology on Discourse. Critical Discourse Studies, 3(1), 1-22. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17405900600591362 Mack, Kevin (2009, December): Grounding Terrorism on Ground Zero: How 9/11 Informs U.S. Press Coverage of Political Violence. Asia Pacific: Perspectives, 9(1), 2-16. URL: http://usf.usfca.edu/pac_rim/new/research/perspectives/app_v9n1_Gulvadi.pdf Madhany, Al-Husein N.; Ahmad, Firas (2008, July): Independent Muslim Media’s Counter-Terrorism Role. In: Hussein Tahiri; Sharon Pickering (Eds.): Counter-Terrorism International Conference 2007: 15-16 October 2007 Sofitel Hotel, Melbourne, Australia: Conference Papers. Melbourne: Victoria Police; Monash University, 28-29. URL: http://www.arts.monash.edu.au/politics/terror-research/--downloads/counterterrorreport08.pdf Madsen, C. Wayne (1988, August): The World Meganetwork and Terrorism. Computers & Security, 7(4), 347-352. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/0167-4048(88)90572-X Maeseele, Pieter A. et al. (2008, April): Psychosocial Resilience in the Face of a Mediated Terrorist Threat. Media, War & Conflict, 1(1), 50-69. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635207087625 Magor, Maggie (2002): News Terrorism: Misogyny Exposed and the Easy Journalism of Conflict. Feminist Media Studies, 2(1), 141-144. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/146807702753745437 Maguire, Thomas E. R. (2005): Website Review: Islamist Websites. Global Media and Communication, 1(1), 121-123. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766505050177 Mahlke, Kirsten (2012): A Fantastic Tale of Terror: Argentina’s "Disappeared" and their Narrative Representation in Julio Cortázar’s "Second Time Round". In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 195-212. S165 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Mahony, Inez (2010, December): Diverging Frames: A Comparison of Indonesian and Australian Press Portrayals of Terrorism and Islamic Groups in Indonesia. International Communication Gazette, 72(8), 739-758. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048510380813 URL: http://gaz.sagepub.com/content/72/8/739.full.pdf Mahrouse, Gada (2009): Transnational Activists, News Media Representations, and Racialized "Politics of Life": The Christian Peacemaker Team Kidnapping in Iraq. Citizenship Studies, 13(4), 311-331. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13621020903011005 Malik, Shaista; Iqbal, Zafar (2011, April): Construction of Taliban Image in Pakistan: Discourse Analysis of Editorials of Dawn and The News. China Media Research, 7(2), 46-56. URL: http://www2.lse.ac.uk/media@lse/events/MeCCSA/pdf/papers/Malik%20and%20Iqbal %20Paper.pdf Maluschke, Günther (2002, January): Die Resonanz der Terroranschläge vom 11. September 2001 in der brasilianischen Publizistik. KAS Auslandsinformationen, 1/2002, 76-96. URL: http://www.kas.de/wf/de/33.161 Mannathukkaren, Nissim (2010): Media Terror! Understanding Television and the Media in India in the Context of "26/11". South Asian History and Culture, 1(3), 416-434. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19472498.2010.485384 Manning, Peter (2003, November): Arabic and Muslim People in Sydney's Daily Newspapers, before and after September 11. Media International Australia, 109, 50-70. Manor, Yohanan; Mizrahi, Ido (2010): Hamas's Web School for Suicide Bombers. Middle East Quarterly, 17(2), 31-40. URL: http://www.meforum.org/2675/hamas-web-school-suicidebombers S166 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Mansour, Nedal (2003): Aftermath of 11 September: An Arab Perspective. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 74-76. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Mantel, Barbara (2009, November): Terrorism and the Internet: Should Web Sites that Promote Terrorism be Shut Down? CQ Researcher, 11/2009, 129-153. URL: http://www.cleanitproject.eu/wp-content/uploads/2012/07/2009-Terrorism-and-the-Internet.pdf Manwell, Laurie A. (2010, February): In Denial of Democracy: Social Psychological Implications for Public Discourse on State Crimes against Democracy Post-9/11. American Behavioral Scientist, 53(6), 848-884. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764209353279 Maoz, Ifat (2010): Asymmetric Struggle for the Hearts and Minds of Viewers: Can the Media Actually Trigger Sympathy towards Terrorists? Dynamics of Asymmetric Conflict, 3(2), 99-110. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17467586.2010.531036 Maoz, Ifat (2008): "They Saw a Terrorist": Responses of Jewish-Israeli Viewers to an Interview with a Palestinian Terrorist. Peace and Conflict, 14(3), 275-290. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10781910802229215 Margarov, Gevorg (2010): Data Hiding on the Internet: Steganalysis against Steganography. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 167-182. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/9781-60750-537-2-167 Margarov, Gevorg; Chopuryan, Siranush (2010): Public Key Cryptosystem Based on Finite Automata for Multilateral Antiterrorist Activity Support. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science S167 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 183-188. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-183 Margulies, Peter (2004, Fall): The Clear and Present Internet: Terrorism, Cyberspace, and the First Amendment. UCLA Journal of Law and Technology, 8(2). URL: http://www.lawtechjournal.com/home/articles/22 Marimuthu, Jaganathan (2007, August): Consensus, Terrorism and Peace – The Role of Malaysia’s Media to Promote World Unity in the Post-September 11th Scenario. Geografia – Malaysian Journal of Society and Space, 3(1), 58-74. URL: http://www.ukm.my/geografia/images/upload/5.2007-Jaganathan-(english)-2-baru1.pdf Marin, Ion (2011): The Coverage of Terrorism in the News. Geopolitics, History, and International Relations, 3(2), 254-259. Markov, Alex; Last, Mark (2005): Identification of Terrorist Web Sites with Cross-Lingual Classification Tools. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 117-146. Marmura, Stephen (2010, Summer): Tales of 9/11 – What Conspiracy Theories in Egypt and the United States Tell us about "Media Effects". Arab Media & Society, 11. URL: http://www.arabmediasociety.com/?article=752 Marron, Maria B. (2010): Elite British and Irish Newspapers Reflect Ideology in Framing the 9/11 Catastrophe. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 38-50. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Marsden, Christopher T. (2004): Hyperglobalized Individuals: The Internet, Globalization, Freedom and Terrorism. foresight, 6(3), 128-140. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1108/14636680410547735 Marthoz, Jean-Paul (2003): 11 September: Consequences for Press Freedom. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Na- S168 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement tions Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 51-58. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Martin, C. Gus (2008): Terrorist Violence and the Role of the Media. In: Essentials of Terrorism: Concepts and Controversies. Thousand Oaks: SAGE, 212-230. Martin, C. Gus (2012): Chapter 11: The Information Battleground: Terrorist Violence and the Role of the Media. In: Understanding Terrorism: Challenges, Perspectives, and Issues. (4th Edition). Thousand Oaks: SAGE, n. p. Martin, Elaine (2011, September): Terrorism in Film Media: An International View of Theatrical Films. Journal of War & Culture Studies, 4(2), 207-222. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jwcs.4.2.207_1 Martin, Elaine (2011, December): Terrorism, Humor, and American Popular Culture. Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 233-237. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427495 Martin, Elaine (2012): "I" for Iconoclasm: Graphic Novels and the (Re)presentation of Terrorism. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 5(3), 469-481. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539153.2012.723521 Martin, L. John (1986): The Media's Role in International Terrorism. Terrorism, 8(2), 127-146. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108508435597 Martin, Patrick; Phelan, Sean (2002): Representing Islam in the Wake of September 11: A Comparison of US Television and CNN Online Messageboard Discourses. Prometheus, 20(3), 263-269. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141371 Martorella, Georgina (2006): Libraries in the Aftermath of 9/11. The Reference Librarian, 45(94), 109-137. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1300/J120v45n94_08 S169 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Masood, Wajahat (2010, January): Militants Media in Pakistan: Political Etymology and Professional Craft. PIPS Paper. URL: http://san-pips.com/download.php?f=155.pdf Matar, Dina (2006): Diverse Diasporas, One Meta-Narrative: Palestinians in the UK Talking about 11 September 2001. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 1027-1040. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761537 Mathieson, SA (2005, September): Terrorists Exploit Internet. Computer Fraud & Security, 9/2005, 1-2. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1361-3723(05)70247-5 Matthews, Julie (2005): Visual Culture and Critical Pedagogy in "Terrorist Times". Discourse, 26(2), 203-224. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01596300500143179 URL: http://edandterror.wikispaces.com/file/view/Visual+Culture+and+Critical+Pedagogy+in+Terrorist+Times.pdf Matsaganis, Matthew D.; Payne, J. Gregory (2005, November): Agenda Setting in a Culture of Fear: The Lasting Effects of September 11 on American Politics and Journalism. American Behavioral Scientist, 49(3), 379-392. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764205282049 Matusitz, Jonathan (2008): Cyberterrorism: Postmodern State of Chaos. Information Security Journal, 17(4), 179-187. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19393550802397033 Matusitz, Jonathan (2008): Postmodernism and Networks of Cyberterrorists. Journal of Digital Forensic Practice, 2(1), 17-26. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15567280701723901 Matusitz, Jonathan (2008): Similarities between Terrorist Networks in Antiquity and Present-Day Cyberterrorist Networks. Trends in Organized Crime, 11(2), 183-199. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s12117-008-9034-0 Matusitz, Jonathan (2009): A Postmodern Theory of Cyberterrorism: Game Theory. Information Security Journal, 18(6), 273-281. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19393550903200474 URL: http://123seminarsonly.com/Seminar-Reports/017/54968058-Cyber-Terrorism-as-GameTheory.pdf S170 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Matusitz, Jonathan (2010): Cyberterrorism: Postmodern State of Chaos. Journal of Digital Forensic Practice, 3(2-4), 115-123. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15567281.2010.536733 Matusitz, Jonathan (2011): Social Network Theory: A Comparative Analysis of the Jewish Revolt in Antiquity and the Cyber Terrorism Incident over Kosovo. Information Security Journal, 20(1), 34-44. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19393555.2010.544702 Matusitz, Jonathan; Breen, Gerald-Mark (2011): A Solution-Based Examination of Local, State, and National Government Groups Combating Terrorism and Cyberterrorism. Journal of Human Behavior in the Social Environment, 21(2), 109-129. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10911359.2011.542986 Matusitz, Jonathan; O'Hair, Dan (2008): The Internet and Terrorist Networks. In: Dan O'Hair et al. (Eds.): Terrorism: Communication and Rhetorical Perspectives. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 383410. Mazid, Bahaa-Eddin M. (2008, November): Cowboy and Misanthrope: A Critical (Discourse) Analysis of Bush and bin Laden Cartoons. Discourse & Communication, 2(4), 433-457. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750481308095939 Mazur, Allan (1982, June): Bomb Threats and the Mass Media: Evidence for a Theory of Suggestion. American Sociological Review, 47(3), 407-411. Mazzoleni, Gianpietro (2005, September): E-Terrorism: The Powerful Weapon of Islamic Jihad. Paper presented at the APSA Convention, Washington, DC, U.S., September 1-4, 2005. URL: http://195.130.87.21:8080/dspace/bitstream/123456789/343/1/E-terrorism.%20The %20powerful%20weapon%20of%20Islamic%20Jihad.pdf McAdams, A. James (2005, July): Internet Surveillance after September 11: Is the United States Becoming Great Britain? Comparative Politics, 37(4), 479-498. S171 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement McAvan, Em (2009): Boring is the New Interesting: September 11, Realness, and the Politics of Authenticity in Pop Music. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 90-102. McAvan, Em (2010): Paranoia in Spook Country: William Gibson and the Technological Sublime of the War on Terror. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 46(3-4), 405-413. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2010.482431 McCants, William (2011): n.T. Testimony presented before the House Homeland Security Committee, Subcommittee on Counterterrorism and Intelligence on December 6, 2011. URL: http://homeland.house.gov/sites/homeland.house.gov/files/Testimony%20McCants.pdf McCants, William; Rosenau, William; Thompson, Eric (2011, September 26): Cyberspace and Violent Non-State Groups: Uses, Capabilities, and Threats. CNA Strategic Studies D0025894.A1. URL: http://www.cna.org/research/2011/cyberspace-violent-non-state-groups-uses McChesney, Robert W. (2011): September 11 and the Structural Limitations of US Journalism. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 104-112. McClanahan, Jack R. (2002): America's Information War on Terrorism: Winning Hearts and Minds in the Muslim World. USAWC Strategy Research Project Paper. URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/vp01.cfm?outfit=pmt&folder=10&paper=658 McClure, Kevin R. (2009, July): Madrasas and Pakistan's Education Agenda: Western Media Misrepresentation and Policy Recommendations. International Journal of Educational Development, 29(4), 334-341. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.ijedudev.2009.01.003 McCulloch, Alison (2008, September): "Māori Terror Threat": The Dangers of the Post-9/11 Narrative. Pacific Journalism Review, 14(2), 205-217. URL: http://www.pjreview.info/issues/ %E2%80%98m%C4%81ori-terror-threat%E2%80%99-dangers-post-911-narrative S172 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Mcdonald, Ian R.; Lawrence, Regina G. (2004, November): Filling the 24 × 7 News Hole: Television News Coverage following September 11. American Behavioral Scientist, 48(3), 327-340. McEwen, Michael T.; Sloan, Stephen (1979): Terrorism: Police and Press Problems. Terrorism, 2(12), 1-54. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576107908435427 McGarrity, Nicola (2011): Fourth Estate or Government Lapdog? The Role of the Australian Media in the Counter-Terrorism Context. Continuum, 25(2), 273-283. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304312.2011.553946 McGee, Laura (2012): When "Bomb Canada" is Really Just a Metaphor: Using the American Jeremiad to Reinterpret Anti-Canadianism in the American Press. American Review of Canadian Studies, 42(1), 51-66. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/02722011.2012.649927 McInerney, Lisa (2007, May): Virtual Theatre of Terror: Spotlight on the Audience. Working paper prepared for presentation at the PSAI Postgraduate Conference, The University of Dublin, Trinity College, May 2007. URL: http://www.psai.ie/conferences/papers2007/McInerney.pdf McKay, Fiona H.; Thomas, Samantha L.; Blood, Richard Warwick (2011, July): "Any one of these Boat People could be a Terrorist for all we Know!": Media Representations and Public Perceptions of "Boat People" Arrivals in Australia. Journalism, 12(5), 607-626. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1464884911408219 McLendon, James W. (2002): Information Warfare: Impacts and Concerns. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 5. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 131-150. McLeod, Douglas M. (2009): Derelict of Duty: The American News Media, Terrorism, and the War in Iraq. Marquette Law Review, 93(1), 113-136. URL: http://scholarship.law.marquette.edu/mulr/vol93/iss1/10 McNair, Brian (2010): UK Media Coverage of September 11. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 29-37. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf S173 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement McNamara, Lawrence (2009): Counter-Terrorism Laws: How they Affect Media Freedom and News Reporting. Westminster Papers in Communication and Culture, 6(1), 27-44. URL: http://www.westminster.ac.uk/__data/assets/pdf_file/0009/19989/003WPCC-Vol6-No1Lawrence_McNamara.pdf McNamara, Lawrence (2009, March): Closure, Caution and the Question of Chilling: How have Australian Counter-Terrorism Laws Affected the Media? Media & Arts Law Review, 14(1), 130. McNeal, Gregory S. (2007-08): Cyber Embargo: Countering the Internet Jihad. Case Western Reserve Journal of International Law, 39(3), 789-826. URL: http://law.case.edu/journals/JIL/Documents/(5)%20McNeal%20article.pdf McNeal, Gregory S. (2010, September 29): U.S. Strategy for Countering Jihadist Websites. Testimony presented before the United States House of Representatives Committee on Foreign Affairs Subcommittee on Terrorism, Nonproliferation and Trade, September 29, 2010. URL: http://gsmcneal.com/wp-content/uploads/2010/09/McNealJihadistWebsitesTestimony.pdf Mcnee, Fiona (2002): Something's Happened: Fictional Media as a Coping Mechanism. Prometheus, 20(3), 281-287. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141416 McQueen, David Adrian (2010, March-April): Panorama's Coverage of 9-11 and the War on Terror. Paper presented at the 60th Political Studies Association Annual Conference: Sixty Years of Political Studies: Achievements and Futures, University of Edinburgh, Edinburgh, UK, 29 March - 1 April, 2010. URL: http://www.psa.ac.uk/journals/pdf/5/2010/1215_1123.pdf McSweeney, Terence (2010): The Land of the Dead and the Home of the Brave: Romero’s Vision of a Post-9/11 America. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 107-116. Mead, John (2010): 9/11, Manhood, Mourning, and the American Romance. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 57-68. S174 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Meadow, Robert G. (2009): Political Violence and the Media. Marquette Law Review, 93(1), 230240. URL: http://scholarship.law.marquette.edu/mulr/vol93/iss1/14 Meckel, Miriam (2008): Zwischen Informationspflicht und Instrumentalisierung: Zur widersprüchlichen Rolle der Medien in der Symbolkommunikation des Terrorismus. In: Bernhard Pörksen; Wiebke Loosen; Armin Scholl (Eds.): Paradoxien des Journalismus: Theorie – Empirie – Praxis: Festschrift für Siegfried Weischenberg. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 247-266. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-91816-7_14 Meddaugh, Priscilla Marie; Kay, Jack (2009): Hate Speech or "Reasonable Racism?" The Other in Stormfront. Journal of Mass Media Ethics, 24(4), 251-268. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08900520903320936 URL: http://www.journalismethics.info/JMME %20-%20Hate%20Speech%20or%20Reasonable%20Racism.pdf Meinhold, Roman (2011): Demolition Performance 9/11: Die ästhetisierte Inszenierung der Anschläge des 11. Septembers 2001 und Parallelphänomene in Kunst und Popularkultur. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 807-818. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/9783-531-94173-8_39 Mekhennet, Souad; Sautter, Claudia; Hanfeld, Michael (2006): Chapter 4: Der Google-Islamismus, die "virtuelle Umma". In: Die Kinder des Dschihad: Die neue Generation des islamistischen Terrors in Europa. München: Piper, 156-175. Meleagrou-Hitchens, Alexander (2009, November): Anwar al-Awlaki: The UK Connection. CSC Briefing Paper. URL: http://www.socialcohesion.co.uk/files/1289579667_1.pdf Meleagrou-Hitchens, Alexander (2011): The Development of Al-Qaeda's Media Strategy and its Role in Mobilizing Western Muslims. In: Lorry M. Fenner; Mark Stout; Jessica L. Goldings (Eds.): 9.11 Ten Years Later: Insights on al-Qaeda's Past & Future through Captured Records: Conference Proceedings. Washington, D.C.: Johns Hopkins University Center for Advanced S175 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Governmental Studies, 169-185. URL: http://issuu.com/johnshopkinsaap/docs/gov1220_ndufinal-issuu?mode=window&viewMode=doublePage Meleagrou-Hitchens, Alexander (2011, July): Anwar al-`Awlaqi’s Disciples: Three Case Studies. CTC Report. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/posts/anwar-al-awlaqi%E2%80%99s-disciplesthree-case-studies Meleagrou-Hitchens, Alexander (2011, September): As American as Apple Pie: How Anwar alAwlaki Became the Face of Western Jihad. ICSR Report. URL: http://icsr.info/paper/asamerican-as-apple-pie-how-anwar-al-awlaki-became-the-face-of-western-jihad Meleagrou-Hitchens, Alexander (2012, January): Al-Shabab’s Western Recruitment Strategy. CTC Sentinel, 5(1), 18-22. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2012/01/Vol5Iss12.pdf Meleagrou-Hitchens, Alexander (2012, November): Lights, Camera, Jihad: Al-Shabaab’s Western Media Strategy. ICSR Report. URL: http://icsr.info/2012/11/icsr-report-lights-camera-jihad-alshabaabs-western-media-strategy Mellencamp, Patricia (2006): Fearful Thoughts: U.S. Television since 9/11 and the Wars in Iraq. In: Andrew Martin; Patrice Petro (Eds.): Rethinking Global Security: Media, Popular Culture, and the "War on Terror". (New Directions in International Studies). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 117-131. Mellinger, Lauren (2011): Illusion of Security: Why the Amended EU Framework Decision Criminalizing "Incitement to Terrorism" on the Internet Fails to Defend Europe from Terrorism. Syracuse Journal of International Law & Commerce, 37(2), 339-368. Mellor, Noha (2011): "Why do they Hate us?": Seeking Answers in the Pan-Arab News Coverage of 9/11. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 147-166. S176 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Melnick, Michael (2007): Brand Terror: A Corporate Communication Perspective for Understanding Terrorism. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 199-206. URL: http://cafe.themarker.com/nodes/r/290/236/file_0.pdf Melnick, Rafi; Eldorb, Rafi (2010, November): Small Investment and Large Returns: Terrorism, Media and the Economy. European Economic Review, 54(8), 963-973. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.euroecorev.2010.03.004 URL: http://portal.idc.ac.il/He/schools/economics/about/Documents/Rafi%20Melnick.pdf Melzer, Patricia (2009): "Death in the Shape of a Young Girl": Feminist Responses to Media Representations of Women Terrorists during the "German Autumn" of 1977. International Feminist Journal of Politics, 11(1), 35-62. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14616740802567782 Mendel, Toby (2003): Terrorist Attacks of 11 September: Consequences for Freedom of Expression. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 43-50. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Menkus, Belden (1983, January): Notes on Terrorism and Data Processing. Computers & Security, 2(1), 11-15. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/0167-4048(83)90029-9 Merola, Linda M. (2011): Transmitting the Threat: Media Coverage and the Discussion of Terrorism and Civil Liberties since 9/11. Behavioral Sciences of Terrorism and Political Aggression. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19434472.2011.571531 Merskin, Debra (2004): The Construction of Arabs as Enemies: Post-September 11 Discourse of George W. Bush. Mass Communication and Society, 7(2), 157-175. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15327825mcs0702_2 S177 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Meurer, Ulrich (2012): Double-Mediated Terrorism: Gerhard Richter and Don DeLillo’s "BaaderMeinhof". In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 175-194. Michael, George (2009): Adam Gadahn and Al-Qaeda's Internet Strategy. Middle East Policy, 16(3), 135-152. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1475-4967.2009.00409.x URL: http://www.mepc.org/journal/middle-east-policy-archives/adam-gadahn-and-al-qaedas-internetstrategy Michael, George (2010): Blueprints and Fantasies: A Review and Analysis of Extremist Fiction. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(2), 149-170. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100903488451 Michael, Lucy (2012): Frames, Forums and Facebook: Interpretating British Muslim Understandings of Post-7/7 Militarist Media Narratives. In: Athina Karatzogianni (Ed.): Violence and War in Culture and the Media: Five Disciplinary Lenses. (Media, War and Security). London: Routledge, 148-168. Mihaila, Viorel (2007): Security of Media Personnel whilst Reporting on Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 111-124. Miladi, Noureddine (2006): Satellite TV News and the Arab Diaspora in Britain: Comparing AlJazeera, the BBC and CNN. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 947-960. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761552 Miller, Abraham H. (1990): Preserving Liberty in a Society Under Siege: The Media and the "Guildford Four". Terrorism and Political Violence, 2(3), 305-323. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559008427068 S178 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Miller, Claude H. et al. (2008): The Complexity of Terrorism: Groups, Semiotics, and the Media. In: Dan O'Hair et al. (Eds.): Terrorism: Communication and Rhetorical Perspectives. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 43-66. Miller, David; Mills, Tom (2009): The Terror Experts and the Mainstream Media: The Expert Nexus and its Dominance in the News Media. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 2(3), 414-437. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150903306113 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/17539150903306113 Miller, David; Sabir, Rizwaan (2012): Propaganda and Terrorism. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 77-94. Miller, Flagg (2010, December): Lessons from the Art of an Egg: The Ethics of Sound in the Osama bin Laden Audiotape Collection. Anthropology News, 51(9), 12-14. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1556-3502.2010.51912.x Miller, Flagg (2011): Re-Reading the Origins of Al-Qaeda through Osama bin Laden's Former Audiocassette Collection. In: Lorry M. Fenner; Mark Stout; Jessica L. Goldings (Eds.): 9.11 Ten Years Later: Insights on al-Qaeda's Past & Future through Captured Records: Conference Proceedings. Washington, D.C.: Johns Hopkins University Center for Advanced Governmental Studies, 100-113. URL: http://issuu.com/johnshopkinsaap/docs/gov1220_ndu-final-issuu? mode=window&viewMode=doublePage Miller, Flagg (2011, October): Insights from Bin Ladin’s Audiocassette Library in Kandahar. CTC Sentinel, 4(10), 1-4. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2011/11/CTCSentinelVol4Iss10.pdf Miller, Toby (2012): Terrorism and Global Popular Culture. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 97-115. Mills, Martin; Keddie, Amanda (2010, August): Cultural Reductionism and the Media: Polarising Discourses around Schools, Violence and Masculinity in an Age of Terror. Oxford Review of Education, 36(4), 427-444. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03054985.2010.494449 S179 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Minei, Elizabeth; Matusitz, Jonathan (2011): Cyberterrorist Messages and their Effects on Targets: A Qualitative Analysis. Journal of Human Behavior in the Social Environment, 21(8), 9951019. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10911359.2011.588569 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/10911359.2011.588569 Minei, Elizabeth; Matusitz, Jonathan (2012): Cyberspace as a New Arena for Terroristic Propaganda: An Updated Examination. Poiesis & Praxis. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10202-012-0108-3 URL: http://www.springerlink.com/content/a004187004070nuq/fulltext.pdf Ministry of the Interior and Kingdom Relations of the Netherlands, General Intelligence and Security Service (AIVD) (2012, February): Jihadism on the Web: A Breeding Ground for Jihad in the Modern Age. URL: https://www.aivd.nl/english/publications-press/@2873/jihadism-web/ Mishra, Shitanshu (2003, July-September): Exploitation of Information and Communication Technology by Terrorist Organisations. Strategic Analysis, 27(3), 439-462. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09700160308450099 URL: http://www.idsa.in/strategicanalysis/ExploitationofInformationandCommunicationTechnologyb yTerroristOrganisations_smishra_0703 Mitchell, Michele et al. (2002, Spring): Reporting Terror: CNN Journalists Reflect. Phi Kappa Phi Forum, 82(2), 20-25. URL: http://www.phikappaphi.org/Web/Files/2002_Spring.pdf Mitra, Antara (2009): All for Brownie Points! Reappraising the New Commercial Media and Media-Terrorism Nexus in the Context of the Mumbai Attacks of 26/11. Asia Europe Journal, 7(34), 433-447. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10308-009-0235-1 Mogensen, Kirsten (2008, April): Television Journalism during Terror Attacks. Media, War & Conflict, 1(1), 31-49. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635207087624 Mogensen, Kirsten (2010): How U.S. TV Journalists Talk about Objectivity in 9/11 Coverage. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 301-318. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf S180 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Mogensen, Kirsten (2011): From Chaos to Mourning: The Case of CNN. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 15-32. Mogensen, Kirsten (2011): Journalistic Norms: The Media as Shepherd. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 61-78. Mogensen, Kirsten et al. (2002): How TV News Covered the Crisis: The Content of CNN, CBS, ABC, NBC and Fox. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 101-120. Mohamed, Besheer; O'Brien, John (2011, February): Ground Zero of Misunderstanding. contexts, 10(1), 62-64. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1536504211399054 Möller, Frank (2007, June): Photographic Interventions in Post-9/11 Security Policy. Security Dialogue, 38(2), 179-196. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0967010607078549 Monno, Antonio Guido (2009): A New Paradigm for Countering Jihadism. In: Umberto Gori (Ed.): Modelling Cyber Security: Approaches, Methodology, Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 59): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 114-124. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-074-2-114 Montgomery, Martin (2005, May): The Discourse of War after 9/11. Language and Literature, 14(2), 149-180. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0963947005051286 Montiel, Cristina Jayme; Anuar, Mustafa K. (2002, September): Other Terrorisms, Psychology, and Media. Peace and Conflict, 8(3), 201-206. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/S15327949PAC0803_03 S181 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Moore, Simon; Bobiash, Donald (2010): Leaving the Cave: Government, Culture, and the Information Age. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 89-98. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Morag, Raya (2008, Spring): Chronic Trauma, the Sound of Terror, and Current Israeli Cinema. Framework, 49(1), 121-133. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1353/frm.0.0003 URL: http://muse.jhu.edu/journals/framework_the_journal_of_cinema_and_media/v049/49.1.morag.p df Morey, Peter (2010): Race, Nation and Muslimness in Fox's 24. Interventions, 12(2), 251-264. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1369801X.2010.489699 Morey, Peter (2011): "The Rules of the Game have Changed": Mohsin Hamid’s The Reluctant Fundamentalist and Post‐9/11 Fiction. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 47(2), 135-146. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2011.557184 Moring, Tom (2012): Terrorism, Media and the State: An Incestuous Spiral. COLLeGIUM, 11, 7082. URL: https://helda.helsinki.fi/handle/10138/32362 Morris, Rosalind C. (2002, Fall): Theses on the Questions of War: History, Media, Terror. Social Text, 20(3_72), 149-175. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/01642472-20-3_72-149 Morris, Rosalind C. (2004): Images of Untranslatability in the US War on Terror. Interventions, 6(3), 401-423. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1369801042000280041 Morris, Rosalind C. (2005): Theses on the Questions of War: History, Media, Terror. In: J. David Slocum (Ed.): Terrorism, Media, Liberation. (Rutgers Depth of Field Series). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 297-320. Morton, Stephen (2010): Terrorism, Literature, and Sedition in Colonial India. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 202-225. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch8 S182 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Mostarom, Tuty Raihanah; Yasin, Nur Azlin Mohamed (2010, August 3): The Internet: Avenue for Women Jihadi "Participation". RSIS Commentaries 88/2010. URL: www.pvtr.org/pdf/commentaries/RSIS0882010.pdf Mousavi, Sayed Askar (2006): Transnational Afghani Audiences after September 11. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 32(6), 1041-1061. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13691830600761560 Mozes, Tomer; Weimann, Gabriel (2010): The E-Marketing Strategy of Hamas. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(3), 211-225. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100903555762 Mueller, John (2007, March): Fear Not: Notes from a Naysayer. Bulletin of the Atomic Scientists, 63(2), 30-66. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.2968/063002009 Mühlberger, Andreas; Alpers, Georg W.; Pauli, Paul (2005): Fear of Flying in the Wake of September 11: No Evidence for an Increase in a German Sample. Anxiety, Stress & Coping, 18(4), 343349. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10615800500289490 Mukhopadhyay, Bhaskar (2008, March): Dream Kitsch – Folk Art, Indigenous Media and "9/11": The Work of Pat in the Era of Electronic Transmission. Journal of Material Culture, 13(1), 534. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1359183507086218 Muller, Benjamin J.; Measor, John H. W. (2011): "Theatres of War": Visual Technologies and Identities in the Iraq Wars. Geopolitics, 16(2), 389-409. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14650045.2010.538879 Muller, Christine (2009): Witnessing the Fall: September 11 and the Crisis of the Permeable Self. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 45-64. Müller, Herbert Landolin (2004): Tradition und Moderne, Identitätsbildung und Weltanschauungen: Das Internet als (Re-)Aktionsfeld islamistischer Bewegungen. In: Bundesministerium des Innern (Ed.): Extremismus in Deutschland: Erscheinungsformen und aktuelle Bestandsaufnahme. S183 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement (Texte zur Inneren Sicherheit). Berlin: Bundesministerium des Innern, 291-315. URL: http://www.theopenunderground.de/@pdf/toug/moribund/ExtremismusinDe.pdf Münkler, Herfried (2001, December): Terrorismus als Kommunikationsstrategie: Die Botschaft des 11. September. Internationale Politik, 12/2001, 11-18. Munshi, Shoma (2004): Television in the United States from 9/11 and the US's Continuing "War on Terror": Single Theme, Multiple Media Lenses. In: Shoma Munshi; Peter van der Veer (Eds.): Media, War and Terrorism: Responses from the Middle East and Asia. London: Routledge, 4661. Muntean, Nick (2009, October): Viral Terrorism and Terrifying Viruses: The Homological Construction of the "War on Terror" and the Avian Flu Pandemic. International Journal of Media and Cultural Politics, 5(3), 199-216. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/macp.5.3.199_1 URL: http://www.csun.edu/~hfspc002/442/txt/2009-birdflu-gwot.pdf Muntean, Nick; Payne, Matthew Thomas (2009): Attack of the Livid Dead: Recalibrating Terror in the Post-September 11 Zombie Film. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 239-258. Musa, Aliyu Odamah (2012, April): Socio-Economic Incentives, New Media and the Boko Haram Campaign of Violence in Northern Nigeria. Journal of African Media Studies, 4(1), 111-124. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jams.4.1.111_1 Musawi, Mohammed Ali (2010, August): Cheering for Osama: How Jihadists Use Internet Discussion Forums. Quilliam Report PP017. URL: http://www.quilliamfoundation.org/wp/wpcontent/uploads/publications/free/cheering-for-osama-how-jihadists-use-the-internetforums.pdf Musharbash, Yassin (2005, November): Neues Betriebssystem für Al-Qaida: Sie haust nicht mehr in Höhlen. Sondern im virtuellen Raum. Internationale Politik, 11/2005, 22-27. URL: https://zeitschrift-ip.dgap.org/de/article/getFullPDF/11754 S184 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Mwinyihaji, Esha Faki; Wanyama, Frederick O. (2011, Spring): The Media, Terrorism and Political Mobilization of Muslims in Kenya. Politics and Religion, 5(1), 103-112. URL: http://www.politicsandreligionjournal.com/images/pdf_files/engleski/volume5_no1/esha %20faki%205.pdf Mylonas, Yiannis (2012): Reinventing Political Subjectivities: Studying Critical Documentaries on the War on Terror. Social Semiotics, 22(4), 353-374. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10350330.2012.665263 Mythen, Gabe; Walklate, Sandra (2006, August): Communicating the Terrorist Risk: Harnessing a Culture of Fear? Crime Media Culture, 2(2), 123-142. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1741659006065399 URL: http://www.uk.sagepub.com/martin3study/articles/Mythen.pdf #N Naaman, Dorit (2007, Summer): Brides of Palestine/Angels of Death: Media, Gender, and Performance in the Case of the Palestinian Female Suicide Bombers. Signs, 32(4), 933-955. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1086/512624 Nacos, Brigitte L. (2000, April): Accomplice or Witness? The Media's Role in Terrorism. Current History, 99(636), 174-178. URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/743/NACOS.pdf Nacos, Brigitte L. (2002, Spring): Terrorism, the Mass Media, and the Events of 9-11. Phi Kappa Phi Forum, 82(2), 13-19. URL: http://www.phikappaphi.org/Web/Files/2002_Spring.pdf Nacos, Brigitte L. (2003): Terrorism and the Media. In: Donald H. Johnston (Ed.): Encyclopedia of International Media and Communications. Amsterdam: Academic Press, 459-471. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/B0-12-387670-2/00298-3 Nacos, Brigitte L. (2003): Terrorism as Breaking News: Attack on America. Political Science Quarterly, 118(1), 23-52. S185 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Nacos, Brigitte L. (2005): Mass-Mediated Terrorism in the New World (Dis)order. In: J. David Slocum (Ed.): Terrorism, Media, Liberation. (Rutgers Depth of Field Series). New Brunswick: Rutgers University Press, 185-208. Nacos, Brigitte L. (2005): The Portrayal of Female Terrorists in the Media: Similar Framing Patterns in the News Coverage of Women in Politics and in Terrorism. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 28(5), 435-451. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100500180352 Nacos, Brigitte L. (2006): Communication and Recruitment of Terrorists. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): The Making of a Terrorist. (Vol. 1. Recruitment). Westport: Praeger Security International, 41-53. Nacos, Brigitte L. (2006): Mass-Mediated Terrorism in the Age of Global Communication. In: Alfonso Vara Miguel et al. (Eds.): Cobertura informativa del 11-M. Navarra: EUNSA, 47-58. Nacos, Brigitte L. (2006): Mediated Terror: Teaching Terrorism through Propaganda and Publicity. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): The Making of a Terrorist. (Vol. 2. Training). Westport: Praeger Security International, 98-119. Nacos, Brigitte L. (2006, August): Terrorism/Counterterrorism and Media in the Age of Global Communication. Paper presented at the United Nations University Global Seminar Second Shimame-Yamaguchi Session Terrorism – A Global Challenge, Shimame-Yamaguchi, Japan, August 5-8, 2006. URL: http://archive.unu.edu/gs/files/2006/shimane/Nacos_text_en.pdf Nacos, Brigitte L. (2007, December): Al-Qaeda’s Propaganda Advantage and how to Counter it. Perspectives on Terrorism, 1(4), 3-6. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/14/31 Nacos, Brigitte L. (2009, September): Revisiting the Contagion Hypothesis: Terrorism, News Coverage, and Copycat Attacks. Perspectives on Terrorism, 3(3), 3-13. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/73 S186 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Nacos, Brigitte L. (2012): Terrorism, Media and Censorship. In: Kenan Tokgöz (Ed.): Enhancing Cooperation in Defence against Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 99): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 139-147. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-61499-103-8-139 Nacos, Brigitte L. (2012): The Importance of Strategic Communication and Public Diplomacy in Combating Terrorism. In: Kenan Tokgöz (Ed.): Enhancing Cooperation in Defence against Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 99): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 127-138. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-61499-103-8127 Nacos, Brigitte L. (2012): The News Media and the Internet. In: Terrorism and Counterterrorism. (4th ed.). Upper Saddle River: Pearson Education, 257-307. Nacos, Brigitte L.; Bloch-Elkon, Yaeli; Shapiro, Robert Y. (2007): Post-9/11 Terrorism Threats, News Coverage, and Public Perceptions in the United States. International Journal of Conflict and Violence, 1(2), 105-126. URL: http://www.ijcv.org/index.php/ijcv/article/viewArticle/10 Nacos, Brigitte L.; Bloch-Elkon, Yaeli; Shapiro, Robert Y. (2007): Prevention of Terrorism in Post9/11 America: News Coverage, Public Perceptions, and the Politics of Homeland Security. Terrorism and Political Violence, 20(1), 1-25. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550701734028 Nacos, Brigitte; Fan, David P.; Young, John T. (1989): Terrorism and the Print Media: The 1985 TWA Hostage Crisis. Terrorism, 12(2), 107-115. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108908435773 Nacos, Brigitte L.; Torres-Reyna, Oscar (2003): Framing Muslim-Americans before and after 9/11. In: Pippa Norris; Montague Kern; Marion Just (Eds.): Framing Terrorism: The News Media, the Government and the Public. New York: Routledge, 133-158. Nagar, Na'ama (2010): Who is Afraid of the T-Word? Labeling Terror in the Media Coverage of Political Violence before and after 9/11. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(6), 533-547. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576101003752655 S187 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Nakra, Prema (2003, Spring): Info-Terrorism in the Age of the Internet: Challenges and Initiatives. Journal of Competitive Intelligence and Management, 1(2), 1-10. URL: http://www.scip.org/Publications/JCIMArticleDetail.cfm?ItemNumber=2586 Nalton, John; Ramsay, Gilbert; Taylor, Max (2011): Radicalisation and Internet Propaganda by Dissident Republican Groups in Northern Ireland since 2008. In: P. M. Currie; Max Taylor (Eds.): Dissident Irish Republicanism. New York: Continuum, 119-142. Naseem, Azra (2012): The Literal Truth about Terrorism: An Analysis of Post-9/11 Popular US Non-Fiction Books on Terrorism. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 5(3), 455-467. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539153.2012.723523 Nashef, Hania A. M. (2011): The Blurring of Boundaries: Images of Abjection as the Terrorist and the Reel Arab Intersect. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 4(3), 351-368. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539153.2011.623403 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/17539153.2011.623403 National Coordinator for Counterterrorism (NCTb) (2007, February): Jihadis and the Internet. NCTb Report. URL: http://www.fas.org/irp/world/netherlands/jihadis.pdf National Coordinator for Counterterrorism (NCTb) (2010, May): Jihadists and the Internet: 2009 Update. NCTb Report. URL: http://english.nctb.nl/Images/JihadismeUpdate2009-UK %20def_tcm92-279323.pdf?cp=92&cs=25496 Neelamalar, M.; Chitra, P.; Darwin, Arun (2009): The Print Media Coverage of the 26/11 Mumbai Terror Attacks: A Study on the Coverage of Leading Indian Newspapers and its Impact on People. Journal of Media and Communication Studies, 1(6), 95-105. URL: http://www.academicjournals.org/jmcs/abstracts/abstracts/abstract2009/December/Neelamalar %20et%20al.htm Nellis, Ashley Marie; Savage, Joanne (2012, September): Does Watching the News Affect Fear of Terrorism? The Importance of Media Exposure on Terrorism Fear. Crime & Delinquency, 58(5), 748-768. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0011128712452961 S188 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Nelson, Paul S.; Scott, John L. (1992): Terrorism and the Media: An Empirical Analysis. Defence Economics, 3(4), 329-339. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10430719208404741 Nelson, Sonia Ambrosio de (2004): Southeast Asian Press Coverage of Terrorism and the Bali Bombing. The Copenhagen Journal of Asian Studies, 20(2), 47-69. URL: http://rauli.cbs.dk/index.php/cjas/article/view/32 Nelson, Sonia Ambrosio de (2008, October): Understanding the Press Imaging of "Terrorist": A Pragmatic Visit to the Frankfurt School. International Communication Gazette, 70(5), 325-337. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048508094288 Nesser, Petter (2008): How did Europe's Global Jihadis Obtain Training for their Militant Causes? Terrorism and Political Violence, 20(2), 234-256. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550801920758 Nesser, Petter (2011): Ideologies of Jihad in Europe. Terrorism and Political Violence, 23(2), 173200. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2010.537587 Neumann, Peter R. (2008): Chapter Five: The Internet. The Adelphi Papers, 48(399), 53-58. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/05679320802686841 Neumann, Peter R. (2012, December): Countering Online Radicalization in America. BPC Report. URL: http://bipartisanpolicy.org/library/report/countering-online-radicalization-america Nikolaidis, Aristotelis (2011): Televising Counter Terrorism: Torture, Denial, and Exception in the Case of 24. Continuum, 25(2), 213-225. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304312.2011.553942 Nilges, Mathias (2009): Lost – A Post-September 11, Post-Oedipal American Jeremiad. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 149-166. S189 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Nilges, Mathias (2010): The Aesthetics of Destruction: Contemporary US Cinema and TV Culture. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 23-34. Nisbet, Carolyn (2004): Cybercrime and Cyberterrorism. In: Sachar Paulus; Norbert Pohlmann; Helmut Reimer (Eds.): Securing Electronic Business Processes: Highlights of the Information Security Solutions Europe 2003 Conference. Wiesbaden: Vieweg, 31-37. Nissen, Thomas Elkjer (2007, December): The Taliban’s Information Warfare: A Comparative Analysis of NATO Information Operations (Info Ops) and Taliban Information Activities. RDDC Brief. URL: http://forsvaret.dk/fak/documents/fak/publikationer/the_talibans_information_warfare.pdf Nomikos, John M. (2007): Terrorism, Media, and Intelligence in Greece: Capturing the 17 November Group. International Journal of Intelligence and CounterIntelligence, 20(1), 65-78. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08850600600888896 Noor, Farish A. (2004): When Osama and Friends Came A-Calling: The Political Deployment of the Overdetermined Image of Osama ben Laden in the Contestation for Islamic Symbols in Malaysia. In: Shoma Munshi; Peter van der Veer (Eds.): Media, War and Terrorism: Responses from the Middle East and Asia. London: Routledge, 197-224. Nord, Lars W.; Strömbäck, Jesper (2003): Mission Impossible? Some Notes on Journalistic Shortcomings in the Coverage of War and Terrorism. Nordicom Review, 24(2), 127-141. URL: http://www.nordicom.gu.se/common/publ_pdf/32_127-142.pdf Nord, Lars W.; Strömbäck, Jesper (2003, September): Making Sense of Different Types of Crises: A Study of the Swedish Media Coverage of the Terror Attacks against the United States and the U.S. Attacks in Afghanistan. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 8(4), 54-75. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X03256578 URL: http://www.jesperstromback.com/MakingSense.pdf S190 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Nord, Lars W.; Strömbäck, Jesper (2006, February): Reporting More, Informing Less: A Comparison of the Swedish Media Coverage of September 11 and the Wars in Afghanistan and Iraq. Journalism, 7(1), 85-110. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1464884906059429 Nordeste, Bruno; Carment, David (2006): A Framework for Understanding Terrorist Use of the Internet. Trends in Terrorism Series, Volume 2006-2. URL: http://www.carleton.ca/cciss/res_docs/itac/carment_e.pdf Norris, Pippa; Kern, Montague; Just, Marion (2003): Framing Terrorism. In: Pippa Norris; Montague Kern; Marion Just (Eds.): Framing Terrorism: The News Media, the Government and the Public. New York: Routledge, 3-26. URL: https://webfiles.uci.edu/chavirar/www/uci/IntJournalism/webdocs/WK%2003%20terrorismcoverage.pdf Nossek, Hillel (2007): Terrorism and the Media: Does the Weapon Matter to the Coverage? In: Hillel Nossek; Annabelle Sreberny; Prasun Sonwalkar (Eds.): Media and Political Violence. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 269-306. Noy, Chaim; Kohn, Ayelet (2010): Mediating Touristic Dangerscapes: The Semiotics of State Travel Warnings Issued to Israeli Tourists. Journal of Tourism and Cultural Change, 8(3), 206-222. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14766825.2010.517318 Nyarota, Geoffrey (2003): Terrorism and Media in Zimbabwe. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 73. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf S191 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement #O Oates, Sarah (2006): Framing Fear: Findings from a Study of Election News and Terrorist Threat in Russia. Europe-Asia Studies, 58(2), 281-290. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09668130500481469 Oates, Sarah (2006, December): Comparing the Politics of Fear: The Role of Terrorism News in Election Campaigns in Russia, the United States and Britain. International Relations, 20(4), 425-437. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0047117806069404 Oates, Sarah (2007): The Framing of Terrorist and Security Threat in British Elections. ESRC End of Award Report, RES-228-25-0048. URL: http://www2.warwick.ac.uk/fac/soc/pais/research/newsecurity/researchprojects/the_framing_of _terrorist_and_security_threat_in_british_elections.pdf Oates, Sarah (2008): Media and Terrorism. In: Introduction to Media and Politics. London: SAGE, 134-154. O'Brien, Kevin (2003): Information Age, Terrorism and Warfare. In: Thomas R. Mockaitis; Paul B. Rich (Eds.): Grand Strategy in the War against Terrorism. London: Frank Cass, 177-200. O'Brien, Kevin (2003): Information Age, Terrorism and Warfare. Small Wars & Insurgencies, 14(1), 183-206. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09592310412331300636 Odartey-Wellington, Felix (2009): Racial Profiling and Moral Panic: Operation Thread and the AlQaeda Sleeper Cell that Never Was. Global Media Journal: Canadian Edition, 2(1), 25-40. URL: http://www.gmj.uottawa.ca/0902/v2i2_odartey-wellington_abstract.html O'Donnell, Brett; Gray, David H. (2012, Spring): Media and State Sponsored Terrorism. Global Security Studies, 3(2), 43-55. URL: http://globalsecuritystudies.com/ODonnell%20Media.pdf O’Donnell, Marcus (2008): Stories of Jack: Myth, Media and the Law. Law Text Culture, 12(1), 188-213. URL: http://ro.uow.edu.au/ltc/vol12/iss1/14 S192 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ogenga, Fredrick (2012): Is Peace Journalism Possible in the "War" against Terror in Somalia? How the Kenyan Daily Nation and the Standard Represented Operation Linda Nchi. conflict & communication online, 11(2). URL: http://www.cco.regener-online.de/2012_2/pdf/ogenga.pdf Ogun, Mehmet Nesip (2012): Terrorist Use of Internet: Possible Suggestions to Prevent the Usage for Terrorist Purposes. Journal of Applied Security Research, 7(2), 203-217. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19361610.2012.656252 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/19361610.2012.656252 Oh, Onook; Agrawal, Manish; Rao, H. Raghav (2011, March): Information Control and Terrorism: Tracking the Mumbai Terrorist Attack through Twitter. Information Systems Frontiers, 13(1), 33-43. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10796-010-9275-8 Ojwang', Benson Oduor (2008): How Language Aggravates Conflict: Evidence from International Terrorism News in Selected Kenyan Newspapers. Journal of International Communication, 14(2), 143-158. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13216597.2008.9674737 O’Leary, Alan (2009): Moro, Brescia, Conspiracy: The Paranoid Style in Italian Cinema. In: Pierpaolo Antonello; Alan O’Leary (Eds.): Imagining Terrorism: The Rhetoric and Representation of Political Violence in Italy 1969-2009. (Italian Perspectives, Vol. 18). London: Legenda, 4862. O’Leary, Alan (2010, September): Italian Cinema and the "anni di piombo". Journal of European Studies, 40(3), 243-257. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0047244110371912 Oliveira, Daniela (2010, Fall): Cyber-Terrorism & Critical Energy Infrastructure Vulnerability to Cyber-Attacks. Environmental & Energy Law & Policy Journal, 5(2), 519-526. URL: http://www.law.uh.edu/eelpj/publications/5-2/RD2-Oliveira.pdf O’Loughlin, Ben; Boudeau, Carole; Hoskins, Andrew (2011): Distancing the Extraordinary: Audience Understandings of Discourses of "Radicalization". Continuum, 25(2), 153-164. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304312.2011.553937 S193 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Omanga, Duncan (2012, April): Editorial Cartoons and the War on Terror in Kenya’s Print Media. Journal of African Media Studies, 4(1), 75-96. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jams.4.1.75_1 Omanga, Duncan (2012, August): Moulding and Shaping Space: Editorial Cartoons, Terrorism and Islamic Space in Kenya. BIGSAS Working Papers, 2/2012, 17-38. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4ubbayreuth/frontdoor/deliver/index/docId/948/file/BIGSAS+WORKS+2+Oct+19+2012.pdf O’Neil, Michael S.; Gray, David H. (2011): Islamic Terror Networks Implementation of Network Technologies. Global Security Studies, 2(3), 41-51. URL: http://globalsecuritystudies.com/ONeil%20Networks%20Final.pdf Ophir, Yotam; Weimann, Gabriel (2012, March): From Terrorist to Persona: Para-Social Interaction and the ETA Website. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(1), 23-35. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/ophir-weimann-eta O'Rourke, Simon (2006): Global Reach: Terrorists and the Internet. In: Craig Valli; Andrew Woodward (Eds.): Proceedings of the 7th Australian Information Warfare and Security Conference, Edith Cowan University, Perth Western Australia, 4th – 5th December, 2006, 96-102. URL: http://igneous.scis.ecu.edu.au/proceedings/2006/iwar/Proceedings_IWAR_2006.pdf O'Rourke, Simon (2009): Online Recruitment, Radicalization, and Reconnaissance: Challenges for Law Enforcement. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Influence Warfare: How Terrorists and Governments Fight to Shape Perceptions in a War of Ideas. Westport: Praeger Security International, 209-229. Orris, Captain Matthew (2007, May): You've Got Hate: Web Based Terror. Small Wars Journal, 3(2). URL: http://smallwarsjournal.com/documents/swjmag/v8/orris-swjvol8-excerpt.pdf Or, Shahar (2009, September): Psychological Victory: The Palestinian Terror Organization’s Media Strategy. RIEAS Research Paper No. 135. URL: http://www.rieas.gr/images/rieas135.pdf S194 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement O’Shaughnessy, Nicholas J.; Baines, Paul R. (2009, June): Selling Terror: The Symbolization and Positioning of Jihad. Marketing Theory, 9(2), 227-241. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1470593109103069 URL: https://dspace.lib.cranfield.ac.uk/bitstream/1826/4350/3/Selling_terror-2009.pdf Osipova, Yelena (2011): Hizballah’s Media Strategy: Creating a "Theater of Terror". Journal of International Service, 20(2), 83-102. Osuri, Goldie; Banerjee, Bobby (2004): White Diasporas: Media Representations of September 11 and the Unbearable Whiteness of being in Australia. Social Semiotics, 14(2), 151-171. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1035033042000238277 Ottosen, Rune; Figenshou, Tine Ustad (2010): September 11 in Norwegian Media: Images of the Local Threat. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 122-137. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Oualla, Bouchra (2012): YouTube Jihad: A Rhetorical Analysis of an Islamist Propaganda Video. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 141-152. Oualla, Bouchra (2013): Strategies of Argumentation in the Propaganda of Jihad: The Analysis of a Jihadi YouTube Video . In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 121-140. Özeren, Süleyman (2008): Cyberterrorism and International Cooperation: General Overview of the Available Mechanisms to Facilitate an Overwhelming Task. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 7088. Öztürk, Ahmet (2009, Fall): International Politics and the Media: The Case of the Press/Media in the War on Terror. Alternatives, 8(3), 42-72. URL: http://www.alternativesjournal.net/volume8/number3/ozturk.pdf S195 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement #P Padgett, Andrew; Allen, Beatrice (2003, November): Fear's Slave: The Mass Media and Islam after September 11. Media International Australia, 109, 32-40. Page, Michael; Challita, Lara; Harris, Alistair (2011): Al Qaeda in the Arabian Peninsula: Framing Narratives and Prescriptions. Terrorism and Political Violence, 23(2), 150-172. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2010.526039 Pak Institute For Peace Studies (PIPS) (2010, January): Media Seminars on Militants’ Media in Pakistan and its Impact. PIPS Paper. URL: http://san-pips.com/download.php?f=154.pdf Paletz, David L.; Boiney, John (1992): Researchers' Perspectives. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 6-28. Paletz, David L.; Fozzard, Peter A.; Ayanian, John Z. (1982, June): The I.R.A., the Red Brigades, and the F.A.L.N. in the New York Times. Journal of Communication, 32(2), 162-171. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1460-2466.1982.tb00503.x Paletz, David L.; Rickershauser, Jill (2003): Media, Violence and Terrorism in North America. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 119-126. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Paletz, David L.; Tawney, Laura L. (1992): Broadcasting Organizations' Perspectives. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 105-110. Paletz, David L.; Vinson, C. Danielle (1992): Introduction. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 1-5. S196 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Palmer, Matthew F. (2012): Cybernationalism: Terrorism, Political Activism, and National Identity Creation in Virtual Communities and Social Media. In: Athina A. Lazakidou (Ed.): Virtual Communities, Social Networks and Collaboration. (Annals of Information Systems, Vol. 15). New York: Springer, 115-134. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-1-4614-3634-8_6 Palmer, Michael (2011, December): "PRESS on the Appropriate Button in the Reader’s Mind": News Agencies Cover "Terrorism". Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 257-261. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427499 Pantucci, Raffaello (2008): Al-Qaeda 2.0. Survival, 50(6), 183-192. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/00396330802601933 Pantucci, Raffaello (2008, October): Operation Praline: The Realization of Al-Suri’s Nizam, la Tanzim? Perspectives on Terrorism, 2(12), 11-16. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/59/122 Pantucci, Raffaello (2010, December 2): Trial of Would-Be Assassin Illustrates al-Awlaki’s Influence on the British Jihad. TerrorismMonitor, 8(44), 5-7. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_008_5321da.pdf Pantucci, Raffaello (2011, September): The UK’s Efforts to Disrupt Jihadist Activity Online. CTC Sentinel, 4(9), 15-17. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2011/09/CTCSentinel-Vol4Iss9.pdf Papacharissi, Zizi; de Fatima Oliveira, Maria (2008, January): News Frames Terrorism: A Comparative Analysis of Frames Employed in Terrorism Coverage in U.S. and U.K. Newspapers. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 13(1), 52-74. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1940161207312676 Parameswaran, Radhika (2006, January): Military Metaphors, Masculine Modes, and Critical Commentary: Deconstructing Journalists' Inner Tales of September 11. Journal of Communication Inquiry, 30(1), 42-64. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0196859905280954 S197 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Parks, Chad (2003, July-August): Cyber Terrorism: Hype or Reality? Journal of Corporate Accounting & Finance, 14(5), 9-11. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/jcaf.10177 Payne, Kenneth (2008): The Media at War: Ideology, Insurgency and Journalists in the Firing Line. The RUSI Journal, 153(1), 16-21. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03071840801984672 Payne, Kenneth (2009): Winning the Battle of Ideas: Propaganda, Ideology, and Terror. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 32(2), 109-128. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100802627738 Paz, Reuven (n.d.): Reading their Lips: The Credibility of Jihadi Web Sites in Arabic as a Source for Information. PRISM Article. URL: http://www.e-prism.org/images/Read_Their_Lips.doc Paz, Reuven (2003, October): Sawt al-Jihad: New Indoctrination of Qa`idat al-Jihad. PRISM Occasional Papers, 1(8). URL: http://www.e-prism.org/images/PRISM_no_8.doc Paz, Reuven (2004, July): Who Wants to Email Al-Qaeda? PRISM Occasional Papers, 2(2). URL: http://www.e-prism.org/images/PRISM_no_2_vol_2_-_Who_Wants_to_Email_Al-Qaeda.pdf Paz, Reuven (2006, Summer): The Credibility of Jihadi Web Sites. Wilberforce Quarterly, 1(1), 1518. URL: www.wilberforce.edu/cdsp/wilberforce_quarterly_1.pdf Paz, Reuven (2007, December): Reading their Lips: The Credibility of Jihadi Web Sites as "Soft Power" in the War of the Minds. PRISM Occasional Papers, 5(5). URL: http://www.eprism.org/images/PRISM_no_5_vol_5_-_Reading_Their_Lips_-_Dec07.pdf Pehlivan, Serra; Dixon, Kim (2010): Power of Media and Words: Analysis of News on PKK. Defence Against Terrorism Review, 3(1), 71-88. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/datr5/DATR-5.pdf Peil, Florian (2012, October): "Inspire": Das Jihad-Magazin für die Diaspora. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 32-44. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studien-de/swp-studiendetail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html S198 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Pejman, Peyman (2011): Using the Pearl Project to Develop Investigative Reporters. Middle East Media Educator, 1(1), 72-75. URL: http://ro.uow.edu.au/meme/vol1/iss1/13 Pekelder, Jacco (2012): The RAF and the Left in West Germany: Communication Processes between Terrorists and their Constituency in the Early 1970s. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 203-222. Pekgozlu, Ilker; Ozdemir, Habib; Ercikti, Ertan (2007): Communication Methods in Terrorist Organizations: A Case Study of Al-Qaeda Connected Terrorism in Turkey. In: Suleyman Ozeren; Ismail Dincer Gunes; Diab M. Al-Badayneh (Eds.): Understanding Terrorism: Analysis of Sociological and Psychological Aspects. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 22). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 281-293. Peleg, Samuel (2005, Fall): One’s Terrorist is Another’s Blockbuster: Political Terrorism in American Versus European Films. The New England Journal of Political Science, 1(1), 129-177. URL: http://english.safedemocracy.org/documents/ONEs_TERRORIST_IS_ANOTHERs_BLOCKBUSTER.pdf Pendry, Richard (2011): Sub-Contracting Newsgathering in Iraq. Ethical Space, 8(3-4), 14-20. URL: http://www.communicationethics.net/journal/v8n3-4/v8n3-4_feat1.pdf Pennebaker, James W.; Chung, Cindy K. (2005): Tracking the Social Dynamics of Responses to Terrorism: Language, Behavior, and the Internet. In: Simon Wessely; Valery N. Krasnov (Eds.): Psychological Responses to the New Terrorism: A NATO-Russia Dialogue. (NATO Security through Science Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 3). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 159-170. URL: http://homepage.psy.utexas.edu/homepage/students/Chung/Publications_files/Pennebaker&Chu ng2005_Terrorism.pdf Pennington, Jody W. (2005, December): Stuck in the Middle with you: Dilemmas of the Mass Media when Covering Terrorism in the Information Age. P.O.V., 20. URL: http://pov.imv.au.dk/Issue_20/section_1/artc9A.html S199 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Peperhove, Roman (2010): Islamist Websites: An Up-To-Date Snapshot from a German Point of View. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 153-163. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-153 Perešin, Anita (2007): Mass Media and Terrorism. Medijska istraživanja, 13(1), 5-22. URL: http://www.mediaresearch.cro.net/clanak.aspx?l=en&id=308 Perigoe, Ross (2010): September 11 in Canada: Representation of Muslims in The Gazette. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 319-340. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Perkins, Jay; Izard, Ralph (2011): In the Wake of Disaster: Lessons Learned. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 1-14. Perkins, Jay; Li, Xigen (2011): Cruising on Autopilot: How the Media Covered 9/11. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 33-50. Perl, Raphael F. (1997, October 22): Terrorism, the Media, and the Government: Perspectives, Trends, and Options for Policymakers. CRS Issue Brief. URL: http://www.fas.org/irp/crs/crsterror.htm Perlmutter, Dawn (2005/2006, Fall/Winter): Mujahideen Blood Rituals: The Religious and Forensic Symbolism of Al Qaeda Beheading. Anthropoetics, 11(2). URL: http://www.anthropoetics.ucla.edu/ap1102/muja.htm Perlmutter, Dawn (2006/2007, Fall/Winter): Mujahideen Desecration: Beheadings, Mutilation & Muslim Iconoclasm. Anthropoetics, 12(2). URL: http://www.anthropoetics.ucla.edu/ap1202/muja07.htm S200 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Perse, Elizabeth et al. (2002): Public Perceptions of Media Functions at the Beginning of the War on Terrorism. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 39-52. Persson, Anna V.; Musher-Eizenman, Dara R. (2005, September): College Students’ Attitudes toward Blacks and Arabs following a Terrorist Attack as a Function of Varying Levels of Media Exposure. Journal of Applied Social Psychology, 35(9), 1879-1892. Petersen, Christer (2007): Informationsbomben: Mediale Eskalations- und Deeskalationsstrategien von Krieg und Terror im Kontext von 9/11. In: Barbara Korte; Horst Tonn (Eds.): Kriegskorrespondenten: Deutungsinstanzen in der Mediengesellschaft. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 137-153. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-90703-1_8 Pfefferbaum, Betty (2008): Chapter 9: Victims of Terrorism and the Media. In: Andrew Silke (Ed.): Terrorists, Victims and Society: Psychological Perspectives on Terrorism and its Consequences. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 176-187. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9780470713600.ch9 Pfefferbaum, Betty et al. (2003): Media Exposure in Children One Hundred Miles from a Terrorist Bombing. Annals of Clinical Psychiatry, 15(1), 1-8. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1023/A:1023293824492 Pfeiffer, Christoph P. (2012): Terrorism and its Oxygen: A Game-Theoretic Perspective on Terrorism and the Media. Behavioral Sciences of Terrorism and Political Aggression, 4(3), 212-228. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19434472.2011.594629 Pfeiffer, Christoph P. (2012, August): The Curse of Anxiety-Pleasure: Terrorism, the Media, and Advertising in a Two-Sided Market Framework. Helmut Schmidt University Working Paper No. 121. URL: http://www.hsu-hh.de/fgvwl/index_E6iPsOQo0Vx2K3tF.html Pfeiffer, Fritz W. (2005): Human Leverage: Hostage-Taking as a Tactic in Insurgency. United States Marine Corps, Command and Staff College, Marine Corps University Report. URL: http://oai.dtic.mil/oai/oai?verb=getRecord&metadataPrefix=html&identifier=ADA504556 S201 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Philo, Greg (2012): Pictures and Public Relations in the Israeli-Palestinian Conflict. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 151-164. Picard, Robert G. (1986): News Coverage as the Contagion of Terrorism: Dangerous Charges Backed by Dubious Science. Political Communication, 3(4), 385-400. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1986.9962800 Picard, Robert G.; Adams, Paul D. (1987): Characterizations of Acts and Perpetrators of Political Violence in Three Elite U.S. Daily Newspapers. Political Communication, 4(1), 1-9. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962803 Picard, Robert G.; Sheets, Rhonda S. (1987): Terrorism and the News Media: A Research Bibliography Part I. Political Communication, 4(1), 65-69. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962808 Picard, Robert G.; Sheets, Rhonda S. (1987): Terrorism and the News Media: A Research Bibliography Part II. Political Communication, 4(2), 141-152. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962816 Picard, Robert G.; Sheets, Rhonda S. (1987): Terrorism and the News Media: A Research Bibliography Part III. Political Communication, 4(3), 217-221. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962824 Picard, Robert G.; Sheets, Rhonda S. (1987): Terrorism and the News Media: A Research Bibliography Part IV. Political Communication, 4(4), 325-326. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962832 Pintak, Lawrence (2006): Framing the Other: Worldview, Rhetoric and Media Dissonance since 9/11. In: Elizabeth Poole; John E. Richardson (Eds.): Muslims and the News Media. London: I.B.Tauris, 188-198. S202 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Plaisance, Patrick Lee (2005): The Propaganda War on Terrorism: An Analysis of the United States' "Shared Values" Public-Diplomacy Campaign after September 11, 2001. Journal of Mass Media Ethics, 20(4), 250-268. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15327728jmme2004_3 Pludowski, Tomasz (2010): September 11 in Poland: America’s Most Enthusiastic Ally in Europe. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 138-144. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Pöhlmann, Sascha (2010): Collapsing Identities: The Representation and Imagination of the Terrorist in Falling Man. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 51-66. Politkovskaya, Anna (2003): War, Terrorism and Journalists: The Chechen Experience. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 89-90. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Pollard, Jennifer (2011): Seen, Seared and Sealed: Trauma and the Visual Presentation of September 11. Health, Risk & Society, 13(1), 81-101. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13698575.2010.540647 Pollard, Thomas (2009): Hollywood 9/11: Time of Crisis. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 195-208. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Pollitt, Mark M. (2005): Cyberterrorism – Fact or Fancy? In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 9. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 65-69. Pollock, John C. et al. (2005): Nationwide Newspaper Coverage of Islam Post-September 11: A Community Structure Approach. Communication Research Reports, 22(1), 15-27. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0882409052000343480 S203 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Poole, Elizabeth (2006): The Effects of September 11 and the War in Iraq on British Newspaper Coverage. In: Elizabeth Poole; John E. Richardson (Eds.): Muslims and the News Media. London: I.B.Tauris, 89-102. Poole, Elizabeth (2011): Change and Continuity in the Representation of British Muslims before and after 9/11: The UK Context. Global Media Journal: Canadian Edition, 4(2), 49-62. URL: http://www.gmj.uottawa.ca/1102/v4i2_poole_abstract.html Popoola, I. S. (2012): Press and Terrorism in Nigeria: A Discourse on Boko Haram. Global Media Journal African Edition, 6(1), 43-66. URL: http://globalmedia.journals.ac.za/pub/article/view/82 Popp, Richard K.; Mendelson, Andrew L. (2010, April): "X"-ing Out Enemies: Time Magazine, Visual Discourse, and the War in Iraq. Journalism, 11(2), 203-221. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1464884909355913 Popp, Robert (2004, March): Countering Terrorism through Information Technology. Communications of the ACM – Homeland Security, 47(3), 36-43. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1145/971617.971642 Portes, Jacques (2010): "We Cannot all be Americans": French Media Reception of 9/11. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 84-92. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Post, Jerrold M. (2012): The Role of Strategic Information Operations in Countering Terrorism. In: Updesh Kumar; Manas K. Mandal (Eds.): Countering Terrorism: Psychosocial Strategies. New Delhi: SAGE, 385-407. Post, Jerrold M.; Ruby, Keven G.; Shaw, Eric D. (2000): From Car Bombs to Logic Bombs: The Growing Threat from Information Terrorism. Terrorism and Political Violence, 12(2), 97-122. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550008427563 URL: http://polpsych.com/downloads/Car%20Bombs%20to%20Logic%20Bombs%20Terr%20and%20Pol %20Violence.pdf S204 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Poulatova, Chaditsa (2011): The Media: A Terrorist Tool or a Silent Ally? In: Nasrullah Memon; Daniel Zeng (Eds.): EISIC 2011: 2011 European Intelligence and Security Informatics Conference, Athens, Greece, 12–14 September 2011: Proceedings. Los Alamitos: IEEE Computer Society Conference Publishing Services (CPS), 293. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109%2FEISIC.2011.47 Powell, Kimberly A. (2011): Framing Islam: An Analysis of U.S. Media Coverage of Terrorism since 9/11. Communication Studies, 62(1), 90-112. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10510974.2011.533599 Power, Marcus (2007, June): Digitized Virtuosity: Video War Games and Post-9/11 Cyber-Deterrence. Security Dialogue, 38(2), 271-288. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0967010607078552 Power, Richard; Forte, Dario (2006, November): Stalking "Cyber Terrorists" in Sofia – Event Report. Computer Fraud & Security, 11/2006, 4-8. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S13613723(06)70439-0 Poynting, Scott; Noble, Greg (2003, November): Dog-Whistle Journalism and Muslim Australians since 2001. Media International Australia, 109, 41-49. Poynting, Scott; Noble, Greg (2006, Fall): Muslims and Arabs in the Australian Media since 11 September 2001. Global Media Journal – Polish Edition, 2(2), 89-102. URL: http://www.globalmediajournal.collegium.edu.pl/jesien2006.htm Poynting, Scott; Noble, Greg (2010): Muslims and Arabs in Australian Media since 9/11. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 261-276. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Poynting, Scott; Perry, Barbara (2007): Climates of Hate: Media and State Inspired Victimisation of Muslims in Canada and Australia since 9/11. Current Issues in Criminal Justice, 19(2), 151171. S205 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Preece, Julian (2010, September): RAF Revivalism in German Fiction of the 2000s. Journal of European Studies, 40(3), 272-283. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0047244110371915 URL: http://dhillisresearch.wikispaces.com/file/view/RAFRevivalism.pdf Prentice, Sheryl et al. (2011, March): Analyzing the Semantic Content and Persuasive Composition of Extremist Media: A Case Study of Texts Produced during the Gaza Conflict. Information Systems Frontiers, 13(1), 61-73. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10796-010-9272-y Price, David H. (2010): Governing Fear in the Iron Cage of Rationalism: Terry Gilliam’s Brazil through the 9/11 Looking Glass. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 167-182. Price, Eric (2011): Library and Internet Resources for Research on Terrorism. In: Alex P. Schmid (Ed.): The Routledge Handbook of Terrorism Research. New York: Routledge, 462-736. Price, Eric (2012, March): Literature on Terrorism, Media, Propaganda & Cyber-Terrorism. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(1), 92-103. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/price-literature-terrorismmedia Price, Steven (2004, April): Terrorism by Media: Coverage of the Ahmed Zaoui Affair. Pacific Journalism Review, 10(1), 184-190. URL: http://artsweb.aut.ac.nz/pjreview/issues/docs/10_1/pjr10_1_04zaoui184-190.pdf Price, Stuart (2010): The Mediation of "Terror": Authority, Journalism, and the Stockwell Shooting. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 273-303. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch11 Prichard, Janet J.; MacDonald, Laurie E. (2004): Cyber Terrorism: A Study of the Extent of Coverage in Computer Security Textbooks. Journal of Information Technology Education, 3, 279289. URL: http://www.jite.org/documents/Vol3/v3p279-289-150.pdf S206 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Pries-Shimshi, Yael (2007): Creating a Citizenry Prepared for Terrorism: Education, Media and Public Awareness. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 80-88. Primorac, Ranka (2010): The Poetics of State Terror in Twenty-First-Century Zimbabwe. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 254-272. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch10 Prince, Stephen (2012): American Film after 9/11. In: Cynthia Lucia; Roy Grundmann; Art Simon (Eds.): The Wiley-Blackwell History of American Film. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 495-514. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9780470671153.wbhaf093 Prinz, Kirsten (2010): Umkämpft und abgeschlossen? Narrative über die RAF im Spiegel ihrer Rezeption: Überlegungen zu Bernhard Schlinks Roman "Das Wochenende" und Bernd Eichingers Film "Der Baader Meinhof Komplex". In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 311-332. Propper, Ruth E. et al. (2007, April): Is Television Traumatic? Dreams, Stress, and Media Exposure in the Aftermath of September 11, 2001. Psychological Science, 18(4), 334-340. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1467-9280.2007.01900.x Prucha, Nico (2007): Jihad on the Internet: The Anomalous Case of Abu Jandal al-Azdi. Journal for Intelligence, Propaganda and Security Studies [JIPSS], 1(2), 42-48. URL: http://www.univie.ac.at/jihadism/blog/wp-content/uploads/2011/03/Prucha-Version1.pdf Prucha, Nico (2008, May): The Rise of Al-Ekhlaas. Jane’s Terrorism & Security Monitor, 05/2008, 14-15. URL: http://emag.digitalpc.co.uk/jig/jtsm0805.asp Prucha, Nico (2008, July): Finding Nemo. Jane’s Terrorism & Security Monitor, 07/2008, n.p. S207 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Prucha, Nico (2009): Praktische Erfahrungen aus dem Online-Dschihad: Anwendungsbeispiel der Online-Welten der "al-Qa’ida": Yaman Mukhaddab, ein Online-Sympathisant. URL: http://www.oiip.at/fileadmin/Unterlagen/Dateien/Publikationen/Online_Dschihad.pdf Prucha, Nico (2010): Notes on the Jihadists’ Motivation for Suicide-Operations. Journal for Intelligence, Propaganda and Security Studies [JIPSS], 4(1), 57-68. URL: http://www.univie.ac.at/jihadism/blog/wp-content/uploads/2011/03/Prucha_1.pdf Prucha, Nico (2010, May 18): Internet Ventures: Online Jihad and the Gaming Industry as Cultural Sub-Groups in Comparison on the World Wide Web. Online Jihad. URL: http://onlinejihad.com/2010/05/18/food-for-thought-%E2%80%93-article-by-n-prucha Prucha, Nico (2010, October 17): A Look at Jihadists Suicide Fatwas: The Case of Algeria. URL: http://www.rieas.gr/research-areas/global-issues/islamic-studies/1331-a-look-at-jihadistssuicide-fatwas-.html Prucha, Nico (2011): Online Territories of Terror – Utilizing the Internet for Jihadist Endeavors. Orient, IV/2011, 43-47. URL: www.oiip.ac.at/fileadmin/Unterlagen/Dateien/Publikationen/Article_ORIENT_IV_NicoPrucha. pdf Prucha, Nico (2012): Jihad via Bluetooth: Al-Qa’ida’s Mobile Phone Campaign. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 183-202. Prucha, Nico (2012): Worldwide Online Jihad Versus the Gaming Industry Reloaded – Ventures of the Web. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): New Approaches to the Analysis of Jihadism: Online and Offline. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 1). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 153-182. Prucha, Nico (2012, October): Die Vermittlung arabischer Jihadisten-Ideologie: Zur Rolle deutscher Aktivisten. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 45-55. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studiende/swp-studien-detail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html S208 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Prucha, Nico (2013): Kangaroo Trials: Justice in the Name of God. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 141-206. Putnam, Michael T. (2009): Music as a Weapon: Reactions and Responses to RAF Terrorism in the Music of Ton Steine Scherben and their Successors in Post-9/11 Music. Popular Music and Society, 32(5), 595-606. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03007760903251417 #Q Qin, Jialun; Zhou, Yilu; Chen, Hsinchun (2011, March): A Multi-Region Empirical Study on the Internet Presence of Global Extremist Organizations. Information Systems Frontiers, 13(1), 7588. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10796-010-9277-6 Qin, Jialun et al. (2007): Analyzing Terror Campaigns on the Internet: Technical Sophistication, Content Richness, and Web Interactivity. International Journal of Human-Computer Studies, 65(1), 71-84. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.ijhcs.2006.08.012 URL: http://ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/paper-Jialun-WebMetrics.pdf Quayle, Amy; Sonn, Christopher C. (2009, June): The Construction of Muslims as "Other" in Mainstream Australia’s Print Media: An Analysis of Discourse. The Australian Community Psychologist, 21(1), 8-23. URL: http://www.groups.psychology.org.au/Assets/Files/21(1)-QuayleSonn.pdf Quester, George H. (1986): Cruise‐Ship Terrorism and the Media. Political Communication, 3(4), 355-370. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1986.9962798 #R Radlauer, Don (n.d.): Virtual Communities as Pathways to Extremism. ISAC Article. URL: http://www.asymmetricconflict.org/articles/virtual-communities-as-pathways-to-extremism S209 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Radlauer, Don (2007): Virtual Communities as Pathways to Extremism. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 67-75. Răduică, George Teodor (2011): The Cyberspace Protection against Terrorism. Strategic Impact, 1/2011. URL: http://www.ceeol.com/aspx/issuedetails.aspx?issueid=77f805bf-0b5e-4f00-85e98ed9ecb86b64&articleId=0f7d2ac6-05a6-46fd-b8a7-2b802c361dd0 Rafter, Kevin (2011): Bombers and Mavericks: Magill Magazine's Coverage of Northern Ireland, 1977-1990. Media History, 17(1), 63-77. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13688804.2011.532382 Rahman, Shafiqur (2010, March): Imagining Life under the Long Shadow of 9/11: Backlash, Media Discourse, Identity and Citizenship of the Bangladeshi Diaspora in the United States. Cultural Dynamics, 22(1), 49-72. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0921374010366782 Rajab, Talal (2010, March): Re-Programming British Muslims – A Study of the Islam Channel. Quilliam Report. URL: http://www.quilliamfoundation.org/wp/wpcontent/uploads/publications/free/re-programming-british-muslims.pdf Rakisheva, Botagoz; Shalova, Gulden (2012): Suicide Acts in the Republic of Kazakhstan: Chronology of Events (Content-Analysis of Mass-Media). In: Tatyana Dronzina; Rachid El Houdaigui (Eds.): Contemporary Suicide Terrorism: Origins, Trends and Ways of Tackling It. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 101). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 137-143. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-61499-109-0-137 Ramluckan, Trishana; van Niekerk, Brett (2009, August): The Terrorism/Mass Media Symbiosis. Journal of Information Warfare, 8(2), 1-12. Ramsay, Gilbert (2008, April): Conceptualising Online Terrorism. Perspectives on Terrorism, 2(7), 3-10. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/41/85 S210 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ramsay, Gilbert (2009): Relocating the Virtual War. Defence Against Terrorism Review, 2(1), 31-50. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/datr3/03_Gilbert%20Ramsay.pdf Ramsay, Gilbert (2012): Terrorism and the Internet: Do we Need an International Solution? In: Pauline C. Reich; Eduardo Gelbstein (Eds.): Law, Policy and Technology: Cyberterrorism, Information Warfare, and Internet Immobilization. Hershey: IGI Global, 352-375. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-61520-831-9.ch013 Ramsay, Gilbert (2012, March): Online Arguments against Al-Qaeda: An Exploratory Analysis. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(1), 54-69. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/ramsay-online-arguments Ramsey, Thomas (1987): The Age of Information Technology. Terrorism, 10(3), 265-268. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108708435679 Rana, Muhammad Amir (2008, October-December): Jihadi Print Media in Pakistan: An Overview. Conflict and Peace Studies, 1(1). URL: http://san-pips.com/download.php?f=152.pdf Randau, Daniel (2010): "Restgift" im "Kommuneneintopf": Zu ikonographischen Problemen in Götz Alys "Unser Kampf" (2008). In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 19782008. Heidelberg: Winter, 361-370. Randell, Karen (2010): “It was like a Movie”: The Impossibility of Representation in Oliver Stone’s World Trade Center (2006). In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 141-152. Randle, Quint; Davenport, Lucinda D.; Bossen, Howard (2005): Newspapers Slow to Use Web Sites for 9/11 Coverage. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 49-60. S211 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Rane, Halim; Ewart, Jacqui (2012): The Framing of Islam and Muslims in the Tenth Anniversary Coverage of 9/11: Implications for Reconciliation and Moving On. Journal of Muslim Minority Affairs, 32(3), 310-322. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13602004.2012.727292 Ranstorp, Magnus (2007): The Virtual Sanctuary of Al-Qaeda and Terrorism in an Age of Globalisation. In: Johan Eriksson; Giampiero Giacomello (Eds.): International Relations and Security in the Digital Age. London: Routledge, 31-57. URL: http://www.fhs.se/Documents/Externwebben/forskning/centrumbildningar/CATS/2007/virtualal-qaeda-ranstorp.pdf Rao, Shakuntala; N' Weerasinghe, Pradeep (2011): Covering Terrorism: Examining Social Responsibility in South Asian Journalism. Journalism Practice, 5(4), 414-428. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17512786.2010.550713 Rapoport, David C. (1996): Editorial: The Media and Terrorism: Implications of the Unabomber Case. Terrorism and Political Violence, 8(1), 7-9. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559608427329 Rappoport, Paul N. (2002): The Internet and the Demand for News. Prometheus, 20(3), 255-262. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141399 Rasch, Ilka (2010): The Generation Gap: The Reappropriation of the Red Army Faction in Contemporary German Film. In: Laurel Cohen-Pfister; Susanne Vees-Gulani (Eds.): Generational Shifts in Contemporary German Culture. (Studies in German Literature, Linguistics, and Culture). Rochester: Camden House, 184-203. Rathmell, Andrew (1997): Cyber‐Terrorism: The Shape of Future Conflict? The RUSI Journal, 142(5), 40-45. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03071849708446185 Rathmell, Andrew (2003): Controlling Computer Network Operations. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 26(3), 215-232. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100390211437 S212 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ravault, René-Jean (2002): Is there a Bin Laden in the Audience? Considering the Events of September 11 as a Possible Boomerang Effect of the Globalization of US Mass Communication. Prometheus, 20(3), 295-300. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0810902021014125 Rawnsley, Gary D. (2012): The Media and Information Environments Ten Years after 9/11: Accidental Journalists and the New Information Landscape. In: Rachel E. Utley (Ed.): 9/11 Ten Years after: Perspectives and Problems, 211-224. Raza, Muhammad Riaz et al. (2012, November): Portrayal of War on Terrorism in Pakistani Print Media Exploring Peace Framing in Daily Nation and Business Recorder. Asian Journal of Social Sciences & Humanities, 1(4), 97-108. URL: http://www.ajssh.leenaluna.co.jp/AJSSHPDFs/Vol.1(4)/AJSSH2012(1.4-13).pdf Reading, Anna (2009): Mobile Witnessing: Ethics and the Camera Phone in the "War on Terror". Globalizations, 6(1), 61-76. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14747730802692435 URL: http://uit.no/Content/241181/Mobile%20Witnessing%20Globalisations%2009.pdf Reading, Anna (2011, July): The London Bombings: Mobile Witnessing, Mortal Bodies and Globital Time. Memory Studies, 4(3), 298-311. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750698011402672 Reese, Stephen D.; Lewis, Seth C. (2009, December): Framing the War on Terror: The Internalization of Policy in the US Press. Journalism, 10(6), 777-797. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1464884909344480 URL: http://journalism.utexas.edu/sites/journalism.utexas.edu/files/attachments/reese/framing-gwotweb.pdf Rehfeldt, Martin (2012): Zeichenguerilla: Funktionen von RAF-Bezügen in der Popkultur. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 309-330. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4-bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 S213 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Reich, Pauline C. (2012): Case Study: India – Terrorism and Terrorist Use of the Internet/Technology. In: Pauline C. Reich; Eduardo Gelbstein (Eds.): Law, Policy and Technology: Cyberterrorism, Information Warfare, and Internet Immobilization. Hershey: IGI Global, 377-408. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-61520-831-9.ch014 Reid, Edna; Chen, Hsinchun (2007, June): Internet-Savvy U.S. and Middle Eastern Extremist Groups. Mobilization, 12(2), 177-192. URL: http://www.ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/Internet %20Savvy...etc.pdf Reid, Edna et al. (2004): Terrorism Knowledge Discovery Project: A Knowledge Discovery Approach to Addressing the Threats of Terrorism. In: Hsinchun Chen et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: Second Symposium on Intelligence and Security Informatics, ISI 2004, Tucson, AZ, USA, June 10-11, 2004: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 3073), 125-145. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-25952-7_10 URL: http://ai-vms08-rs1-1.ailab.eller.arizona.edu/people/edna/AILab_terrorism%20Knowledge%20Discovery %20ISI%20_apr04.pdf Reid, Edna et al. (2005): Collecting and Analyzing the Presence of Terrorists on the Web: A Case Study of Jihad Websites. In: Paul Kantor et al. (Eds.): IEEE International Conference on Intelligence and Security Informatics, ISI 2005, Atlanta, GA, USA, May 19-20, 2005: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 3495). Berlin: Springer, 402-411. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/11427995_35 URL: http://ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/ISI_AILab_submission_final.pdf Reilly, Mark (2009): Pornography of the Dead. In: Propaganda of the Dead: Terrorism and Revolution. (Think Media). New York: Atropos Press, 149-161. URL: http://propagandaofthedead.org/pdfs/propaganda-of-the-dead-chapter6.pdf Reilly, Paul (2006): Civil Society, the Internet and Terrorism: Case Studies from Northern Ireland. In: Sarah Oates; Diana Marie Owen; Rachel Kay Gibson (Eds.): The Internet and Politics: Citizens, Voters and Activists. London: Routledge, 118-135. S214 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Reilly, Paul (2008): "Googling" Terrorists: Are Northern Irish Terrorists Visible on Internet Search Engines? In: Amanda Spink; Michael Zimmer (Eds.): Web Search: Multidisciplinary Perspectives. (Information Science and Knowledge Management, Vol. 14). Berlin: Springer, 151-175. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-75829-7_10 Reilly, Paul (2008, September): Amateur Terrorists? Loyalist and Republican Solidarity Actors Online. Paper presented at the Conflict Research Society Annual Conference: Conflict and Complexity, University of Kent, Canterbury, UK, September 2-3, 2008. URL: http://www.kent.ac.uk/politics/carc/conference/papers/Reilly%20paper.pdf Renfer, Marc A.; Haas, Henriette S. (2008): Systematic Analysis in Counterterrorism: Messages on an Islamist Internet-Forum. International Journal of Intelligence and CounterIntelligence, 21(2), 314-336. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08850600701854359 Requate, Jörg (2012): Die Faszination anarchistischer Attentate im Frankreich des ausgehenden 19. Jahrhunderts. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 99122. Ressa, Maria A. (2012, November): The New Battlefield: The Internet and Social Media. Combating Terrorism Exchange, 2(4). URL: https://globalecco.org/ctx-vol.-2-no.-4-article-1 Reynolds, Amy; Barnett, Brooke (2003, September): This Just In ... How National TV News Handled the Breaking "Live" Coverage of September 11. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 80(3), 689-703. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900308000312 Reynolds, Ted (2012): Ethical and Legal Issues Surrounding Academic Research into Online Radicalisation: A UK Experience. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 5(3), 499-513. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539153.2012.723447 Reznikov, Dmitry O. (2012): Technological and Intelligent Terrorism: Specific Features and Assessment Approaches. In: Nikolay A. Makhutov; Gregory B. Baecher (Eds.): Comparative Analysis of Technological and Intelligent Terrorism Impacts on Complex Technical Systems. (NATO Sci- S215 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement ence for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 102). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 45-60. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-61499-131-1-45 Rhine, Staci L.; Bennett, Stephen E.; Flickinger, Richard S. (2002, August-September): After 9/11: Television Viewers, Newspaper Readers and Public Opinion about Terrorism’s Consequences. Paper presented at the Annual Meeting of the American Political Science Association, Boston, Massachusetts, U.S., August 29 - September 1, 2002. URL: http://fs.huntingdon.edu/jlewis/Terror/FlickingerAPSA02ppr.pdf Richard, Birgit (2007): Pictorial Clashes on the Medial Body of Violence: Abu Ghraib, Nick Berg, and John Paul II. In: Donaldo P. Macedo; Shirley R. Steinberg (Eds.): Media Literacy: A Reader. New York: Peter Lang, 273-288. Richter, Carola (2007): Kommunikationsstrategien islamistischer Terroristen. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 75-81. Rid, Thomas (2007): War 2.0. Policy Review, No. 000 (Web Special). URL: http://www.hoover.org/publications/policy-review/article/6104 Rid, Thomas; Hecker, Marc (2009): Al-Qaeda. In: War 2.0: Irregular Warfare in the Information Age. Westport: Praeger Security International, 185-206. Rid, Thomas; Hecker, Marc (2009): Hezbollah. In: War 2.0: Irregular Warfare in the Information Age. Westport: Praeger Security International, 163-184. Rid, Thomas; Hecker, Marc (2009): Taliban. In: War 2.0: Irregular Warfare in the Information Age. Westport: Praeger Security International, 141-162. Rid, Thomas; Hecker, Marc (2009, July/August): Virtueller Erfolg: Terrorismus- und Aufstandsbekämpfung im 21. Jahrhundert. Internationale Politik, 7-8/2009, 46-53. URL: https://zeitschrift-ip.dgap.org/de/article/getFullPDF/14919 S216 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Riegler, Thomas (2009): A Tragic Hero? The Counterterrorism Approach of Jack Bauer in "24". In: Christopher Hamilton et al. (Eds.): Facing Tragedies. Wien: LIT-Verlag, 193-201. Riegler, Thomas (2009): Fear, Horror, Terror: Violent Movies for Violent Times. In: Shona Hill; Shilinka Smith (Eds.): There be Dragons Out There: Confronting Fear, Horror and Terror. (At the Interface). Oxford: Inter-Disciplinary Press, 109-117. URL: http://www.interdisciplinary.net/publishing/id-press/ebooks/there-be-dragons-out-there Riegler, Thomas (2010, May): Through the Lenses of Hollywood: Depictions of Terrorism in American Movies. Perspectives on Terrorism, 4(2), 35-45. URL: http://terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/98 Riegler, Thomas (2011): 9/11 on the Screen Giving Memory and Meaning to all that "Howling Space" at Ground Zero. Radical History Review, 2011(111), 155-165. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/01636545-1268767 Riegler, Thomas (2013): Jihad according to Hollywood: The Depiction of Islamist Terrorism in American Movies and TV Series. In: Rüdiger Lohlker (Ed.): Jihadism: Online Discourses and Representations. (Studying Jihadism, Vol. 2). Göttingen: Vienna University Press, 207-232. Roberts, Nancy C. (2011, March): Tracking and Disrupting Dark Networks: Challenges of Data Collection and Analysis. Information Systems Frontiers, 13(1), 5-19. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10796-010-9271-z Robillard, Benita de (2006): 9/11, Iraq, Abu Ghraib: Time, Death and Empathy. Ecquid Novi: African Journalism Studies, 27(1), 49-72. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3368/ajs.27.1.49 Robinson, Laura (2005, July): Debating the Events of September 11th: Discursive and Interactional Dynamics in Three Online Fora. Journal of Computer-Mediated Communication, 10(4). DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1083-6101.2005.tb00267.x URL: http://jcmc.indiana.edu/vol10/issue4/robinson.html S217 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Robinson, Nick (2012): Videogames, Persuasion and the War on Terror: Escaping or Embedding the Military–Entertainment Complex? Political Studies, 60(3), 504-522. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1467-9248.2011.00923.x Roble, Muhyadin Ahmed (2011, December 22): The Twitter War: A New Battleground for Kenya and al-Shabaab. TerrorismMonitor, 9(47), 6-7. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/uploads/media/TM_009_Issue47_01.pdf Rocha, Luigi Rodríguez (2007): Media against Terrorism in the Peruvian Andes. Media Development, 3/2007. URL: http://www.waccglobal.org/en/20073-media-and-terror/463-Media-againstterrorism-in-the-Peruvian-Andes.html Rogan, Hanna (2005): THE_LONDON_BOMBINGS.COM: An Analysis of Jihadist Website Discussion about the Attacks. FFI/NOTAT-2005/02970. URL: http://www.ffi.no/no/Prosjekter/Terra/Publikasjoner/Documents/FFI_Notat_Rogan_2005_0297 0.pdf Rogan, Hanna (2006, March 20): JIHADISM ONLINE: A Study of how Al-Qaida and Radical Islamist Groups Use the Internet for Terrorist Purposes. FFI/RAPPORT-2006/00915. URL: http://rapporter.ffi.no/rapporter/2006/00915.pdf Rogan, Hanna (2007): Abu Reuter and the E-Jihad: Virtual Battlefronts from Iraq to the Horn of Africa. Georgetown Journal of International Affairs, 8(2), 89-96. URL: http://www12.georgetown.edu/sfs/publications/journal/82/rogan.pdf Rogan, Hanna (2007, December 1): Al-Qaeda’s Online Media Strategies: From Abu Reuter to Irhabi 007. FFI/RAPPORT-2007/02729. URL: http://www.ffi.no/no/Rapporter/07-02729.pdf Rogan, Hanna; Stenersen, Anne (2008): Jihadism Online: Al-Qaida's Use of the Internet. FFI FOCUS, 1-08. URL: http://www.ffi.no/no/Publikasjoner/Documents/FFI-Fokus-2008-1.pdf Rogers, Everett M.; Seidel, Nancy (2002): Diffusion of News of the Terrorist Attacks of September 11, 2001. Prometheus, 20(3), 209-219. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0810902021014326 S218 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Rogers, Marc (2008): Chapter 4: The Psychology of Cyber-Terrorism. In: Andrew Silke (Ed.): Terrorists, Victims and Society: Psychological Perspectives on Terrorism and its Consequences. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 77-92. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9780470713600.ch4 Rohlinger, Deana A.; Brown, Jordan (2009, September): Democracy, Action, and the Internet after 9/11. American Behavioral Scientist, 53(1), 133-150. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764209338791 URL: http://pepperinstitute.fsu.edu/content/download/46395/322417/file/action.pdf Rohner, Dominic; Frey, Bruno S. (2007): Blood and Ink! The Common-Interest-Game between Terrorists and the Media. Public Choice, 133(1-2), 129-145. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s11127-007-9182-9 Rojecki, Andrew (2005): Media Discourse on Globalization and Terror. Political Communication, 22(1), 63-81. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584600590908447 URL: http://ipac.kacst.edu.sa/eDoc/2006/158203_1.pdf Röll, Franz Josef (2002): Krieg der Zeichen: Zur Symbolik des Attentats am 11. September. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 114-129. Rollins, John; Wilson, Clay (2005): Terrorist Capabilities for Cyberattack: Overview and Policy Issues. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 9. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 43-63. Rollins, John; Wilson, Clay (2007, January 22): Terrorist Capabilities for Cyberattack: Overview and Policy Issues. CRS Report for Congress RL33123. URL: http://www.fas.org/sgp/crs/terror/RL33123.pdf Romarheim, Anders G. (2007): A Theory of Televised Hostage Takings. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 43-61. S219 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ronfeldt, David (1999): Netwar Across the Spectrum of Conflict: An Introductory Comment. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 22(3), 189-192. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/105761099265711 Ronfeldt, David; Arquilla, John (2001): What Next for Networks and Netwars? In: John Arquilla; David Ronfeldt (Eds.): Networks and Netwars: The Future of Terror, Crime, and Militancy. RAND Monograph Report MR-1382. Santa Monica: RAND Corporation, 311-361. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/monograph_reports/MR1382.html Ronfeldt, David; Arquilla, John (2001, October 1): Networks, Netwars, and the Fight for the Future. First Monday, 6(10). URL: http://firstmonday.org/htbin/cgiwrap/bin/ojs/index.php/fm/article/view/889 Rosen, Jay (2011): September 11 in the Mind of American Journalism. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 35-43. Rosenberg, Hananel; Maoz, Ifat (2012): "Meeting the Enemy": The Reception of a Television Interview with a Female Palestinian Terrorist among Jewish Youth in Israel. The Communication Review, 15(1), 45-71. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10714421.2012.647287 Röser, Jutta; Schäfer, Gudrun (2002): Media Use in Germany around the Attacks in the United States. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 85-97. Rossmiller, Shannen (2007): My Cyber Counter-Jihad. Middle East Quarterly, 14(3), 43-48. URL: http://www.meforum.org/1711/my-cyber-counter-jihad Rothenberg, Julia (2012, June): Art after 9/11: Critical Moments in Lean Times. Cultural Sociology, 6(2), 177-200. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1749975511404851 Rothenpieler, Samuel (2011): Der 11. September und der "Krieg gegen den Terror" im Film. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). S220 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 771-790. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/9783-531-94173-8_37 Rötzer, Florian (2002): Das terroristische Wettrüsten: Anmerkungen zur Ästhetik des Aufmerksamkeitsterrors. In: Goedart Palm; Florian Rötzer (Eds.): MedienTerrorKrieg: Zum Kriegsparadigma des 21. Jahrhunderts. Hannover: Heise, 86-97. Rötzer, Florian (2005): Aufmerksamkeitsterrorismus und die Medien. In: Jörgen Klußmann (Ed.): Terrorismus und Medien – eine komplexe Beziehung. Bonn: Evangelische Akademie im Rheinland, 21-40. Roy, Sudeshna (2012, October): Culturally Unconscious: Intercultural Implications of The New York Times Representation of the Israel–Palestine Conflict in 2009 and 2011. International Communication Gazette, 74(6), 556-570. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048512454823 Roy, Sudeshna; Ross, Susan Dente (2011): The Circle of Terror: Strategic Localizations of Global Media Terror Meta-Discourses in the US, India and Scotland. Media, War & Conflict, 4(3), 287-301. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635211420631 Rubin, Alan M. et al. (2005): Television Exposure not Predictive of Terrorism Fear. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 191-206. Rubin, Lance (2010): Cultural Anxiety, Moral Clarity and Willful Amnesia: Filming Philip K. Dick after 9/11. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 183-194. Rubin, Michael; Gershowitz, Suzanne (2005, December): How to Deal with Kidnappings in Iraq. Middle East Forum. URL: http://www.meforum.org/793/how-to-deal-with-kidnappings-in-iraq S221 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ruigrok, Nel; van Atteveldt, Wouter (2007, Winter): Global Angling with a Local Angle: How U.S., British, and Dutch Newspapers Frame Global and Local Terrorist Attacks. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 12(1), 68-90. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X06297436 URL: http://vanatteveldt.com/pub/RuigrokVanAtteveldt06GlobalAngling.pdf Ruschin, Dmitry (2010): September 11 in Russian Media. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 164168. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Russell, John (2005): Terrorists, Bandits, Spooks and Thieves: Russian Demonisation of the Chechens before and since 9/11. Third World Quarterly, 26(1), 101-116. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/0143659042000322937 Ryan, Johnny (2009): The Internet: Empowering End-Users to Seize the New High Ground. In: Steve Tsang (Ed.): Combating Transnational Terrorism: Searching for a New Paradigm. Westport: Greenwood Publishing, 136-153. Ryan, Johnny (2010): The Internet, the Perpetual Beta, and the State: The Long View of the New Medium. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 33(8), 673-681. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2010.494154 Ryan, Michael (2004, October): Framing the War against Terrorism: US Newspaper Editorials and Military Action in Afghanistan. International Communication Gazette, 66(5), 363-382. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0016549204045918 Ryan, Michael (2006): Mainstream News Media, an Objective Approach, and the March to War in Iraq. Journal of Mass Media Ethics, 21(1), 4-29. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15327728jmme2101_2 Ryan, Michael; Switzer, Les (2009): Militarism, Media, and Religion: From Afghanistan to Iraq. In: God in the Corridors of Power: Christian Conservatives, the Media, and Politics in America. Westport: Greenwood Publishing, 403-440. S222 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ryan, Michael; Switzer, Les (2009): Propaganda and the Subversion of Objectivity: Media Coverage of the War on Terrorism in Iraq. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 2(1), 45-64. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150902752721 Ryan, Michael; Switzer, Les (2009): Terrorism, Media, and Religion: From 9/11 to Afghanistan. In: God in the Corridors of Power: Christian Conservatives, the Media, and Politics in America. Westport: Greenwood Publishing, 365-402. #S Sádaba, María Teresa (2002, May): "Each to his own...": September 11 in Basque Media. Television & New Media, 3(2), 219-222. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/152747640200300214 Sádaba, María Teresa; La Porte, Teresa (2006): Mediated Terrorism in Comparative Perspective: Spanish Press Coverage of 9/11 vs. Coverage of Basque Terrorism. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 69-90. Sadig, Haydar Badawi; Noorzai, Roshan; Guta, Hala Asmina (2011): Communication Technologies in the Arsenal of Al Qaeda and Taliban. In: Robert S. Fortner; P. Mark Fackler (Eds.): The Handbook of Global Communication and Media Ethics. Oxford: Wiley-Blackwell, 953-972. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444390629.ch48 Saeed, Saima (2011): News Media, Public Diplomacy and the "War on Terror". In: Mahjoob Zweiri; Emma C. Murphy (Eds.): The New Arab Media: Technology, Image and Perception. Reading: Ithaca Press, 47-69. Saft, Scott; Oharaa, Yumiko (2006): The Media and the Pursuit of Militarism in Japan: Newspaper Editorials in the Aftermath of 9/11. Critical Discourse Studies, 3(1), 81-101. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17405900600589390 Sageman, Marc (2008): Terrorism in the Age of the Internet. In: Leaderless Jihad: Terror Networks in the Twenty-First Century. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 109-125. S223 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Said, Behnam (2012): Hymns (Nasheeds): A Contribution to the Study of the Jihadist Culture. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 35(12), 863-879. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2012.720242 Saint-Claire, Steve (2011): Overview and Analysis on Cyber Terrorism. School of Doctoral Studies (European Union) Journal, 3(1), 85-98. URL: http://www.iiuedu.eu/press/journals/sds/SDS_2011/DET_Article2.pdf Salaverría, Ramón (2005, February): An Immature Medium: Strengths and Weaknesses of Online Newspapers on September 11. International Communication Gazette, 67(1), 69-86. http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0016549205049179 Salem, Arab; Reid, Edna; Chen, Hsinchun (2008): Content Analysis of Jihadi Extremist Groups' Videos. In: Hsinchun Chen et al. (Eds.): Terrorism Informatics: Knowledge Management and Data Mining for Homeland Security. (Integrated Series in Information Systems, Vol. 18). New York: Springer, 267-284. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-0-387-71613-8_13 Salem, Arab; Reid, Edna; Chen, Hsinchun (2008): Multimedia Content Coding and Analysis: Unraveling the Content of Jihadi Extremist Groups’ Videos. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 31(7), 605-626. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100802144072 URL: http://floodhelp.uno.edu/uploads/Content%20Analysis/Salem.pdf Salih, Abdel Rahman Abdalla (2009, November): The Media and American Invasion of Iraq: A Tale of Two Wars. Journal of Arab & Muslim Media Research, 2(1-2), 81-90. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jammr.2.1and2.81/1 Saltman, Samuel S. (2008, Summer): The Global Jihad Network: Why and how al-Qaeda Uses Computer Technology to Wage Jihad. Journal of Global Change and Governance, 1(3). URL: http://www.acsa.net/TW/samples/Saltman.pdf Salván, Paula Martín (2010): Terror, Asceticism, and Epigrammatic Writing in Don DeLillo's Fiction. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 145-157. S224 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Salwen, Michael B.; Driscoll, Paul D.; Garrison, Bruce (2005): Third-Person Perceptions of Fear during the War on Terrorism: Perceptions of Online News Users. In: Paul D. Driscoll; Michael B. Salwen; Bruce Garrison (Eds.): Online News and the Public. Mahwah: Lawrence Erlbaum, 185-204. Salwen, Michael B.; Lee, Jung‐Sook (1988): News of Terrorism: A Comparison of the U.S. and South Korean Press. Terrorism, 11(4), 323-328. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108808435721 Samuel-Azran, Tal (2007, Fall): Will Non-Western Networks Promote a "Global Culture"? The Case of U.S. Media's Re-Presentation of Al-Jazeera's Reports during the War on Terrorism. Global Media Journal: Mediterranean Edition, 2(2), 37-44. URL: http://globalmedia.emu.edu.tr/images/stories/ALL_ARTICLES/2007/fall2007/issues/5.%20Sa muel-Azran.pdf Sánchez-Escalonilla, Antonio (2010): Hollywood and the Rhetoric of Panic: The Popular Genres of Action and Fantasy in the Wake of the 9/11 Attacks. Journal of Popular Film and Television, 38(1), 10-20. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01956050903449640 Sanz Sabido, Rut M. (2009): When the "Other" Becomes "Us": Mediated Representations,"Terrorism" and the "War on Terror". PLATFORM: Journal of Media and Communication, 1(1), 6782. URL: http://journals.culture-communication.unimelb.edu.au/platform/v1_sanzsabido.html Sarabia-Panol, M. Zenaida (2010): The 9/11 Terrorist Attacks on America: Media Frames from the Far East. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 169-185. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Saylor, Conway F. et al. (2003, August): Media Exposure to September 11: Elementary School Students' Experiences and Posttraumatic Symptoms. American Behavioral Scientist, 46(12), 16221642. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764203254619 URL: http://www.impactkenniscentrum.nl/doc/kennisbank/1000011007-1.pdf S225 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Scanlan, Margaret (2010): Migrating from Terror: The Postcolonial Novel after September 11. Journal of Postcolonial Writing, 46(3-4), 266-278. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17449855.2010.482372 Scanlan, Margaret (2012): After the Apocalypse: Novelists and Terrorists since 9/11. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 141-154. Scanlon, Joseph (2001): The Politics of Hostage Rescue: Is Violence a Route to Political Success? Journal of Contingencies & Crisis Management, 9(2), 88-97. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/1468-5973.00157 Schack, Todd (2009): Perpetual Media Wars: The Cultural Front in the Wars on Terror and Drugs. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 65-89. Schaefer, Evelyn G.; Halldorson, Michael K.; Dizon-Reynante, Cheryl (2011): TV or not TV? Does the Immediacy of Viewing Images of a Momentous News Event Affect the Quality and Stability of Flashbulb Memories? Memory, 19(3), 251-266. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09658211.2011.558512 Schaefer, Todd M. (2003): Framing the US Embassy Bombings and September 11 Attacks in African and US Newspapers. In: Pippa Norris; Montague Kern; Marion Just (Eds.): Framing Terrorism: The News Media, the Government and the Public. New York: Routledge, 93-112. Schaefer, Todd M. (2006): When Terrorism Hits Home: Domestic Newspaper Coverage of the 1998 and 2002 Terror Attacks in Kenya. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 29(6), 577-589. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100600803523 Schanzer, Jonathan; Dubowitz, Mark (2010, October): P@lestinian Pulse: What Policymakers can Learn from Palestinian Social Media. Washington, D.C.: FDD Press. URL: http://www.defenddemocracy.org/media-hit/palestinian-pulse-what-policymakers-can-learnfrom-palestinian-social-media S226 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Schanzer, Jonathan; Miller, Steven (2012, May 7): Facebook Fatwa: Saudi Clerics, Wahhabi Islam and Social Media. Washington, DC: FDD Press. URL: http://www.defenddemocracy.org/stuff/uploads/documents/facebook_fatwa_low_res_2.pdf Schbley, Ayla (2004): Religious Terrorism, the Media, and International Islamization Terrorism: Justifying the Unjustifiable. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 27(3), 207-233. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100490438273 Schechter, Danny (2012): Challenging the Media War. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 306-316. Scheuer, Michael (2007, May 30): Al-Qaeda’s Media Doctrine: Evolution from Cheerleader to Opinion-Shaper. Terrorism Focus, 4(15). URL: http://www.jamestown.org/programs/gta/single/? tx_ttnews[tt_news]=4177&tx_ttnews[backPid]=240&no_cache=1 Scheufele, Dietram A.; Nisbet, Matthew C.; Ostman, Ronald E. (2005): September 11 News Coverage, Public Opinion, and Support for Civil Liberties. Mass Communication and Society, 8(3), 197-218. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15327825mcs0803_2 Schicha, Christian (2002): Terrorismus und symbolische Politik: Zur Relevanz politischer und theatralischer Inszenierungen nach dem 11. September 2001. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 94-114. Schicha, Christian (2007): Der 11. September 2001 – Symbolische Politikvermittlung in den Medien. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 175-185. Schicha, Christian; Brosda, Carsten (2002): Medien, Terrorismus und der 11. September 2001: Eine Einleitung. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 7-25. S227 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Schiff, Frederick (1990): Rewriting the "Dirty War": State Terrorism Reinterpreted by the Press in Argentina during the Transition to Democracy. Terrorism, 13(4-5), 311-328. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576109008435839 Schiller, David Th. (2007): "When it bleeds, it leads the headlines...": Ein Essay zum Thema "Medien und Terrorismus" aus journalistischer und sicherheitspolitischer Perspektive. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 99-113. Schirato, Tony; Webb, Jennifer (2004): The Media as Spectacle: September 11 as Soap Opera. Journal for Cultural Research, 8(4), 411-423. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1479758042000310108 Schlesinger, Philip (1981, Spring): "Terrorism", the Media, and the Liberal-Democratic State: A Critique of the Orthodoxy. Social Research, 48(1), 74-99. Schlicht, Daniela (2009): Von Populär bis Fundamentalistisch: Repräsentation islamischer Religiosität im Internet. In: Uwe Hunger; Kathrin Kissau (Eds.): Internet und Migration: Theoretische Zugänge und empirische Befunde. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 233255. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-91902-7_12 Schlüter, Bastian (2011): Der dritte Ring: Lessings "Nathan der Weise" vor und nach dem 11. September 2001. In: Romana Weiershausen; Insa Wilke; Nina Gülcher (Eds.): Aufgeklärte Zeiten? Religiöse Toleranz und Literatur. Berlin: Erich Schmidt Verlag, 139-156. Schmid, Alex P. (1989): Terrorism and the Media: The Ethics of Publicity. Terrorism and Political Violence, 1(4), 539-565. http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546558908427042 Schmid, Alex P. (1992): Editors' Perspectives. In: David L. Paletz; Alex P. Schmid (Eds.): Terrorism and the Media. Newbury Park: SAGE, 111-136. S228 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Schmid, Alex P. (2005): Terrorism as Psychological Warfare. Democracy and Security, 1(2), 137146. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17419160500322467 URL: http://ics.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/2745/TasPW.pdf Schmid, Alex P. (2010, July): The Importance of Countering Al-Qaeda’s "Single Narrative". In: Eelco J. A. M. Kessels (Ed.): Countering Violent Extremist Narratives. The Hague: National Coordinator for Counterterrorism (NCTb), 46-57. URL: http://english.nctb.nl/Images/Countering %20Violent%20Extremist%20Narratives%20-%202_tcm92-259489.pdf Schmidt, Mogens (2003): Media in Danger. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 39-42. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Schmidt, Wolf (2012): Keyboard statt Kalaschnikow: Die Online-Gotteskrieger. In: Jung, deutsch, Taliban. Berlin: Ch. Links Verlag, 105-122. Schmidt, Wolf (2012): "Sterben, um zu leben": Dschihad-Pop aus Deutschland. In: Jung, deutsch, Taliban. Berlin: Ch. Links Verlag, 123-136. Schnabel, Anja (2012): "Natürlich kann geschossen werden!" – Legendenbildung oder Aufklärung? Zur Darstellung der Roten Armee Fraktion im Film. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 239-256. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 Schneck, Peter (2010): "The Great Secular Trancendence": Don DeLillo and the Desire for Numinous Experience. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 204-222. S229 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Schoeneborn, Dennis; Scherer, Andreas Georg (2012, July): Clandestine Organizations, al Qaeda, and the Paradox of (In)Visibility: A Response to Stohl and Stohl. Organization Studies, 33(7), 963-971. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0170840612448031 Schöning, Matthias (2010): Der Anarch und die Anarchisten: Ernst Jüngers "Eumeswil": Eine metapolitische Typologie der Staatsfeinde aus dem Jahr ’77. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 21-50. Schopp, Andrew (2009): Interrogating the Manipulation of Fear: V for Vendetta, Batman Begins, Good Night, and Good Luck, and America's "War on Terror". In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 259-286. Schuck, Christoph (2009): Die Feder mit dem Degen tauschen – oder umgekehrt? Zur Dialektik der neueren transnationalen Kommunikation al-Qaidas. Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, 2(4), 455-474. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s12399-009-0100-8 Schudson, Michael (2011): What's Unusual about Covering Politics as Usual. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 44-54. Schuhmann, Antje (2006): National Politics of Belonging and Conflicting Masculinities: Race and the Representation of Recent Wars. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 91-107. Schüler-Springorum, Stefanie (2012): Dialog ohne Witwen? Nationalismus und Gewalt im Baskenland. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 157-176. S230 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Schulthies, Becky; Boum, Aomar (2007): "Martyrs and Terrorists, Resistance and Insurgency": Contextualizing the Exchange of Terrorism Discourses on Al-Jazeera. In: Adam Hodges; Chad Nilep (Eds.): Discourse, War and Terrorism. (Discourse Approaches to Politics, Society and Culture, Vol. 24). Amsterdam: John Benjamins, 143-160. Schumaker, Robert P.; Chen, Hsinchun (2007, August): Leveraging Question Answer Technology to Address Terrorism Inquiry. Decision Support Systems, 43(4), 1419-1430. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.dss.2006.04.007 URL: http://ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/leveraging%20questions...etc.pdf Schütte, Christian (2012): Textanalysen zu Terrorismus-Darstellungen in der deutschen Boulevardpresse. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 151-172. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4-bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 Schwartz, Matthew (2011): Al-Qaida’ s Use of the Internet for Explosives Instruction Discerning the Threat and Recommendations for International Action. URL: http://criticaloversight.files.wordpress.com/2011/03/matthew-schwartz_workingpaper_alqaida_internet_instruction_vii.pdf Schweighauser, Philipp; Schneck, Peter (2010): Introduction: The American and the European DeLillo. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 1-18. Schweighauser, Philipp; Wisnicki, Adrian S. (2010): The End of Resolution? Reflections on the Ethics of Closure in Don DeLillo's Detective Plots. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 158-172. Schweitzer, Yoram; Siboni, Gabi; Yogev, Einav (2011, December): Cyberspace and Terrorist Organizations. Military and Strategic Affairs, 3(3), 39-47. URL: http://www.inss.org.il/upload/ (FILE)1333532806.pdf S231 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Sciurba, Katie (2009): Deal With It, Sort Of: The Picture-Book Treatment of September 11. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 187-208. Scott, John L. (2001): Media Congestion Limits Media Terrorism. Defence and Peace Economics, 12(3), 215-227. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10430710108404985 Scranton, Roy (2012): The 9/11 Novel and the Politics of Narcissism. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 123-140. Seehaus, Christine (2007): Terrorismus in Bildern – Die Grenzen des rechtlich Zulässigen. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 115-126. Seib, Philip (2004): The News Media and the "Clash of Civilizations". Parameters, 34(4), 71-85. URL: http://www.carlisle.army.mil/usawc/Parameters/Articles/04winter/seib.pdf Seib, Philip (2008, May/June): The Al-Qaeda Media Machine. Military Review, 3, 74-80. URL: http://usacac.army.mil/CAC2/MilitaryReview/Archives/English/MilitaryReview_20080630_art 012.pdf Seib, Philip (2011, March): Public Diplomacy, New Media, and Counterterrorism. CPD Perspectives on Public Diplomacy, Paper 2, 2011. URL: http://uscpublicdiplomacy.org/publications/perspectives/CPDPerspectives_P2_2011.pdf Seib, Philip (2012): Public Diplomacy Versus Terrorism. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 63-76. Seja, Nina (2011): No Laughing Matter? Comedy and the Politics of the Terrorist/Victim. Continuum, 25(2), 227-237. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10304312.2011.553943 S232 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Şenerdem, Barbaros Hayrettin (2011): Terrorism and the Media. In: Adil Duyan; Mustafa Kibaroğlu (Eds.): Defence against Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 84). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 27-38. Seneviratne, Kalinga (2006): Looking behind the Terror Curtain: A Developing World Journalism Perspective. Pacific Journalism Review, 12(2), 29-45. Seppälä, Tiina (2002, July): "New Wars" and Old Strategies: From Traditional Propaganda to Information Warfare and Psychological Operations – Some Notions on the Gulf War, the Kosovo War and the War on Terrorism. Paper presented at the 23 Conference and General Assembly IAMCR/AIECS/AIERI International Association for Media and Communication Research, Barcelona, Spain, July 21-26, 2002. URL: http://www.portalcomunicacion.com/bcn2002/n_eng/programme/prog_ind/papers/s/pdf/s001_s epal.pdf Shaffer, Yehuda (2005): Analysis of Financial Intelligence and the Detection of Terror Financing. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 105-116. Shah, Nishant (2007): Subject to Technology: Internet Pornography, Cyber‐Terrorism and the Indian State. Inter-Asia Cultural Studies, 8(3), 349-366. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/14649370701393725 Shahan, Cyrus (2011): The Sounds of Terror: Punk, Post-Punk and the RAF after 1977. Popular Music and Society, 34(3), 369-386. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03007761003726258 Shahan, Cyrus (2012, Summer): The Real and Illusory after September 11, 2001, in Elfriede Jelinek's Bambiland and Babel. The German Quarterly, 85(3), 310-327. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1756-1183.2012.00152.x S233 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Shahar, Yael (2008): The Internet as a Tool for Intelligence and Counter-Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 104-117. Shapira, Bracha (2005): A Content-Based Model for Web-Monitoring. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 63-74. Shapira, Bracha et al. (2008): Enhancement to the Advanced Terrorist Detection System (ATDS). In: Cecilia S. Gal; Paul B. Kantor; Bracha Shapira (Eds.): Security Informatics and Terrorism: Patrolling the Web: Social and Technical Problems of Detecting and Controlling Terrorists' Use of the World Wide Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 15). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 71-81. Shapiro, Jacob N.; Siegel, David A. (2010): Is this Paper Dangerous? Balancing Secrecy and Openness in Counterterrorism. Security Studies, 19(1), 66-98. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09636410903546483 URL: http://www.princeton.edu/~jns/publications/Is%20This%20Paper%20Dangerous.pdf Sharma, Divya (2008): Why do they Hate U.S.? Exploring the Role of Media in Cultural Communication. Journal of the Institute of Justice & International Studies, 8/2008, 246-262. Sharma, Sanjeev Kumar (2006, February): Linkages of Democracy, Terrorism and Media. Journal of Political Science, 2(1), 7-23. URL: http://www.ijps.net/images/Terrorism%20and%20Media %20in%20Linkages%20Perspective.pdf Sharp Parker, Amanda M. (2009): Cyberterrorism: The Emerging Worldwide Threat. In: David Canter (Ed.): The Faces of Terrorism: Multidisciplinary Perspectives. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 245-257. Sharrett, Christopher (2004, Summer): 9/11, the Useful Incident, and the Legacy of the Creel Committee. Cinema Journal, 43(4), 125-131. S234 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Shaw, Ibrahim Seaga (2012, April): The "War on Terror" Frame and Washington Post’s Linking of the Sierra Leone Civil War to 9/11 and al-Qaeda: Implications for US Foreign Policy in Africa. Journal of African Media Studies, 4(1), 27-44. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jams.4.1.27_1 Shaw, Ibrahim Seaga (2012, October): Stereotypical Representations of Muslims and Islam following the 7/7 London Terror Attacks: Implications for Intercultural Communication and Terrorism Prevention. International Communication Gazette, 74(6), 509-524. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048512454816 Shay, Shaul (2005): The Radical Islam and the Cyber Jihad. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 29-40. Shay, Shaul (2010): Al Qaeda and the Hybrid Jihad. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Web Intelligence and Security: Advances in Data and Text Mining Techniques for Detecting and Preventing Terrorist Activities on the Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 27). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 31-35. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-611-9-31 Shcheblanova, Veronika; Yarskaya-Smirnova, Elena (2009): Explanations of Female Terrorism: Discourses about Chechen Terrorists in the Russian Mass Media: "Easy Girls", "Coarse Women" or Fighters? In: Eifler, Christine; Seifert, Ruth (Eds.): Gender Dynamics and Post-Conflict Reconstruction. Frankfurt: Peter Lang, 245-268. URL: http://89.249.21.74/data/2010/03/16/1231582052/Shcheblanova_Yarskaya-Smirnova_2009.pdf Sheikh, Mona Kanwal (2012): Sacred Pillars of Violence: Findings from a Study of the Pakistani Taliban. Politics, Religion & Ideology, 13(4), 439-454. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/21567689.2012.725662 Shetret, Liat (2011, February): Use of the Internet for Counter-Terrorist Purposes. Center on Global Counterterrorism Cooperation Policy Brief. URL: http://kms1.isn.ethz.ch/serviceengine/Files/ISN/126762/ipublicationdocument_singledocument/ a40e96ab-78f7-45db-aa0b-3eb35f22a239/en/LS_policybrief_119.pdf S235 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Shichor, Yitzhak (2006): Fact and Fiction: A Chinese Documentary on Eastern Turkestan Terrorism. China and Eurasia Forum Quarterly, 4(2), 89-108. URL: http://www.silkroadstudies.org/new/docs/CEF/Quarterly/May_2006/Shichor.pdf Shimatsu, Yoichi (2010): Off the Axis: Media in Japan and China. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(14), 206-216. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Shipler, David K. (1988): Future Domestic and International Terrorism: Media Perspective. Terrorism, 11(6), 543-545. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108808435752 Shlapentokh, Dmitry (2012): The Intellectual and Political Exchange among Jihadists: The Case of Mustafa Setmarian Nasar (Abu Musab al-Suri). Journal of Applied Security Research, 7(3), 301-319. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19361610.2012.686093 Shomali, Qustandi (2010): A Semiotic Analysis of 9/11 in the Palestinian Press. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 241-253. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Shorer-Zeltser; Marina; Ben-Israel, Galit M. (2010): Learning Terror Trigger Textual Devices on Religious Internet Sites. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 189-193. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-189 Shoshani, Anat; Slone, Michelle (2008): The Drama of Media Coverage of Terrorism: Emotional and Attitudinal Impact on the Audience. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 31(7), 627-640. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100802144064 Shpiro, Shlomo (2001, June): Intelligence, Media, and Terrorism: Imperial Germany and the Middle East. Journal of Intelligence History, 1(1), 21-35. S236 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Shpiro, Shlomo (2002): Conflict Media Strategies and the Politics of Counter-Terrorism. Politics, 22(2), 76-85. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/1467-9256.00162 URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/1063/shpiro.pdf Shurkin, Joel N. (2007): Terrorism and the Media. In: Bruce Bongar et al. (Eds.): Psychology of Terrorism. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 81-86. Sibianu, Daniela (2010): Islamist Propaganda on the Internet: Terrorist Entities’ Response to Alleged Anti-Muslim Western Actions. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 81-89. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-81 Sibianu, Daniela; Agheană, Elena (2010): Islamism in the Globalization Era. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 53-60. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-53 Sick, Gary (1998): Taking Vows: The Domestication of Policy-Making in Hostage Incidents. In: Walter Reich (Ed.): Origins of Terrorism: Psychologies, Ideologies, Theologies, States of Mind. Washington: Woodrow Wilson Center Press, 231-244. Sidhu, Dawinder S. (2009, November): Madison in Post-9/11 Cyberspace: Applying Federalist No. 10 to the Online Battle for "Hearts and Minds". Journal of Internet Law, 13(9), 3-15. URL: http://papers.ssrn.com/sol3/papers.cfm?abstract_id=1512817 Sieber, Ulrich (2006): International Cooperation against Terrorist Use of the Internet. Revue internationale de droit pénal, 77(3-4), 395-449. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3917/ridp.773.0395 URL: http://www.cairn.info/revue-internationale-de-droit-penal-2006-3-page-395.htm S237 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Sielschott, Stephan (2011): Über Terroristen und Spitzensportler: Eine Framing-Analyse stereotyper Bewertungen von Muslimen in ostdeutschen Regionalzeitungen als Beitrag zur Theorien- und Methodendiskussion. Publizistik, 56(2), 157-180. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s11616-0110114-9 Silke, Andrew (2008, January): Holy Warriors: Exploring the Psychological Processes of Jihadi Radicalization. European Journal of Criminology, 5(1), 99-123. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1477370807084226 Silke, Andrew (2010): The Internet & Terrorist Radicalisation: The Psychological Dimension. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 27-39. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-160750-537-2-27 Silm, Bouchaib; Samat, Faizah A. (2006, January 6): Animated Jihad: Growing Sophistication of Jihadist Video. RSIS Commentaries 002/06. URL: http://dr.ntu.edu.sg/bitstream/handle/10220/4320/RSIS-COMMENT_56.pdf?sequence=1 Silva, Neluka (2010): "Gendering" Terror: Representations of the Female "Freedom Fighter" in Contemporary Sri Lankan Literature and Cultural Production. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 329-344. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch13 Silver, David; Marwick, Alice (2010): Internet Studies in Times of Terror. In: Pramod K. Nayar (Ed.): The New Media and Cybercultures Anthology. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 328-334. Silver, Derigan (2011): Media Censorship and Access to Terrorism Trials: A Social Architecture Analysis. Notre Dame Journal of Law, Ethics & Public Policy, 25(1), 143-186. URL: http://www.nd.edu/~ndlaw/jlepp/journals/25-Censorship.pdf Silverman, Jon (2012): Terrorism and the Politics of Response. In: Crime, Policy and the Media: The Shaping of Criminal Justice, 1989-2010. London: Routledge, 140-158. S238 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Silverman, Jon; Thomas, Lisa (2012, December): "I Feel your Pain": Terrorism, the Media and the Politics of Response. Crime Media Culture, 8(3), 279-295. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1741659012443363 Silverstone, Roger (2011): Mediating Catastrophe: September 11 and the Crisis of the Other. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 75-82. Simanjuntak, David Allister et al. (2010): Text Classification Techniques Used to Faciliate Cyber Terrorism Investigation. In: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE) (Ed.): ACT 2010: 2010 Second International Conference on Advances in Computing, Control and Telecommunication Technologies, Jakarta, Indonesia, 2-3 December 2010: Proceedings. Los Alamitos: IEEE Computer Society Conference Publishing Services (CPS), 198-200. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/ACT.2010.40 Simons, Greg (2006, Fall): The Use of Rhetoric and the Mass Media in Russia's War on Terror. Demokratizatsiya, 14(4), 579-600. URL: http://api.ning.com/files/CBh6d69vms8DntF6aqo66zf65bKMTnTZLHwZGXf69GC75kYOeY9WwKdfrzOJS5hhiCwktb1RhVUteOyHVa8dmTXh8 8kRmfz/SimonsDemokratizatsiya.pdf Simons, Greg (2008, Spring-Summer): Mass Media and the Battle for Public Opinion in the Global War on Terror: Violence and Legitimacy in Iraq. Perceptions, Spring-Summer/2008. URL: http://sam.gov.tr/mass-media-and-the-battle-for-public-opinion-in-the-global-war-on-terrorviolence-and-legitimacy-in-iraq Simons, Greg; Strovsky, Dmitry (2006, June): Censorship in Contemporary Russian Journalism in the Age of the War against Terrorism: A Historical Perspective. European Journal of Communication, 21(2), 189-211. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0267323105064045 URL: http://www.library.cjes.ru/files/pdf/rus-journ-at-war.pdf Sinai, Joshua (2009): Using the Internet to Uncover Terrorism's Root Causes. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Influence Warfare: How Terrorists and Governments Fight to Shape Perceptions in a War of Ideas. Westport: Praeger Security International, 241-253. S239 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Sinai, Joshua (2011, Fall): Ten Years Later, the War Continues... How Terrorists Exploit the Internet and Effective Countermeasures. Journal of Counterterrorism & Homeland Security International, 17(3), n.p. Sing, Ramindar (2002): Covering September 11 and it's Consequences: A Comparative Study of the Press in America, India and Pakistan. The Joan Shorenstein Center on the Press, Politics and Public Policy Working Paper Series, #2002-4. URL: http://shorensteincenter.org/wpcontent/uploads/2012/03/2002_04_singh.pdf Singh, Dushyant (2012): Impact of Virtual World in Creation and Sustenance of Terrorists. In: Updesh Kumar; Manas K. Mandal (Eds.): Countering Terrorism: Psychosocial Strategies. New Delhi: SAGE, 250-281. Singh, Jagdeep; Goyal, Shilpi; Gupta, Vishal (2012): Terrorism and Role of Media. International Affairs and Global Strategy, 4. URL: http://www.iiste.org/Journals/index.php/IAGS/article/view/1456 Singh, Sujala (2010): Terror, Spectacle, and the Secular State in Bombay Cinema. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 345-360. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch14 Singleton, Tommie; Singleton, Aaron (2004, July-August): Cyberterrorism: Are you at Risk? Journal of Corporate Accounting & Finance, 15(5), 3-12. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/jcaf.20032 Šisler, Vít (2008, May): Digital Arabs: Representation in Video Games. European Journal of Cultural Studies, 11(2), 203-220. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1367549407088333 URL: http://game-pub-research.wikispaces.com/file/view/Digital+Arabs+Representation+in+video+games_203.pdf SITE Intelligence Group (2008, December): Differing Opinions of Mumbai Atttacks amongst Palestinian Forum Members. inSITE, 1(8), 19-21. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_December_2008.pdf S240 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement SITE Intelligence Group (2008, December): Jihadists Encourage Support for Mumbai Attacks. inSITE, 1(8), 22-25. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_December_2008.pdf SITE Intelligence Group (2009, February): Khalil al-Deek: al-Qaeda’s Digital Pioneer. inSITE, 2(2), 11-13. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_February_2009.pdf SITE Intelligence Group (2009, March): Al-Qaeda and Sony VAIO. inSITE, 2(3), 22. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_March_2009.pdf SITE Intelligence Group (2009, July): Malika el Aroud: Background of an Internet Jihadist. inSITE, 2(7), 20-23. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_July_2009.pdf SITE Intelligence Group (2010, July): Evolution of the Global Islamic Media Front. inSITE, 2(12), 27-28. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_July_2010.pdf SITE Intelligence Group (2010, July): Timeline of Communications from Mustafa Abu al-Yazid. inSITE, 2(12), 29-36. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_July_2010.pdf Skillicorn, D. B.; Vats, N. (2007, August): Novel Information Discovery for Intelligence and Counterterrorism. Decision Support Systems, 43(4), 1375-1382. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.dss.2006.04.005 URL: http://techreports.cs.queensu.ca/files/2004488.pdf Slater, Jerome (2007, Fall): Muting the Alarm over the Israeli-Palestinian Conflict: "The New York Times" Versus "Haaretz", 2000-06. International Security, 32(2), 84-120. Slocum, David (2011, Fall): 9/11 Film and Media Scholarship. Cinema Journal, 51(1), 181-193. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1353/cj.2011.0079 Slone, Michelle (2000, August): Responses to Media Coverage of Terrorism. Journal of Conflict Resolution, 44(4), 508-522. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0022002700044004005 URL: http://rcirib.ir/articles/pdfs/cd1%5CIngenta_Sage_Articles_on_194_225_11_89/Ingenta780.pdf S241 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Slone, Michelle; Shoshani, Anat (2006, October): Evaluation of Preparatory Measures for Coping with Anxiety Raised by Media Coverage of Terrorism. Journal of Counseling Psychology, 53(4), 535-542. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1037/0022-0167.53.4.535 Slone, Michelle; Shoshani, Anat (2010, Fall): Prevention rather than Cure? Primary or Secondary Intervention for Dealing with Media Exposure to Terrorism. Journal of Counseling & Development, 88(4), 440-448. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/j.1556-6678.2010.tb00044.x Slone, Michelle; Shoshani, Anat; Baumgarten-Katz, Inbar (2008): The Relation between Actual Exposure to Political Violence and Preparatory Intervention for Exposure to Media Coverage of Terrorism. Anxiety, Stress & Coping, 21(3), 243-261. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10615800701510124 Smelik, Anneke (2011, April): Mediating Memories: The Ethics of Post-9/11 Spectatorship. Arcadia, 45(2), 307-325. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1515/arca.2010.018 URL: http://www.annekesmelik.nl/files/ARCA_2010.pdf Smelser, Neil J. (2010): Motivation, Social Origins, Recruitment, Groups, Audiences, and the Media in the Terrorism Process. In: The Faces of Terrorism: Social and Psychological Dimensions. (Science Essentials). Princeton: Princeton University Press, 90-120. Smith, Sarabeth A. (2010, Spring): What's Old is New again: Terrorism and the Growing Need to Revisit the Prohibition on Propaganda. Syracuse Journal of International Law and Commerce, 37(2), 299-338. Smolash, Wendy Naava (2009, July): Mark of Cain(ada): Racialized Security Discourse in Canada's National Newspapers. University of Toronto Quarterly, 78(2), 745-763. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3138/utq.78.2.745 URL: http://utpjournals.metapress.com/content/u753vn2q5q185511/? p=a2d210745fe945a5862eb5dc17a18768&pi=4 S242 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Snetkov, Aglaya (2007): The Image of the Terrorist Threat in the Official Russian Press: The Moscow Theatre Crisis (2002) and the Beslan Hostage Crisis (2004). Europe-Asia Studies, 59(8), 1349-1365. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09668130701655192 URL: http://www.humanities.manchester.ac.uk/medialibrary/llc/files/russian-mediaconf/Snetkov_Aglaia.rtf Snow, Nancy (2006): Terrorism, Public Relations, and Propaganda. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 145-160. Snow, Nancy (2007): Media, Terrorism, and the Politics of Fear. Media Development, 3/2007. URL: http://www.waccglobal.org/en/20073-media-and-terror/465-Media-terrorism-and-the-politicsof-fear.html Snow, Nancy (2010): The Resurgence of U.S. Public Diplomacy after 9/11. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 77-88. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Snow, Nancy; Taylor, Philip M. (2006, October): The Revival of the Propaganda State: US Propaganda at Home and Abroad since 9/11. International Communication Gazette, 68(5-6), 389407. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048506068718 Snyder, Leslie B.; Park, Crystal L. (2002): National Studies of Stress Reactions and Media Exposure to the Attacks. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 177-192. Solaroli, Marco (2011, December): Mediatized Conflicts, Performative Photographs and Contested Memory: The Abu Ghraib Scandal and the Iconic Struggle over the Meanings of the "War on Terror". Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 245-250. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427497 S243 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Soma Sundaram; P. Madhava; Jaishankar, K. (2008): Cyber Terrorism: Problems, Perspectives, and Prescription. In: Frank J. Schmalleger; Michael Pittaro (Eds.): Crimes of the Internet. Upper Saddle River: Pearson Education, 593-611. Sonwalkar, Prasun (2006): Shooting the Messenger? Political Violence, Gujarat 2002 and the Indian News Media. In: Benjamin Cole (Ed.): Conflict, Terrorism and the Media in Asia. (Routledge Media, Culture and Social Change in Asia). London: Routledge, 82-98. Sonwalkar, Prasun (2007): Disturbing the Banality of Journalism: Political Violence, Gujarat 2002 and the Indian News Media. In: Hillel Nossek; Annabelle Sreberny; Prasun Sonwalkar (Eds.): Media and Political Violence. Cresskill: Hampton Press, 247-268. Sowell, Kirk H. (2010, August): Promoting Jihad against China: The Turkistani Islamic Party in Arabic Jihadist Media; an Independent Report Commissioned by Sky News. URL: http://www.ahlu-sunnah.com/attachment.php?attachmentid=2319&d=1291189127 Speckhard, Anne (2011, September): Battling the "University of Jihad": An Evidence Based Ideological Program to Counter Militant Jihadi Groups Active on the Internet. In: Laurie Fenstermacher; Todd Leventhal (Eds.): Countering Violent Extremism: Scientific Methods & Strategies. Topical Strategic Multi-Layer Assessment and Air Force Research Laboratory Multi-Disciplinary White Paper in Support of Counter-Terrorism and Counter-Wmd, 164-175. URL: http://www.nsiteam.com/pubs/U_Counter%20Violent%20Extremism%20Final_Approved %20for%20Public%20Release_28Oct11v3.pdf Spence, Keith (2012): Suicide Terrorism: Media Representations and Strategic Communication. In: Kenan Tokgöz (Ed.): Enhancing Cooperation in Defence against Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 99): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 81-104. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-61499-103-8-81 Spence, Patric R. et al. (2006): Gender and Age Effects on Information-Seeking after 9/11. Communication Research Reports, 23(3), 217-223. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08824090600796435 S244 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Spencer, Alexander (2011): "Bild dir Deine Meinung. Die metaphorische Konstruktion des Terrorismus in den Medien". Zeitschrift für Internationale Beziehungen, 18(1), 47-76. URL: http://www.gsi.unimuenchen.de/personen/wiss_mitarbeiter/spencer/publ_spencer/spencer_2011_zib.pdf Spencer, Alexander (2012, March): Lessons Learnt: Terrorism and the Media. AHRC Public Policy [Report] Series, No 4. URL: http://www.ahrc.ac.uk/News-andEvents/Publications/Documents/Lessons-Learnt-Terrorism-and-the-Media.pdf Spencer, Alexander (2012, July): The Social Construction of Terrorism: Media, Metaphors and Policy Implications. Journal of International Relations and Development, 15(3), 393-419. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/jird.2012.4 Spencer, Jenny S. (2012): Terrorized by the War on Terror: Mark Ravenhill's Shoot / Get Treasure / Repeat. In: Jenny S. Spencer (Ed.): Political and Protest Theatre after 9/11: Patriotic Dissent. (Routledge Advances in Theatre and Performance Studies, Vol. 21). New York: Routledge, 6378. Spencer, Graham (2005): The Gulf War, the "War on Terror" and Iraq. In: The Media and Peace: From Vietnam to the "War on Terror". Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 142-164. Spencer, Metta (2007): The Oxygen of Terrorists. Media Development, 3/2007. URL: http://www.waccglobal.org/en/20073-media-and-terror/468-The-oxygen-of-terrorists.html Spigel, Lynn (2004, June): Entertainment Wars: Television Culture after 9/11. American Quarterly, 56(2), 235-270. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1353/aq.2004.0026 URL: https://netfiles.uiuc.edu/rfouche/www/readings/spigel.pdf Spratt, Meg; Peterson, April; Lagos, Taso (2005): Of Photographs and Flags: Uses and Perceptions of an Iconic Image before and after September 11, 2001. Popular Communication, 3(2), 117136. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15405710pc0302_3 S245 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Sreberny, Annabelle; Sonwalker, Prasum (2003): Media, Violence and Terrorism in Europe. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 107-114. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Stahl, Enno (2010): Schleyer – Terror und Literatur: Ein Gewaltakt und seine literarisch-kritischen Repräsentationen bei Friedrich Christian Delius, Peter Jürgen Boock und Rainald Goetz. In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 99. Stahl, Roger (2006): Have you Played the War on Terror? Critical Studies in Media Communication, 23(2), 112-130. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/07393180600714489 URL: http://laurier.communicationstudies.ca/files/stahl_played_war.pdf Stahl, Roger (2010): The 9/11 Rupture and beyond. In: Militainment, Inc.: War, Media, and Popular Culture. New York: Routledge, 38-42. St.Amant, Kirk (2008): International Outsourcing, Personal Data, and Cyber Terrorism: Approaches for Oversight. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 112-119. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-9915.ch015 Stan, Mariana (2010): Islamic Terrorism in Europe. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 41-52. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-41 Stan, Mariana; Vlădescu, Andrei (2010): The Islamist Propaganda on Women and Children Web Sites. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Hu- S246 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement man and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 93-103. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-93 Stanton, John J. (2002, February): Terror in Cyberspace: Terrorists Will Exploit and Widen the Gap Between Governing Structures and the Public. American Behavioral Scientist, 45(6), 10171032. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764202045006006 Steel, Jayne (1998): Vampira: Representations of the Irish Female Terrorist. Irish Studies Review, 6(3), 273-284. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09670889808455612 Stehle, Maria (2007): "The Whole World is in Uproar": Discourses of Fear, Instability, and Global Change in West German Media, 1977-1980. German Politics and Society, 25(3), 25-41. URL: http://www.ingentaconnect.com/content/berghahn/gerpol/2007/00000025/00000003/art00002 Stein, George J. (2002): Information War – Cyberwar – Netwar. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 5. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 119-130. Steinberg, Guido (2012, October): Die Elif-Media-Informationsgruppe und die Deutschen Taliban Mujahidin. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 56-66. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studiende/swp-studien-detail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html Steinberg, Guido (2012, October): Die Globale Islamische Medienfront (GIMF) und ihre Nachfolger. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 23-31. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studien-de/swpstudien-detail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html Steinberg, Guido (2012, October): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine Einführung. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 7-22. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studien-de/swp-studiendetail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html S247 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Steinberg, Guido (2012, October): Schlussfolgerungen und Empfehlungen. In: Guido Steinberg (Ed.): Jihadismus und Internet: Eine deutsche Perspektive. SWP-Studie S 23, 89-93. URL: http://www.swp-berlin.org/de/publikationen/swp-studien-de/swp-studiendetail/article/jihadismus_und_internet.html Steinseifer, Martin (2006): Terrorismus als Medienereignis im Herbst 1977: Strategien, Dynamiken, Darstellungen, Deutungen. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate; Heinz-Gerhard Haupt (Eds.): Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik: Medien, Staat und Subkulturen in den 1970er Jahren. Frankfurt: Campus Verlag, 351-381. URL: http://www.zeitgeschichteonline.de/portals/_rainbow/documents/pdf/raf/steinseifer_terr_med.pdf Stempel, Carl; Hargrove, Thomas; Stempel III, Guido H. (2007, June): Media Use, Social Structure, and Belief in 9/11 Conspiracy Theories. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 84(2), 353-372. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900708400210 URL: http://site.iugaza.edu.ps/tissa/files/2010/02/MEDIA_USE,_SOCIAL_STRUCTURE.pdf Stempel III, Guido H.; Hargrove, Thomas (2002): Media Sources of Information and Attitudes about Terrorism. In: Bradley S. Greenberg (Ed.): Communication and Terrorism: Public and Media Responses to 9/11. Creskill: Hampton Press, 17-26. Stempel III, Guido H.; Hargrove, Thomas (2005): Newspapers Played Major Role in Terrorism Coverage. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 187-190. Stenersen, Anne (2007, September): Chem-Bio Cyber-Class: Assessing Jihadist Chemical and Biological Manuals. Jane’s Intelligence Review, 19(9), 8-13. URL: https://docs.google.com/viewer? a=v&pid=sites&srcid=ZGVmYXVsdGRvbWFpbnxqaWhhZGlzbXN0dWRpZXNuZXR8Z3g6 NWY3NDM4M2YyMDdmNDI1OQ Stenersen, Anne (2008): The Internet: A Virtual Training Camp? Terrorism and Political Violence, 20(2), 215-233. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550801920790 S248 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Stephens, Ralph Eugene (1998): Chapter 11: Cyber-Biotech Terrorism: Going High Tech in the 21st Century. In: Harvey W. Kushner (Ed.): The Future of Terrorism: Violence in the New Millennium. Thousand Oaks: SAGE, 195-207. Stepinska, Agnieszka (2009): 9/11 and the Transformation of Globalized Media Events. In: Nick Couldry; Andreas Hepp; Friedrich Krotz (Eds.): Media Events in a Global Age. London: Routledge, 203-216. Stern, Jeffrey (2009): Psychoanalysis, Terror and the Theater of Cruelty. International Journal of Psychoanalytic Self Psychology, 4(2), 181-211. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15551020902730281 Steuter, Erin (1990): Understanding the Media/Terrorism Relationship: An Analysis of Ideology and the News in Time Magazine. Political Communication, 7(4), 257-278. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1990.9962902 Steuter, Erin (2010, August): "The Vermin have Struck Again": Dehumanizing the Enemy in post 9/11 Media Representations. Media, War & Conflict, 3(2), 152-167. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635210360082 Steuter, Erin; Wills, Deborah (2008, Spring): Infestation and Eradication: Political Cartoons and Exterminationist Rhetoric in the War on Terror. Global Media Journal: Mediterranean Edition, 3(1), 11-23. URL: http://globalmedia.emu.edu.tr/images/stories/ALL_ARTICLES/2008/spring2008/issues/2.%20 Political%20cartoons%20and%20exterminationist%20rhetoric.pdf Steuter, Erin; Wills, Deborah (2009): Discourses of Dehumanization: Enemy Construction and Canadian Media Complicity in the Framing of the War on Terror. Global Media Journal: Canadian Edition, 2(2), 7-24. URL: http://www.gmj.uottawa.ca/0902/v2i2_steuter%20and %20wills_abstract.html S249 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Stevens, Tim (2009): Regulating the "Dark Web": How a Two-Fold Approach can Tackle Peerto-Peer Radicalisation. The RUSI Journal, 154(2), 28-33. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03071840902965687 Stevens, Tim (2010, July): New Media and Counter-Narrative Strategies. In: Eelco J. A. M. Kessels (Ed.): Countering Violent Extremist Narratives. The Hague: National Coordinator for Counterterrorism (NCTb), 112-123. URL: http://english.nctb.nl/Images/Countering%20Violent %20Extremist%20Narratives%20-%202_tcm92-259489.pdf Stevens, Tim; Neumann, Peter R. (2009, January 28): Countering Online Radicalisation: A Strategy for Action. ICSR Policy Report. URL: http://icsr.info/2010/03/the-challenge-of-onlineradicalisation-a-strategy-for-action Stewart, M. Kathleen; Stewart, Charles (2006): Chapter 189: Computer and Electronic Terrorism and EMS. In: Gregory R. Ciottone (Ed.): Disaster Medicine. Philadelphia: Mosby, 921-925. Stohl, Cynthia; Stohl, Michael (2007, May): Networks of Terror: Theoretical Assumptions and Pragmatic Consequences. Communication Theory, 17(2), 93-124. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1468-2885.2007.00289.x Stohl, Cynthia; Stohl, Michael (2011, September): Secret Agencies: The Communicative Constitution of a Clandestine Organization. Organization Studies, 32(9), 1197-1215. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0170840611410839 Stohl, Michael (2006): Cyber Terrorism: A Clear and Present Danger, the Sum of all Fears, Breaking Point or Patriot Games? Crime, Law and Social Change, 46(4-5), 223-238. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s10611-007-9061-9 Stöhr, Jürgen (2010): "Herr Richter!" In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 19782008. Heidelberg: Winter, 127-150. S250 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Storer, Cynthia (2011): Working with Al-Qaeda Documents: An Analyst's View before 9/11. In: Lorry M. Fenner; Mark Stout; Jessica L. Goldings (Eds.): 9.11 Ten Years Later: Insights on alQaeda's Past & Future through Captured Records: Conference Proceedings. Washington, D.C.: Johns Hopkins University Center for Advanced Governmental Studies, 41-52. URL: http://issuu.com/johnshopkinsaap/docs/gov1220_ndu-final-issuu? mode=window&viewMode=doublePage Storin, Matthew V. (2002): While America Slept: Coverage of Terrorism from 1993 to September 11, 2001. The Joan Shorenstein Center on the Press, Politics and Public Policy Working Paper Series, #2002-7. URL: http://shorensteincenter.org/wpcontent/uploads/2012/03/2002_07_storin.pdf Stroud, Natalie Jomini; Sparrow, Bartholomew H. (2011): Assessing Public Opinion after 9/11 and before the Iraq War. International Journal of Public Opinion Research, 23(2), 148-168. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/ijpor/edr008 Strüver, Anke (2008, February): Spatialising Terrorist Networks: Geopolitical Narratives and their Representations in German Print Media after 9/11. Tijdschrift voor economische en sociale geografie, 99(1), 125-130. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1467-9663.2008.00444.x Stutzer, Alois; Zehnder, Michael (2012): Is Camera Surveillance an Effective Measure of Counterterrorism? Defence and Peace Economics. Advance Online Publication. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10242694.2011.650481 URL: http://www.wwz.unibas.ch/fileadmin/wwz/redaktion/wipo/Alois_Stutzer/Stutzer&Zehnder_CC TV&Terrorism_RevOct2011.pdf Suliman, Aktham (2007): Die Rolle der Medien und Medienstrategien nach dem 11. September 2001. In: Österreichisches Studienzentrum für Frieden und Konfliktlösung (Ed.): Gute Medien – böser Krieg? Medien am schmalen Grat zwischen Cheerleadern des Militärs und Friedensjournalismus. (Dialog, Vol. 52). Wien: LIT-Verlag, 117-123. Sungur, Nevin (2007): Reporting from War Zones and its Challenges. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO SciS251 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement ence for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 125-128. Surette, Ray; Hansen, Kelly; Noble, Greg (2009): Measuring Media Oriented Terrorism. Journal of Criminal Justice, 37(4), 360-370. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.jcrimjus.2009.06.011 URL: http://www2.cohpa.ucf.edu/crim.jus/documents/Surettemeasuringmediaorientedterrorism.pdf Svete, Uroš (2006): The Role of Internet in the "War" against Terrorism – Threatening Privacy or an Ensuring Mechanism (National) Security (the Slovene Perspective). Politics in Central Europe, 2(2), 71-82. URL: http://www.politicsince.eu/documents/file/2006_2007.pdf Swain, Kristen Alley (2007, June): Outrage Factors and Explanations in News Coverage of the Anthrax Attacks. Journalism & Mass Communication Quarterly, 84(2), 335-352. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/107769900708400209 Switzer, Les (2004): Mediating Religion in the American-Sponsored War on Terrorism. Ecquid Novi: African Journalism Studies, 25(2), 338-346. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/02560054.2004.9653302 Sylvester, Judith; Huffman, Suzanne (2011): Radio's Role: First you go into High Gear, and then you Cry. In: Ralph Izard; Jay Perkins (Eds.): Lessons from Ground Zero: Media Response to Terror. New Brunswick: Transaction Publishers, 99-112. #T Taber, Kevin (2008, December): The Martyr and the Media: The Relationship between Terrorists and the Global Media. International Affairs Journal, 12/2008. URL: http://www.davisiaj.org/? p=88 Tait, Sue (2008): Pornographies of Violence? Internet Spectatorship on Body Horror. Critical Studies in Media Communication, 25(1), 91-111. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/15295030701851148 S252 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Takacs, Stacy (2010): The Contemporary Politics of the Western Form: Bush, Saving Jessica Lynch, and Deadwood. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 153-166. Talihärm, Anna-Maria (2010): Cyberterrorism: In Theory or in Practice? Defence Against Terrorism Review, 3(2), 59-74. URL: http://www.tmmm.tsk.tr/publications/datr6/DATR_Fall2010_.pdf Tan, Eugene K. B. (2007): Norming "Moderation" in an "Iconic Target": Public Policy and the Regulation of Religious Anxieties in Singapore. Terrorism and Political Violence, 19(4), 443-462. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550701590610 Tan, Zoe C. W. (1988, August): Media Publicity and Insurgent Terrorism: A Twenty-Year Balance Sheet. International Communication Gazette, 42(1), 3-32. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/001654928804200101 Tan, Zoe C. W. (1989, December): The Role of Media in Insurgent Terrorism: Issues and Perspectives. International Communication Gazette, 44(3), 191-215. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/001654928904400303 Tanrisever, Oktay F. (2007): Mass Media and the Internal and External Dimensions of the Terrorist Threats to the Stability of the Caucasus. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 141-151. Tatham, Steve (2007): Losing the Information War in Iraq: The Dynamics between Terrorism, Public Opinion and the Media. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): The Media: The Terrorists' Battlefield. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 17). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 29-38. Tawil-Souri, Helga (2012): The "War on Terror" in Arab Media. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 241-254. S253 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Taylor, Laramie D. (2012): Death and Television: Terror Management Theory and Themes of Law and Justice on Television. Death Studies, 36(4), 340-359. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/07481187.2011.553343 Taylor, Max; Ramsay, Gilbert (2010, July): Violent Radical Content and the Relationship between Ideology and Behaviour: Do Counter-Narratives Matter? In: Eelco J. A. M. Kessels (Ed.): Countering Violent Extremist Narratives. The Hague: National Coordinator for Counterterrorism (NCTb), 94-111. URL: http://english.nctb.nl/Images/Countering%20Violent%20Extremist %20Narratives%20-%202_tcm92-259489.pdf Taylor, Philip M. (2003): "We Know where you are": Psychological Operations Media during Enduring Freedom. In: Daya Kishan Thussu; Des Freedman (Eds.): War and the Media: Reporting Conflict 24/7. London: SAGE, 101-114. Taylor, Philip M. (2004): The World Wide Web Goes to War: From Kosovo to the "War" against Terrorism. In: David Gauntlett; Ross Horsley (Eds.): Web.studies. (2nd ed.). London: Arnold, 230-242. Taylor, Philip M. (2008, April): Can the Information War on Terror be Won? A Polemical Essay. Media, War & Conflict, 1(1), 118-124. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1750635207087632 URL: http://www.uk.sagepub.com/martin3study/articles/Taylor.pdf Tehranian, John (2009, February): The Last Minstrel Show? Racial Profiling, the War on Terrorism and the Mass Media. Connecticut Law Review, 41(3), 781-825. URL: http://archive.connecticutlawreview.org/documents/Volume41Issue3.pdf Tekwani, Shyam (2006, January): The LTTE’s Online Network and its Implications for Regional Security. RSIS Working Paper Series, No. 104. URL: http://www.rsis.edu.sg/publications/WorkingPapers/WP104.pdf S254 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Tekwani, Shyam (2007): Online Networks of Terrorist Groups and their Implications for Security: A Case Study of Sri Lanka’s Liberation Tigers of Tamil Eelam. In: Indrajit Banerjee (Ed.): The Internet and Governance in Asia: A Critical Reader. Singapore: Asian Media Information and Communication Centre (AMIC), 173-189. Terell, Robert L.; Ross, Kristina (1988, August): Terrorism, Censorship and the U.S. Press Corps. International Communication Gazette, 42(1), 33-51. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/001654928804200102 Theberge, Leonard; Alexander, Yonah (1984): Terrorism and the Media in the 1980s (Conference Report). Political Communication, 2(3), 283-331. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1984.9962767 Theohary, Catherine A.; Rollins, John (2011): Terrorist Use of the Internet: Information Operations in Cyberspace. International Journal of Terrorism and Political Hot Spots, 6(4), Article 4. Theohary, Catherine A.; Rollins, John (2011, March 8): Terrorist Use of the Internet: Information Operations in Cyberspace. CRS Report for Congress R41674. URL: http://www.au.af.mil/au/awc/awcgate/crs/r41674.pdf Theohary, Catherine A.; Rollins, John (2012): Terrorist Use of the Internet: Information Operations in Cyberspace. In: Matteo Conti; Roberto Bovér (Eds.): Countering Terrorism: U.S. Efforts and Country Cooperation. (Terrorism, Hot Spots and Conflict-Related Issues). New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 29-46. Theveßen, Elmar (2007): Die Nutzung der Medien durch Terroristen. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 59-73. Thobani, Sunera (2009, December): Slumdogs and Superstars: Negotiating the Culture of Terror. Studies in South Asian Film & Media, 1(2), 227-248. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/safm.1.2.227/1 S255 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Thomas, Timothy L. (2002, January/February): Information-Age "De-Terror-ence". Military Review, 82(1), 32-37. URL: http://ics-www.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/501/thomas.pdf Thomas, Timothy L. (2003): Al Qaeda and the Internet: The Danger of "Cyberplanning". Parameters, 33(1), 112-123. URL: http://www.carlisle.army.mil/usawc/Parameters/Articles/03spring/thomas.pdf Thomas, Timothy L. (2006): Cyber Mobilization: A Growing Counterinsurgency Campaign. IO Sphere, 2006/Summer, 23-28. URL: http://www.au.af.mil/infoops/iosphere/iosphere_summer06_thomas.pdf Thomas, Timothy L. (2007): Cyber Mobilization: The Neglected Aspect of Information Operations and Counterinsurgency Doctrine. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Countering Terrorism and Insurgency in the 21st Century. (Vol. 1: Strategic and Tactical Considerations). Westport: Praeger Security International, 358-379. URL: http://www.dtic.mil/dtic/tr/fulltext/u2/a471028.pdf Thomas, Timothy L. (2009, Winter): Countering Internet Extremism. IO Sphere, 2009/Winter, 1419. URL: http://www.au.af.mil/info-ops/iosphere/09winter/iosphere_win09_thomas.pdf Thompson, Robin L. (2011): Radicalization and the Use of Social Media. Journal of Strategic Security, 4(4), 167-190. URL: http://scholarcommons.usf.edu/jss/vol4/iss4/9 Thussu, Daya Kishan (2006): Televising the "War on Terrorism": The Myths of Morality. In: Anandam P. Kavoori; Todd Fraley (Eds.): Media, Terrorism, and Theory: A Reader. (Critical Media Studies: Institutions, Politics, and Culture). Lanham: Rowman and Littlefield, 3-18. Thussu, Daya Kishan (2009): Turning Terrorism into a Soap Opera. British Journalism Review, 20(1), 13-18. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0956474809104198 Tickell, Alex (2010): Excavating Histories of Terror: Thugs, Sovereignty, and the Colonial Sublime. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 177-201. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch7 S256 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Tiffen, Rodney (2006): Contested Narratives, Ambiguous Impacts and Democratic Dilemmas: The Western News Media and the "War on Terror". Policy and Society, 25(4), 99-119. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1449-4035(06)70092-3 Tikk, Eneken; Oorn, Reet (2008): Legal and Policy Evaluation: International Coordination of Prosecution and Prevention of Cyber Terrorism. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 89-103. Tinnes, Judith (2010, November): Counting Lives in a Theater of Terror: An Analysis of Media-Oriented Hostage Takings in Iraq, Afghanistan, Pakistan and Saudi Arabia. Perspectives on Terrorism, 4(5), 3-22. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/120 Tinnes, Judith (2012, March): Premiere oder Wiederaufführung? Ein Vergleich der Kommunikationsstrategien von RAF und Al-Qaida. Jihadism online. URL: http://www.univie.ac.at/jihadism/blog/wpcontent/uploads/2012/03/Paper_AQ_Vs_RAF_JTinnes.pdf Toh, Justine (2009): "People Have Had Enough Tragedy": The Spectacle of Global Heroism in Superman Returns. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 167-186. Toh, Justine (2010): The Tools and Toys of (the) War (on Terror): Consumer Desire, Military Fetish, and Regime Change in Batman Begins. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 127-140. Tojar, Luis García (2010): 11-M: A Lesson on Greedy Journalism. International Review of Sociology, 20(1), 77-91. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/03906700903525693 URL: http://www.ucm.es/info/socvi/garciatojar/Publicaciones/11M_IRS.pdf S257 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Tokar, Luibomyr (2007): Hypermedia Communication as a Modern Means for the Creation of Terrorist and Counterterrorist Consciousness. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 105-115. Tokgöz, Kenan (2012): Terrorism and Media. In: Kenan Tokgöz (Ed.): Enhancing Cooperation in Defence against Terrorism. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 99): Amsterdam: IOS Press, 105-112. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-61499-103-8-105 Toohey, Kristine; Taylor, Tracy (2006): "Here be Dragons, Here be Savages, Here be Bad Plumbing": Australian Media Representations of Sport and Terrorism. Sport in Society, 9(1), 71-93. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17430430500355816 Torok, Robyn (2010): "Make a Bomb in your Mums Kitchen": Cyber Recruiting and Socialisation of "White Moors" and Home Grown Jihadists. In: Security Research Centre, Edith Cowan University (Ed.): Proceedings of the 1st Australian Counter Terrorism Conference, Edith Cowan University, Duxton Hotel, Perth, Western Australia, November 30 - December 2, 2010, 54-61. URL: http://igneous.scis.ecu.edu.au/proceedings/2010/actc/torok.pdf Torok, Robyn (2011): The Online Institution: Psychiatric Power as an Explanatory Model for the Normalisation of Radicalisation and Terrorism. In: Nasrullah Memon; Daniel Zeng (Eds.): EISIC 2011: 2011 European Intelligence and Security Informatics Conference, Athens, Greece, 12–14 September 2011: Proceedings. Los Alamitos: IEEE Computer Society Conference Publishing Services (CPS), 78-85. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/EISIC.2011.43 Toros, Harmonie (2009): "Terrorism" and the Media: An Interview with Fadi Ismail. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 2(1), 103-109. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150902789475 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/17539150902789475 Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2007): Jihadist Propaganda and its Audiences: A Change of Course? Perspectives on Terrorism, 1(2). URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/9/pdf S258 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2008, April 1): Terrorism and the Mass Media after Al Qaeda: A Change of Course? Athena Intelligence Journal, 3(2), 1-20. URL: http://kms1.isn.ethz.ch/serviceengine/Files/ISN/55237/ipublicationdocument_singledocument/2 460db7c-b426-42da-aa8c-4564bad26441/en/Vol+3+-+No+2+-+Art+1.pdf Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2009): Spain as an Object of Jihadist Propaganda. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 32(11), 933-952. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100903259977 Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2009, November): Maintaining the Message: How Jihadists Have Adapted to Web Disruptions. CTC Sentinel, 2(11), 22-24. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinel-Vol2Iss11.pdf Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2010): The Road to Media Jihad: The Propaganda Actions of Al Qaeda in the Islamic Maghreb. Terrorism and Political Violence, 23(1), 72-88. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2010.512839 Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2011): The Evolution of the Discourse of Al-Qaeda in the Islamic Maghreb: Themes, Countries and Individuals. Mediterranean Politics, 16(2), 279-298. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/13629395.2011.583747 Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2012): Between the Pen and the Sword: The Global Islamic Media Front in the West. Terrorism and Political Violence, 24(5), 769-786. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2011.643934 Torres Soriano, Manuel R. (2012): The Vulnerabilities of Online Terrorism. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 35(4), 263-277. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2012.656345 Torres Soriano, Manuel R.; Jordán, Javier; Horsburgh, Nicola (2006): Analysis and Evolution of the Global Jihadist Movement Propaganda. Terrorism and Political Violence, 18(3), 399-421. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550600751990 URL: http://hera.ugr.es/doi/16517003.pdf S259 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Touboul, Deborah (2005, September): Francophone Internet Forums Shed Light on Concerns and Issues of Islamists in Europe. PRISM Occasional Papers, 3(6). URL: http://www.eprism.org/images/PRISM_no_6_vol_3_-_Islamic_sites_in_French.pdf Towle, Philip (2003): 11 September 2001 and the Media. In: Thomas R. Mockaitis; Paul B. Rich (Eds.): Grand Strategy in the War against Terrorism. London: Frank Cass, 147-162. Towle, Philip (2003): 11 September 2001 and the Media. Small Wars & Insurgencies, 14(1), 151166. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09592310412331300616 Tracy, James F. (2009): Escape from 9/11: Back to the Future of the Mass Society. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 63-76. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Tranchita, Carolina (2009): Security Assessment of the Electricity Infrastructure under Terrorism. International Journal of Critical Infrastructures, 5(3), 245-264. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1504/IJCIS.2009.024873 Trevino, Melina; Kanso, Ali M.; Nelson, Richard Alan (2010, November): Islam through Editorial Lenses: How American Elite Newspapers Portrayed Muslims before and after September 11, 2001. Journal of Arab & Muslim Media Research, 3(1-2), 3-18. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jammr.3.1-2.3_1 Tsai, Flora S.; Chan, Kap Luk (2007): Detecting Cyber Security Threats in Weblogs Using Probabilistic Models. In: Christopher C. Yang et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: Pacific Asia Workshop, PAISI 2007, Chengdu, China, April 11-12, 2007: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 4430). Berlin: Springer, 46-57. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-71549-8_4 S260 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Tsekouras, George E.; Bantimaroudis, Philemon; Ross, Susan Dente (2009): A Fuzzy Logic Approach to Changing Media Frames of Arafat and Sharon: Following the Cataclysmic Events of Sept. 11, 2001. The Open Communication Journal, 3, 1-8. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.2174/1874916X00903010001 URL: http://www.benthamscience.com/open/tocommj/articles/V003/1TOCOMMJ.pdf Tsfati, Yariv; Weimann, Gabriel (2002): www.terrorism.com: Terror on the Internet. Studies in Conflict and Terrorism, 25(5), 317-332. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100290101214 URL: http://hevra.haifa.ac.il/~comm/he/files/yariv/t&w.pdf Tucker, David (2010): Jihad Dramatically Transformed? Sageman on Jihad and the Internet. Homeland Security Affairs, 6(1). URL: http://www.hsaj.org/? download&mode=dl&h&w&drm=resources%2Fvolume6%2Fissue1%2Fpdfs %2F&f=6.1.3.pdf&altf=6.1.3.pdf Tulloch, John (2005): Normalising the Unthinkable: The British Press, Torture, and the Human Rights of Terrorist Suspects. Ethical Space, 2(4), 25-32. URL: http://eprints.lincoln.ac.uk/1135/1/uoa66jt01.pdf Tulloch, John (2008): Normalising the Unthinkable: The British Press, Torture, and the Human Rights of Terrorist Suspects. In: Richard Keeble (Ed.): Communication Ethics Now. (Communication Ethics). Leicester: Troubadour Publishing, 3-18. Tulloch, John; Blood, Richard Warwick (2010): Iconic Photojournalism and Absent Images: Democratization and Memories of Terror. In: Stuart Allan (Ed.): The Routledge Companion to News and Journalism. New York: Routledge, 507-519. Tulloch, John; Blood, Richard Warwick (2012): Did 9/11 "Change Everything"? Icons out of a Clear Blue Sky. In: Icons of War and Terror: Media Images in an Age of International Risk. London: Routledge, 97-119. S261 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Tulloch, John; Blood, Richard Warwick (2012): Witnessing Terrorism in New York and London: Trauma Icons. In: Icons of War and Terror: Media Images in an Age of International Risk. London: Routledge, 165-180. Tuman, Joseph S. (2010): Mass-Mediated Images and Construction of Terrorism. In: Communicating Terror: The Rhetorical Dimensions of Terrorism. (2nd ed.). Thousand Oaks: SAGE, 179207. Tuman, Joseph S. (2010): Theories of Mass Media for Terrorism. In: Communicating Terror: The Rhetorical Dimensions of Terrorism. (2nd ed.). Thousand Oaks: SAGE, 163-178. Tusa, John (1990): The Problems of Freedom and Responsibility in Broadcasting. Terrorism and Political Violence, 2(4), 544-553. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559008427082 Tyrer, Harry W. (2002): Cyber-Terrorism. In: Tushar K. Ghosh et al. (Eds.): Science and Technology of Terrorism and Counterterrorism. (Public Administration and Public Policy, Vol. 101). New York: Marcel Dekker, 256-282. Tzanetti, Thalia (2007): Use of Media and Challenges in Countering Terrorist Rhetoric. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 231-241. #U Ubayasiri, Kasun (2004): Virtual Hostage Dramas and Real Politics. Ejournalist, 4(2). URL: http://ejournalist.com.au/v4n2/ubayasiri.pdf Ubayasiri, Kasun (2008): LTTE Narratives in Tamilnet: Independent Media or Tiger Proxy. Ejournalist, 8(2). URL: http://ejournalist.com.au/v8n2/ubayasiri.pdf U-Din, Najaum (2010, January): Mainstream Media’s Response to Radical Extremism. PIPS Paper. URL: http://san-pips.com/download.php?f=153.pdf S262 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Ugarte, Eduardo F. (2010, September): "In a Wilderness of Mirrors": The Use and Abuse of the "Abu Sayyaf" Label in the Philippines. South East Asia Research, 18(3), 373-413. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.5367/sear.2010.0002 United Nations Counterterrorism Implementation Task Force (CTITF) (2011, May): Countering the Use of the Internet for Terrorist Purposes – Legal and Technical Aspects. (Working Group Compendium). CTITF Publication Series, 10-71325. URL: http://www.un.org/en/terrorism/ctitf/pdfs/ctitf_interagency_wg_compendium_legal_technical_a spects_web.pdf United Nations Counterterrorism Implementation Task Force (CTITF) (2012, March): Use of the Internet to Counter the Appeal of Extremist Violence: Conference Summary & Follow-up/ Recommendations. Perspectives on Terrorism, 6(1), 80-91. URL: http://www.terrorismanalysts.com/pt/index.php/pot/article/view/CTITF-Use-of-Internet United Nations Office on Drugs and Crime (UNODC); United Nations Counterterrorism Implementation Task Force (CTITF) (2012, October): The Use of the Internet for Terrorist Purposes. UNODC Report. URL: http://www.unodc.org/unodc/en/frontpage/2012/October/unodc-launchesreport-to-assist-member-states-to-counter-the-use-of-the-internet-for-terrorist-purposes.html United States Senate Commitee on Homeland Security and Governmental Affairs (HSGAC) (2008, May 8): Violent Islamist Extremism, The Internet, and the Homegrown Terrorist Threat. HSGAC Majority & Minority Staff Report. URL: http://hsgac.senate.gov/public/_files/IslamistReport.pdf United States Senate Commitee on Homeland Security and Governmental Affairs (HSGAC) (2012, February): Zachary Chesser: A Case Study in Online Islamist Radicalization and its Meaning for the Threat of Homegrown Terrorism. HSGAC Majority & Minority Staff Report. URL: http://www.hsgac.senate.gov/imo/media/doc/CHESSER%20FINAL%20REPORT(1).pdf Unlu, Ali et al. (2012): The Impact of 9/11 on Information Policy in the United States: A Current Perspective on Homeland Security and Emergency Management. Journal of Applied Security Research, 7(3), 320-340. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/19361610.2012.686095 S263 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Upstone, Sara (2010): 9/11, British Muslims, and Popular Literary Fiction. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 35-44. Ürper, Dilruba Çatalbaş (2011, December): Rival Discourses on the "War on Terror": Afghanistan and Iraq Wars in the Opinion Columns of Liberal and Islamist Newspapers in Turkey. Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 275-279. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427502 #V Valdeón, Roberto A. (2009, March): Discursive Constructions of Terrorism in Spain: Anglophone and Spanish Media Representations of Eta. International Journal of Applied Linguistics, 19(1), 66-83. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1473-4192.2009.00217.x Valeri, Lorenzo (2000): Securing Internet Society: Toward an International Regime for Information Assurance. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 23(2), 129-146. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/105761000265566 Valeri, Lorenzo; Knights, Michael (2000): Affecting Trust: Terrorism, Internet and Offensive Information Warfare. Terrorism and Political Violence, 12(1), 15-36. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550008427547 Van Buren, Cassandra (2006): Critical Analysis of Racist Post-9/11 Web Animations. Journal of Broadcasting & Electronic Media, 50(3), 537-554. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15506878jobem5003_11 Van Horne, Sheryl L. (2009): The Language of Terror in the Media: The New York Times before and after 9/11. In: Thomas Albert Gilly; Yakov Gilinskiy; Vladimir A. Sergevnin (2009): The Ethics of Terrorism: Innovative Approaches from an International Perspective (17 Lectures). Springfield: Charles C. Thomas, 51-57. S264 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Van Leuven, Nancy (2009): From Terrorism to Tornadoes: The Roles of P.R. and Media in Crisis Communication. IPR Paper. URL: http://www.instituteforpr.org/topics/pr-media-crisiscommunication Van Veeren, Elspeth (2009): Interrogating 24: Making Sense of US Counter-Terrorism in the Global War on Terrorism. New Political Science, 31(3), 361-384. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/07393140903105991 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/07393140903105991 Van Veeren, Elspeth (2011, October): Captured by the Camera's Eye: Guantánamo and the Shifting Frame of the Global War on Terror. Review of International Studies, 37(4), 1721-1749. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1017/S0260210510001208 van Zoonen, Liesbet; Vis, Farida; Mihelj, Sabina (2011, December): YouTube Interactions between Agonism, Antagonism and Dialogue: Video Responses to the Anti-Islam Film Fitna. New Media & Society, 13(8), 1283-1300. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1461444811405020 URL: http://www.lboro.ac.uk/media/wwwlboroacuk/content/socialsciences/downloads/PDF2%20Ne w%20media%20and%20society.pdf Varis, Tapio (2002): The Media in Postmodern War and Terrorism. International Journal of Humanities and Peace, 18(1). URL: http://www.proessay.com/argumentative-essay-topics-andconroversial-essay/media-in-wartime/the-media-in-postmodern-war-and-terrorism..html Varisco, Daniel Martin (2002, September): September 11: Participant Webservation of the "War on Terrorism". American Anthropologist, 104(3), 934-938. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1525/aa.2002.104.3.934 Vartanova, Elena; Smirnova, Olga (2012): Covering Terrorism in Russian Media. In: Des Freedman; Daya Kishan Thussu (Eds.): Media and Terrorism: Global Perspectives. London: SAGE, 184-205. Vatis, Michael (2006, Fall): The Next Battlefield. Harvard International Review, 28(3), 56-61. S265 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Vela, David (2006): Terror through the Eyes of Latin American Novelists. Peace Review: A Journal of Social Justice, 18(1), 7-15. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10402650500509406 URL: http://ww2.shoreline.edu/seanrody/Terror%20Through%20the%20Eyes%20of%20Latin %20American%20Novelists.pdf Vélez, Jorge Bonilla; Gómez, Camilo Tamayo (2003): Media, Violence and Terrorism in Latin America. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 115-118. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Vengerfeldt, Pille (2002): The September 11 Attacks on the US in the New Interactive Media Space in Estonia. Prometheus, 20(3), 229-236. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08109020210141362 Venzke, Ben (2004, July 10): Al-Qaeda in the Arabian Peninsula: Shooting, Hostage Taking, Kidnapping Wave – May/June 2004. (AQAP-SHK-WMJ04). v1.1. URL: http://www.intelcenter.com/AQAP-SHK-PUB-v1-1.pdf Versluys, Kristiaan (2009): 9/11 in the Novel. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 141-150. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Vest, Charles M. (2006, June): Openness and Globalization in Higher Education: The Age of the Internet, Terrorism, and Opportunity. CSHE Research and Occasional Papers Series, CSHE.7.06. URL: http://cshe.berkeley.edu/publications/docs/ROP.Vest.Openness.7.06.pdf Vidmar Horvat, Ksenija (2010): Multiculturalism in Time of Terrorism: Re-Imagining Europe Post9/11. Cultural Studies, 24(5), 747-766. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09502380903549855 S266 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Vidmar Horvat, Ksenija; Mancevič, Denis (2010): Global News, Local Views: Slovene Media Reporting of 9/11. Journal of Media Sociology, 2(1-4), 145-163. URL: http://www.marquettejournals.org/images/Vol_2_2010_fixed.pdf Vincent, Jonathan (2010): Left Behind in America: The Army of One at the End of History. In: Jeff Birkenstein; Anna Froula; Karen Randell (Eds.): Reframing 9/11: Film, Popular Culture and the "War on Terror". New York: Continuum, 45-56. Vladescu, Andrei (2010): Silent Jihad: Dissimulating Fundamentalist Messages in Promoting Islamic Values. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 61-70. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-61 Volf, Irina (2009): Hizb ut-Tahrir in the Press: A Transnational Perspective on what Made the Group Newsworthy in Germany, Great Britain, and Kyrgyzstan in 2002-07. conflict & communication online, 11(1). URL: http://www.cco.regener-online.de/2012_1/pdf/volf.pdf Volpi, Frederic (2007): Securitizing Terrorism in Europe: Representing Islam and North Africa in Policies and the Media. ESRC End of Award Report, RES-223-25-0056-A. URL: http://www2.warwick.ac.uk/fac/soc/pais/research/newsecurity/researchprojects/securitizing_ter rorism_in_europe_representing_islam_and_north_africa_in_policies_and_the_media.pdf Vultee, Fred (2006, October): "Fatwa on the Bunny": News Language and the Creation of Meaning about the Middle East. Journal of Communication Inquiry, 30(4), 319-336. http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0196859906290919 Vultee, Fred; Wilkins, Lee (2004, September): News as a Public Service: Thinking through Coverage of Disasters and Terrorism. Missouri School of Journalism White Paper. URL: http://disasterreporting.missouri.edu/resources/pubs/news.pdf S267 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement #W Wade, Lindsey (2003): Terrorism and the Internet: Resistance in the Information Age. Knowledge, Technology & Policy, 16(1), 104-127. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/s12130-003-1018-4 Wagemakers, Joas (2011): Al-Qa‘ida's Editor: Abu Jandal al-Azdi's Online Jihadi Activism. Politics, Religion & Ideology, 12(4), 355-369. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/21567689.2011.624400 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/21567689.2011.624400 Wagner, Abraham R. (2005): Terrorism and the Internet: Use and Abuse. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Fighting Terror in Cyberspace. Singapur: World Scientific, 1-28. Wagner, Abraham R.; Fisch, Zvi (2009): Cyber-Terrorism: Preparation and Response. In: Shmuel C. Shapira; Jeffrey S. Hammond; Leonard A. Cole (Eds.): Essentials of Terror Medicine. New York: Springer, 255-268. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-0-387-09412-0_15 Wagner, Travis (2008): Reframing Ecotage as Ecoterrorism: News and the Discourse of Fear. Environmental Communication, 2(1), 25-39. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17524030801945617 Waldmann, Peter (2005): Terrorismus und öffentliche Wahrnehmung. In: Jörgen Klußmann (Ed.): Terrorismus und Medien – eine komplexe Beziehung. Bonn: Evangelische Akademie im Rheinland, 9-20. Waldmann, Peter (2012): Thesen: Terrorismus und Kommunikation. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 49-64. Walker, Clive (2006): Cyber-Terrorism: Legal Principle and Law in the United Kingdom. Penn State Law Review, 110(3), 625-665. URL: http://www.court21.ac.uk/docs/penn07d.pdf S268 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Walker, Joyce (2007): Narratives in the Database: Memorializing September 11th Online. Computers and Composition, 24(2), 121-153. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.compcom.2007.02.005 URL: http://joemoxley.org/sites/Joe_Moxley/research/AwardWinningArticles/Walker,Joyce(Narrative s%20in%20the%20database%20Memorializing).pdf Walker, M. Karen (2009): New Media's Influence on the Assessment of Publicly Communicated Terrorist Threats. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Influence Warfare: How Terrorists and Governments Fight to Shape Perceptions in a War of Ideas. Westport: Praeger Security International, 75-93. Walsh, James Igoe (2010, December 7): Media Attention to Terrorist Attacks: Causes and Consequences. IHSS Research Brief. URL: http://sites.duke.edu/ihss/files/2011/12/IHSS_ResearchBrief_Walsh.pdf Walsh, Lucas; Barbara, Julien (2006): Speed, International Security, and "New War" Coverage in Cyberspace. Journal of Computer-Mediated Communication, 12(1), 189-208. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1083-6101.2006.00321.x Wang, Yanping et al. (2006, December): Association of Direct Exposure to Terrorism, Media Exposure to Terrorism, and other Trauma with Emotional and Behavioral Problems in Preschool Children. Annals of the New York Academy of Sciences, 1094, 363-368. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1196/annals.1376.051 Wanta, Wayne; Hu, Yu-Wei (1993): The Agenda-Setting Effects of International News Coverage: An Examination of Differing News Frames. International Journal of Public Opinion Research, 5(3), 250-264. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/ijpor/5.3.250 Wardlaw, Grant (1981, November): Terrorism and the Media: A Symbiotic Relationship. Media International Australia, 22, 49-55. S269 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Warner, Sara (2012): The Maladapted Hothead Paisan: A Lesbian Comedy of Terrors. In: Jenny S. Spencer (Ed.): Political and Protest Theatre after 9/11: Patriotic Dissent. (Routledge Advances in Theatre and Performance Studies, Vol. 21). New York: Routledge, 219-234. Warren, Chris (2003): Journalism and the War on Terrorism. In: S. T. Kwame Boafo; John Maguire; Sylvie Coudray (Eds.): Media, Violence and Terrorism. (Proceedings of the Conference "Terrorism and Media", Manila, Philippines, 2-3 May 2002). Paris: United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO), 17-38. URL: http://portal.unesco.org/ci/fr/files/16488/10897334065media_violence_and_terrorism.pdf/medi a%2Bviolence%2Band%2Bterrorism.pdf Warren, M. J. (2007): Hackers and Cyber Terrorists. In: Marian Quigley (Ed.): Encyclopedia of Information Ethics and Security. Hershey: IGI Global, 304-311. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-987-8.ch046 Warren, M. J. (2008): Terrorism and the Internet. In: Lech J. Janczewski; Andrew M. Colarik (Eds.): Cyber Warfare and Cyber Terrorism. Hershey: IGI Global, 42-49. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/978-1-59140-991-5.ch006 Warshel, Yael (2009, Spring): Broadening the Discourse about Martyrdom Television Programming. Arab Media & Society, 8. URL: http://www.arabmediasociety.com/?article=710 Watney, Murdoch (2007): The Legal Conflict between Security and Privacy in Addressing Crime and Terrorism on the Internet. In: Pohlmann, Norbert; Reimer, Helmut; Schneider, Wolfgang (Eds.): ISSE/SECURE 2007 Securing Electronic Business Processes: Highlights of the Information Security Solutions Europe/SECURE 2007 Conference. Wiesbaden: Vieweg, 26-37. Watson, Hayley (2012): Dependent Citizen Journalism and the Publicity of Terror. Terrorism and Political Violence, 24(3), 465-482. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2011.636464 S270 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Webb, Ken (2006): Information Terrorism in the New Security Environment. In: Craig Valli; Andrew Woodward (Eds.): Proceedings of the 7th Australian Information Warfare and Security Conference, Edith Cowan University, Perth Western Australia, 4th – 5th December, 2006, 185197. URL: http://igneous.scis.ecu.edu.au/proceedings/2006/iwar/Proceedings_IWAR_2006.pdf Webb, Ken (2009): Security Implications for Management from the Onset of Information Terrorism. In: Kenneth J. Knapp (Ed.): Cyber Security and Global Information Assurance: Threat Analysis and Response Solutions. Hershey: IGI Global, 97-117. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/9781-60566-326-5.ch005 Weber, Cynthia (2003): The Media, the "War on Terrorism", and the Circulation of Non-Knowledge. In: Daya Kishan Thussu; Des Freedman (Eds.): War and the Media: Reporting Conflict 24/7. London: SAGE, 190-199. Weber, Rolf H.; Weber, Romana (2009): International Ordre Public for Terrorism-Related Internet Content? Humboldt Forum Recht, 4/2009, 52-74. URL: http://www.humboldt-forumrecht.de/deutsch/4-2009/index.html Weichert, Stephan Alexander (2004, June 21): Zwischen Sensationslust und Chronistenpflicht: Journalismus in den Fängen des Terrors. Medienheft. URL: http://www.medienheft.ch/kritik/bibliothek/k22_WeichertStephanAlexander.html Weichert, Stephan Alexander (2007): Die Propaganda der Tat – Zur Kommunikationsstrategie des modernen Aufmerksamkeitsterrorismus. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 83-98. Weichert, Stephan Alexander (2008): Terror and the Internet. Journal of Broadcasting & Electronic Media, 52(1), 156-157. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08838150701821039 Weichert, Stephan Alexander (2011): Solange gesendet wird, ist die Welt noch in Ordnung: Das Fernsehen in Krisenzeiten am Beispiel des 11. Septembers. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der S271 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 791-806. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_38 Weichert, Stephan Alexander; Elter, Andreas (2011): Terrorismus 2.0: Über die Propaganda der Tat im digitalen Zeitalter. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 946-967. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_46 Weichert, Stephan Alexander; Kramp, Leif; Matschke, Alexander (2011): "Stellen Sie sich tot, falls Sie verwundet werden": Wie Krisenjournalisten über die Welt im Ausnahmezustand berichten. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 989-1009. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_48 Weimann, Gabriel (1983): The Theater of Terror: Effects of Press Coverage. Journal of Communication, 33(1), 38-45. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1460-2466.1983.tb02372.x Weimann, Gabriel (1985): Terrorists or Freedom Fighters? Labeling Terrorism in the Israeli Press. Political Communication, 2(4), 433-445. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1985.9962776 Weimann, Gabriel (1987): Conceptualizing the Effects of Mass‐Mediated Terrorism. Political Communication, 4(3), 213-216. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1987.9962823 Weimann, Gabriel (1987): Media Events: The Case of International Terrorism. Journal of Broadcasting & Electronic Media, 31(1), 21-39. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08838158709386643 Weimann, Gabriel (1990): "Redefinition of Image": The Impact of Mass-Mediated Terrorism. International Journal of Public Opinion Research, 2(1), 16-29. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1093/ijpor/2.1.16 S272 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Weimann, Gabriel (2004, March): www.terror.net: How Modern Terrorism Uses the Internet. USIP Special Report 116. URL: http://www.usip.org/publications/wwwterrornet-how-modernterrorism-uses-internet Weimann, Gabriel (2004, December): Cyberterrorism: How Real is the Threat? USIP Special Report 119. URL: http://www.usip.org/publications/cyberterrorism-how-real-threat Weimann, Gabriel (2005): Cyberterrorism: The Sum of All Fears? Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 28(2), 129-149. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100590905110 URL: http://www.tandfonline.com/doi/pdf/10.1080/10576100590905110 Weimann, Gabriel (2005): Terror Online: How do Terrorists use the Internet? In: Katharina von Knop; Heinrich Neisser; Martin van Creveld (Eds.): Countering Modern Terrorism: History, Current Issues and Future Threats: Proceedings of the Second International Security Conference, Berlin, 15-17 December, 2004. Gütersloh: Bertelsmann, 87-112. Weimann, Gabriel (2005): The Theater of Terror: The Psychology of Terrorism and the Mass Media. Journal of Aggression, Maltreatment & Trauma, 9(3-4), 379-390. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1300/J146v09n03_08 Weimann, Gabriel (2005, Spring): How Modern Terrorism Uses the Internet. The Journal of International Security Affairs, 8. URL: http://www.securityaffairs.org/issues/2005/08/weimann.php Weimann, Gabriel (2006): Terrorist Dot Com: Using the Internet for Terrorist Recruitment and Mobilization. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): The Making of a Terrorist. (Vol. 1. Recruitment). Westport: Praeger Security International, 53-66. Weimann, Gabriel (2006): Virtual Disputes: The Use of the Internet for Terrorist Debates. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 29(7), 623-639. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100600912258 Weimann, Gabriel (2006): Virtual Training Camps: Terrorists' Use of the Internet. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Teaching Terror: Strategic and Tactical Learning in the Terrorist World. Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield, 165-200. S273 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Weimann, Gabriel (2007): Online Terrorism – Modern Terrorists and the Internet. In: Sonja Glaab (Ed.): Medien und Terrorismus – Auf den Spuren einer symbiotischen Beziehung. (Wissenschaft & Sicherheit, Vol. 3). Berlin: Berliner Wissenschaftsverlag, 51-58. Weimann, Gabriel (2007): The Theater of Terror: Modern Terrorism and the Mass Media. In: Stephen L. Vaughn (Ed.): Routledge's Encyclopedia of American Journalism History. New York: Routledge, 527-529. Weimann, Gabriel (2007): Using the Internet for Terrorist Recruitment and Mobilization. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 47-58. Weimann, Gabriel (2007): Virtual Terrorism: How Modern Terrorists Use the Internet. In: Indrajit Banerjee (Ed.): The Internet and Governance in Asia: A Critical Reader. Singapore: Asian Media Information and Communication Centre (AMIC), 189-217. Weimann, Gabriel (2008): Cyber-Terrorism: Are we Barking at the Wrong Tree? Harvard Asia Pacific Review, 9(2), 41-46. Weimann, Gabriel (2008): Hezbollah Dot Com: Hezbollah's Online Campaign. In: Tal SamuelAzran; Dan Caspi (Eds.): New Media and Innovative Technologies. Beer Sheva: Ben-Gurion University Press, 17-38. URL: http://web.bgu.ac.il/NR/rdonlyres/34396BDB-6C0E-4931A077-697451885123/34393/Weimannedited.pdf Weimann, Gabriel (2008): The Psychology of Mass-Mediated Terrorism. American Behavioral Scientist, 52(1), 69-86. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0002764208321342 URL: http://www.udec.edu.mx/BibliotecaInvestigacion/Documentos/2009/Marzo/Com%20The %20Psychology%20of%20Mass-Mediated%20Terrorism.pdf Weimann, Gabriel (2008): WWW.AL-QAEDA: The Reliance of al-Qaeda on the Internet. In: Centre of Excellence Defence Against Terrorism (COE–DAT) (Ed.): Responses to Cyber Terrorism. S274 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 34). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 61-69. Weimann, Gabriel (2008, January): Al-Qa`ida’s Extensive Use of the Internet. CTC Sentinel, 1(2), 6-7. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2010/07/CTCSentinel-Vol1Iss2.pdf Weimann, Gabriel (2008, May 6): Mass-Media Theater. eJournal USA. URL: http://www.america.gov/st/peacesecenglish/2008/May/20080522173339SrenoD0.2942469.html Weimann, Gabriel (2008, December): How Terrorists Use the Internet to Target Children. inSITE, 1(8), 14-16. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_December_2008.pdf Weimann, Gabriel (2009): Online Training Camps for Terrorists. InSITE, 2(9), 14-18. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_Nov_2009.pdf Weimann, Gabriel (2009): Virtual Sisters: How Terrorists Target Women Online. InSITE, 2(1), 1922. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_January_2009.pdf Weimann, Gabriel (2009): When Fatwas Clash Online: Terrorist Debates on the Internet. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Influence Warfare: How Terrorists and Governments Fight to Shape Perceptions in a War of Ideas. Westport: Praeger Security International, 49-75. Weimann, Gabriel (2009, March): Terror in Cyberspace. Paper presented at the International Media & Conflict Resolution Conference, Marquette University Law School, Milwaukee, U.S., March 21, 2009. URL: http://scholarship.law.marquette.edu/mulr_conferences/mediaconflict2009/day1/14 Weimann, Gabriel (2010): Terrorism and Counterterrorism on the Internet. In: Robert Denemark (Ed.): The International Studies Encyclopedia. (Vol. 11). Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 69887005. S275 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Weimann, Gabriel (2010): Terrorist Facebook: Terrorists and Online Social Networking. In: Mark Last; Abraham Kandel (Eds.): Web Intelligence and Security: Advances in Data and Text Mining Techniques for Detecting and Preventing Terrorist Activities on the Web. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – D: Information and Communication Security, Vol. 27). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 19-29. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-611-9-19 Weimann, Gabriel (2010, Spring-Summer): Terror on Facebook, Twitter, and Youtube. The Brown Journal of World Affairs, 16(2), 45-54. URL: http://www.bjwa.org/article.php? id=E0957T6u4xbxptB39OxJir92zulpVddWGH9QInXl Weimann, Gabriel (2011): Cyber-Fatwas and Terrorism. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 34(10), 765-781. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1057610X.2011.604831 Weimann, Gabriel (2012): Lone Wolves in Cyberspace. Journal of Terrorism Research, 3(2), 75-90. URL: http://ojs.st-andrews.ac.uk/index.php/jtr/article/view/405 Weimann, Gabriel (2012): The Role of the Media in Propagating Terrorism. In: Updesh Kumar; Manas K. Mandal (Eds.): Countering Terrorism: Psychosocial Strategies. New Delhi: SAGE, 182-202. Weimann, Gabriel; Brosius, Hans-Bernd (1991): The Newsworthiness of International Terrorism. Communication Research, 18(3), 333-354. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/009365091018003003 Weimann, Gabriel; Gorder, Gabrielle Vail (2009): Al-Qaeda has Sent you a Friend Request: Terrorists Using Online Social Networking. inSITE, 2(6), 20-25. URL: http://sitemultimedia.org/docs/inSITE_June_2009.pdf Weimann, Gabriel; Knop, Katharina von (2008): Applying the Notion of Noise to Countering Online Terrorism. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 31(10), 883-902. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100802342601 S276 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Weinhauer, Klaus (2012): Religiös motivierter Terrorismus in der europäischen Diaspora: Transnationale Netzwerke, lokale Kleingruppen, Medienkommunikation. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 301-316. Weinhauer, Klaus (2012): Vom antikolonialen Konflikt zum Kampf um Symbole: Räumliche, lokale und transnationale Perspektiven auf den Nordirlandkonflikt (1967-1998). In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 177-202. Weinhauer, Klaus; Requate, Jörg (2012): Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess: Eskalation und Deeskalation politischer Gewalt in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 11-48. Weisburd, A. Aaron (2007): The Shifting Sands of the Global Jihad Online. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 154-165. Weisburd, A. Aaron (2009): Comparison of Visual Motifs in Jihadi and Cholo Videos on YouTube. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 32(12), 1066-1074. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576100903319789 Weisburd, A. Aaron (2010): Jihadis Online: Concepts and Frameworks for Online Counter-Terrorism. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 197-210. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-197 Weisburd, A. Aaron (2011): n.t. Testimony presented before the House Homeland Security Committee, Subcommittee on Counterterrorism and Intelligence on December 6, 2011. URL: http://homeland.house.gov/sites/homeland.house.gov/files/Weisburd%20testimony.pdf S277 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Weisburd, A. Aaron (2012, November): Artisanal Intelligence and Information Triage. Combating Terrorism Exchange, 2(4). URL: https://globalecco.org/artisanal-intelligence-and-informationtriage Weitzman, Mark (2010): Antisemitism and Terrorism on the Electronic Highway. In: Hans-Liudger Dienel et al. (Eds.): Terrorism and the Internet: Threats – Target Groups – Deradicalisation Strategies. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 67). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 7-24. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3233/978-1-60750-537-2-7 Weller, Christoph (2002): Der 11. September im Fernsehen: Die Deutung der Terroranschläge als Krieg. In: Bruno Schoch et al. (Ed.): Friedensgutachten 2002. Münster: LIT-Verlag, 43-51. URL: http://www.philso.uniaugsburg.de/lehrstuehle/politik/politik1/mitarbeiter/weller/pdf_aufsaetze_sammelbandbeitraege /Weller_Der-11-Sep-im-Fernsehen_02.pdf Weller, Christoph (2002): Die massenmediale Konstruktion der Terroranschläge am 11. September 2001: Eine Analyse der Fernsehberichterstattung und ihre theoretische Grundlage. INEF Report No. 63. URL: http://inef.uni-due.de/cms/files/report63_1.pdf Weller, Christoph (2004): Das Fernsehen und die politische Deutung der Ereignisse am 11. September. Oder: Die Kriegserklärung des Gerhard Schröder. In: Martin Löffelholz (Ed.): Krieg als Medienereignis II: Krisenkommunikation im 21. Jahrhundert. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 257-273. URL: http://www.philso.uniaugsburg.de/lehrstuehle/politik/politik1/mitarbeiter/weller/pdf_aufsaetze_sammelbandbeitraege /Weller_Das-Fernsehen-und-11-9-01_04.pdf S278 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Weller, Christoph (2005): Massenmediale Konstruktionen im außenpolitischen Entscheidungsprozess: Die öffentliche Meinung und die deutsche Fernsehberichterstattung am 11. September 2001. In: Cornelia Ulbert; Christoph Weller (Eds.): Konstruktivistische Analysen der internationalen Politik. Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 313-346. URL: http://www.philso.uniaugsburg.de/lehrstuehle/politik/politik1/mitarbeiter/weller/pdf_aufsaetze_sammelbandbeitraege /Weller_Massenmediale_Konstruktionen_05.pdf Weller, Christoph et al. (2003): Rolle und Verantwortung der Medien im Kampf gegen den internationalen Terrorismus. In: Auswärtiges Amt (Ed.): Achtes Forum Globale Fragen: Außenpolitik "in Echtzeit"? Die Medialisierung der Weltpolitik, Berlin, 20.-21. Februar 2003. Berlin: Auswärtiges Amt, 71-93. URL: http://www.philso.uniaugsburg.de/lehrstuehle/politik/politik1/mitarbeiter/weller/pdf_aufsaetze_sammelbandbeitraege /Weller_Medien-Terrorismus_03.pdf Werthes, Sascha; Kim, Richard; Conrad, Christoph (2002): Die Terrorkrise als Medienereignis? Internationale Krisenkommunikation – Eine Herausforderung im 21. Jahrhundert. In: Christian Schicha; Carsten Brosda (Eds.): Medien und Terrorismus: Reaktionen auf den 11. September 2001. (ikö-Publikationen, Vol. 4). Münster: LIT Verlag, 80-94. Westby, Jody R. (2007, Spring): Countering Terrorism with Cyber Security. Jurimetrics, 47(3), 297313. Westerman, David; Spence, Patric R.; Lachlan, Kenneth A. (2012): Telepresence and Exemplification: Does Spatial Presence Impact Sleeper Effects? Communication Research Reports, 29(4), 299-309. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08824096.2012.723272 Weston, Mary Ann (2005): Post 9/11 Arab American Coverage Avoids Stereotypes. In: Elinor Kelley Grusin; Sandra H. Utt (Eds.): Media in an American Crisis: Studies of September 11, 2001. Lanham: University Press of America, 117-130. S279 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Whine, Michael (1999): Cyberspace – A New Medium for Communication, Command, and Control by Extremists. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 22(3), 231-245. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/105761099265748 URL: http://ipac.kacst.edu.sa/eDoc/2006/158137_1.pdf Whine, Michael (1999): Islamist Organizations on the Internet. Terrorism and Political Violence, 11(1), 123-132. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559908427498 Whine, Michael (2007): Common Motifs on Jihadi and Far Right Websites. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 76-95. White, Jonathan R. (2012): Chapter 4: Terrorism and the Media. In: Terrorism and Homeland Security. (7th Edition). Belmont: Wadsworth, 102-128. Whiting, Sophie A. (2012): "The Discourse of Defence": "Dissident" Irish Republican Newspapers and the "Propaganda War". Terrorism and Political Violence, 24(3), 483-503. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546553.2011.637587 Wichmann, Peter (2011): Die Transformation der Al-Qaida zu einer globalen Bewegung und die strategische Bedeutung ihrer drei konzentrischen Kreise. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 130-149. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_7 Wicks, Robert H. (2006): Emotional Response to Collective Action Media Frames about Islam and Terrorism. Journal of Media and Religion, 5(4), 245-263. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1207/s15328415jmr0504_3 Widlanski, Michael (2012): CNN: Certainly not News. In: Battle for our Minds: Western Elites and the Terror Threat. New York: Threshold Editions, 83-103. S280 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Widlanski, Michael (2012): Terror and the Press: The Devil's Bargain. In: Battle for our Minds: Western Elites and the Terror Threat. New York: Threshold Editions, 44-82. Wiedmann, Karen Juliane (2012): Medienterror: Sprachliche Gewalt in der Boulevardpresse und ihre Folgen am Beispiel von Heinrich Bölls Die verlorene Ehre der Katharina Blum. In: Stefan Bronner; Hans-Joachim Schott (Eds.): Die Gewalt der Zeichen: Terrorismus als symbolisches Phänomen. Bamberg: University of Bamberg Press, 173-192. URL: http://opus4.kobv.de/opus4-bamberg/frontdoor/index/index/docId/347 Wiegand, Krista E. (2009): Islamic Terrorism: The Red Menace of the 21st Century. In: Matthew J. Morgan (Ed.): The Impact of 9/11 on the Media, Arts, and Entertainment: The Day that Changed Everything? Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 51-62. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/9780230101616 Wieviorka, Michel (1993): The Media and Terrorism. In: The Making of Terrorism. (David Gordon White, Trans.). Chicago: The University of Chicago Press, 42-51. Wiil, Uffe Kock; Memon, Nasrullah; Gniadek, Jolanta (2011): CrimeFighter: A Toolbox for Counterterrorism. In: Ana Fred et al. (Ed.): Knowledge Discovery, Knowlege Engineering and Knowledge Management: First International Joint Conference, IC3K 2009, Funchal, Madeira, Portugal, October 6-8, 2009, Revised Selected Papers. Heidelberg: Springer, 337-350. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-642-19032-2_25 Wijadi, Tjahjo Purnomo (2004): The WTC Tragedy and the U.S. Attack on Afghanistan: The Press Joins in Beating the War Drums. In: Shoma Munshi; Peter van der Veer (Eds.): Media, War and Terrorism: Responses from the Middle East and Asia. London: Routledge, 155-187. Wilkins, Karin; Downing, John (2002): Mediating Terrorism: Text and Protest in Interpretations of The Siege. Critical Studies in Media Communication, 19(4), 419-437. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/07393180216571 S281 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Wilkinson, Benedict; Barclay, Jack (2011, December): The Language of Jihad: Narratives and Strategies of Al-Qa’ida in the Arabian Peninsula. RUSI Whitehall Report Series, 4-11. URL: http://www.rusi.org/publications/whitehallreports/ref:N4F06F4FDD26D6 Wilkinson, Nicholas (2011): National Security, Secrecy and the Media: A British View. In: Susan Maret (Ed.): Government Secrecy. (Research in Social Problems and Public Policy, Vol. 19). Bingley: Emerald, 131-151. Wilkinson, Paul (1997): The Media and Terrorism: A Reassessment. Terrorism and Political Violence, 9(2), 51-64. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546559708427402 URL: http://icswww.leeds.ac.uk/papers/pmt/exhibits/755/The%2520Media%2520and%2520Terrorism.pdf Wilkinson, Paul (2006): The Media and Terrorism. In: Terrorism Versus Democracy: The Liberal State Response. London: Routledge, 144-157. Willems, Eddy (2011, March): Cyber-Terrorism in the Process Industry. Computer Fraud & Security, 3/2011, 16-19. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S1361-3723(11)70032-X Williams, Alan F. (2008, Winter): Prosecuting Website Development under the Material Support to Terrorism Statutes: Time to Fix what’s Broken. Journal of Legislation and Public Policy, 11(2), 365-402. URL: http://www.law.nyu.edu/journals/legislation/issues/volume11number2/ssLINK/idcplg? IdcService=GET_FILE&dID=90674&dDocName=ECM_PRO_058133&RevisionSelectionMe thod=LatestReleased Williams, Bruce A. (2003): The New Media Environment, Internet Chatrooms, and Public Discourse after 9/11. In: Daya Kishan Thussu; Des Freedman (Eds.): War and the Media: Reporting Conflict 24/7. London: SAGE, 176-189. Williams, Godfried; Arreymbi, Johnnes (2007): Is Cyber Tribalism Winning Online Information Warfare? In: Norbert Pohlmann; Helmut Reimer; Wolfgang Schneider (Eds.): ISSE/SECURE 2007 Securing Electronic Business Processes: Highlights of the Information Security Solutions S282 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Europe/SECURE 2007 Conference. Wiesbaden: Vieweg, 65-72. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-8348-9418-2_7 Williams, John W. (1999): The Failure of Terrorism as Mass Communication. Turkish Journal of Police Studies, 1(4), 37-52. URL: http://www.pa.edu.tr/APP_DOCUMENTS/D478B2AD3813-4555-9629-6332F8CF8D33/cms_statik/_dergi/1999/4/37-52.pdf Williams, Paul (2009): "I could Smell the Dawn of Armageddon when this Dick was Elected": HipHop's Oppositional Voices in the War on Terror. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 222-238. Williams, Paul (2009, Spring): Starship Troopers, the War on Terror and the Spectacle of Censorship. Science Fiction Film and Television, 2(1), 25-44. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.3828/sfftv.2.1.2 Wills, Deborah; Steuter, Erin (2009, October): The Soldier as Hunter: Pursuit, Prey and Display in the War on Terror. Journal of War & Culture Studies, 2(2), 195-210. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jwcs.2.2.195_1 Wilson, Clay (2005): Computer Attack and Cyberterrorism: Vulnerabilities and Policy Issues for Congress. In: Edward V. Linden (Ed.): Focus on Terrorism: Volume 9. New York: NOVA Science Publishers, 1-42. Wilson, Clay (2008): Botnets, Cybercrime, and Cyberterrorism: Vulnerabilities and Policy Issues for Congress. CRS Report for Congress RL3211. URL: http://www.fas.org/sgp/crs/terror/RL32114.pdf Winn, Aidan Kirby; Zakem, Vera L. (2009): Jihad.com 2.0: The New Social Media and the Changing Dynamics of Mass Persuasion. In: James J. F. Forest (Ed.): Influence Warfare: How Terrorists and Governments Fight to Shape Perceptions in a War of Ideas. Westport: Praeger Security International, 27-49. S283 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Winseck, Dwayne (2008, December): Information Operations "Blowback": Communication, Propaganda and Surveillance in the Global War on Terrorism. International Communication Gazette, 70(6), 419-441. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1748048508096141 URL: http://dwmw.files.wordpress.com/2011/03/information-operations-blowback.pdf Winston, Thomas (2007): Intelligence Challenges in Tracking Terrorist Internet Fund Transfer Activities. International Journal of Intelligence and CounterIntelligence, 20(2), 327-343. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/08850600600829833 Winter, David G. (2011): Scoring Motive Imagery in Documents from Four Middle East Opposition Groups. Dynamics of Asymmetric Conflict, 4(2), 144-154. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17467586.2011.627937 Wittebols, James H. (1991, August): The Politics and Coverage of Terrorism: From Media Images to Public Consciousness. Communication Theory, 1(3), 253-266. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1468-2885.1991.tb00018.x Wittebols, James H. (1992): Media and the Institutional Perspective: U.S. and Canadian Coverage of Terrorism. Political Communication, 9(4), 267-278. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10584609.1992.9962950 Wojcieszak, Magdalena (2009): "Carrying Online Participation Offline" – Mobilization by Radical Online Groups and Politically Dissimilar Offline Ties. Journal of Communication, 59(3), 564586. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1111/j.1460-2466.2009.01436.x Wolff, Martina (2012): Self, Identity and Terrorism in Current American Literature: American Pastoral and Terrorist. In: Michael C. Frank; Eva Gruber (Eds.): Literature and Terrorism: Comparative Perspectives. (Text Studies in Comparative Literature, Vol. 66). Amsterdam: Rodopi, 103-122. Wood, Eben (2010): Grimonprez's Remix. In: Peter Schneck; Philipp Schweighauser (Eds.): Terrorism, Media, and the Ethics of Fiction: Transatlantic Perspectives on Don DeLillo. New York: Continuum, 111-129. S284 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Woodier, Jonathan (2002): The Disenchantment of Southeast Asia: New Media and Social Change post 9/11. Asia Pacific Media Educator, 12, 82-104. URL: http://ro.uow.edu.au/apme/vol1/iss12/6 Woodier, Jonathan (2006): Perning in the Gyre: Indonesia, the Globalised Media and the "War on Terror". In: Benjamin Cole (Ed.): Conflict, Terrorism and the Media in Asia. (Routledge Media, Culture and Social Change in Asia). London: Routledge, 41-61. Woods, Ashlee (2007): Terrorists and the Internet. In: Suleyman Ozeren; Ismail Dincer Gunes; Diab M. Al-Badayneh (Eds.): Understanding Terrorism: Analysis of Sociological and Psychological Aspects. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 22). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 270-280. Woods, Joshua (2007, July): What we Talk about when we Talk about Terrorism: Elite Press Coverage of Terrorism Risk from 1997 to 2005. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 12(3), 320. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X07302064 Worcester, Kent (2011): New York City, 9/11, and Comics. Radical History Review, 2011(111), 139-154. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1215/01636545-1268758 URL: http://rhr.dukejournals.org/content/2011/111/139.full.pdf Wright, Marie (2008): Technology & Terrorism: How the Internet Facilitates Radicalization. The Forensic Examiner, 17(4), 14-20. URL: http://www.theforensicexaminer.com/archive2 Wright, Stuart A. (2009, May): Reframing Religious Violence after 9/11: Analysis of the ACM Campaign to Exploit the Threat of Terrorism. Nova Religio, 12(4), 5-27. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1525/nr.2009.12.4.5 Wright, Terence (2004): Collateral Coverage: Media Images of Afghan Refugees, 2001. Visual Studies, 19(1), 97-112. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1472586042000204870 Wurth‐Hough, Sandra (1983): Network News Coverage of Terrorism: The Early Years. Terrorism, 6(3), 403-421. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/10576108308435540 S285 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Wykes, Maggie; Harcus, Daniel (2009): Cyber-Terror: Construction, Criminalisation and Control. In: Yvonne Jewkes; Majid Yar (Eds.): Handbook of Internet Crime. Portland: Willan Publishing, 214-230. #X Xu, Jennifer Jie; Chen, Hsinchun (2008): Understanding the Nexus of Terrorist Web Sites. In: Hsinchun Chen; Christopher C. Yang (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: Techniques and Applications. (Studies in Computational Intelligence, Vol. 3). Berlin: Springer, 65-78. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-69209-6_4 Xu, Jennifer Jie et al. (2006): On the Topology of the Dark Web of Terrorist Groups. In: Sharad Mehrotra et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: IEEE International Conference on Intelligence and Security Informatics, ISI 2006, San Diego, CA, USA, May 23-24, 2006. Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 3975). Berlin: Springer, 367-376. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/11760146_32 URL: http://ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/isi_topologyof_darkweb.pdf #Y Yakovenko, Aleksandr (2005): Can the Media Help to Fight Terrorism? International Affairs: A Russian Journal of World Politics, Diplomacy and International Relations, 51(5), 96-101. Yashwant, Deva (1994): The Media, the Military and Militancy: Focus on Kashmir. Strategic Analysis, 16(12), 1585-1595. Yehoshua, Yael (2007): Islamist Websites as an Integral Part of Jihad: A General Overview. In: Boaz Ganor; Katharina Von Knop; Carlos Duarte (Eds.): Hypermedia Seduction for Terrorist Recruiting. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 25). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 59-66. S286 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Yinbo, Li (2002, May): How Chinese Television and New Media Presented the U.S. 9-11 Tragedy: A Comparative Study of SINA, CCTV, and PhoenixTV. Television & New Media, 3(2), 223229. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/152747640200300215 Youmans, William (2009): The War on Ideas: Alhurra and US International Broadcasting Law in the "War on Terror". Westminster Papers in Communication and Culture, 6(1), 45-68. URL: http://www.westminster.ac.uk/__data/assets/pdf_file/0010/19990/004WPCC-Vol6-No1William_Youmans.pdf Young, Alison (2007, April): Images in the Aftermath of Trauma: Responding to September 11th. Crime Media Culture, 3(1), 30-48. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1741659007074444 Young, Robert J. C. (2010): Terror Effects. In: Elleke Boehmer; Stephen Morton (Eds.): Terror and the Postcolonial. Chichester: Wiley-Blackwell, 305-328. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1002/9781444310085.ch12 Youngs, Gillian (2009): Media and Mediation in the "War on Terror": Issues and Challenges. Critical Studies on Terrorism, 2(1), 95-102. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/17539150902752846 Yuksel, Yusuf (2007): Osama bin Laden Audiotape and its Effect on the US Newspapers. In: Suleyman Ozeren; Ismail Dincer Gunes; Diab M. Al-Badayneh (Eds.): Understanding Terrorism: Analysis of Sociological and Psychological Aspects. (NATO Science for Peace and Security Series – E: Human and Societal Dynamics, Vol. 22). Amsterdam: IOS Press, 294-305. Yun, Minwoo (2007): Implications of Global Terrorist Hostage-Taking and Kidnapping. The Korean Journal of Defense Analysis, 19(2), 135-165. URL: http://www.kida.re.kr/data/2007/10/15/07.pdf Yunos, Zahri et al. (2010): Safeguarding Malaysia's Critical National Information Infrastructure (CNII) against Cyber Terrorism: Towards Development of a Policy Framework. In: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE) (Ed.): 2010 Sixth International Conference on Information Assurance and Security (IAS 2010), Atlanta, Georgia, 23-25 August 2010: Proceed- S287 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement ings. Atlanta: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE), 21-27. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/ISIAS.2010.5604182 Yunos, Zahri et al. (2012): Illicit Activities and Terrorism in Cyberspace: An Exploratory Study in the Southeast Asian Region. In: Michael Chau; Wei Thoo Yue; Hsinchun Chen (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: Pacific Asia Workshop, PAISI 2012, Kuala Lumpur, Malaysia, May 29, 2012: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 7299). Heidelberg: Springer, 27-35. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-642-30428-6_2 Yusha’u, Muhammad Jameel (2011, December): News Framing of the "Detroit Bomber" in the Nigerian Press. Global Media and Communication, 7(3), 281-286. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1742766511427503 Yusha’u, Muhammad Jameel (2012, November): Representation of Boko Haram Discourses in the British Broadsheets. Journal of Arab & Muslim Media Research, 5(1), 91-108. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1386/jammr.5.1.91_1 Yusufzai, Rahimullah (2010, May): The Kidnapping and Execution of Khalid Khwaja in Pakistan. CTC Sentinel, 3(5), 15-17. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2010/08/CTCSentinel-Vol3Iss5.pdf #Z Zambelis, Chris (2012, July): Information Wars: Assessing the Social Media Battlefield in Syria. CTC Sentinel, 5(7), 19-21. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wpcontent/uploads/2012/07/CTCSentinel-Vol5Iss7.pdf Zanini, Michele (1999): Middle Eastern Terrorism and Netwar. Studies in Conflict & Terrorism, 22(3), 247-256. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/105761099265757 URL: http://www.ou.edu/ap/lis5703/whatisresearch/terrorism.pdf Zanini, Michele; Edwards, Sean J. A. (2001): The Networking of Terror in the Information Age. In: John Arquilla; David Ronfeldt (Eds.): Networks and Netwars: The Future of Terror, Crime, and S288 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Militancy. RAND Monograph Report MR-1382. Santa Monica: RAND Corporation, 29-60. URL: http://www.rand.org/pubs/monograph_reports/MR1382.html Zarri, Gian Piero (2010): A Conceptual Methodology for Dealing with Terrorism "Narratives". International Journal of Digital Crime and Forensics, 2(2), 47-63. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.4018/jdcf.2010040104 Zaytseva, Olga (2005, Fall): Beslan School Tragedy: The Rhetoric of the Russian Media. Young Scholars in Writing, 9, 38-45. URL: http://cas.umkc.edu/english/publications/youngscholarsinwriting/documents/BESLAN.pdf Zeitzoff, Thomas (2011, December): Using Social Media to Measure Conflict Dynamics: An Application to the 2008–2009 Gaza Conflict. Journal of Conflict Resolution, 55(6), 938-969. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/0022002711408014 Zelin, Aaron Y. (2010, November): Revolution Muslim: Downfall or Respite? CTC Sentinel, 3(11), 21-23. URL: http://www.ctc.usma.edu/wp-content/uploads/2011/05/CTCSentinel-Vol3Iss1112.pdf Zelin, Aaron Y. (2011, September/October): Neues aus Cyber-Dschihadistan: Global oder lokal handeln – das ist die Debatte seit 9/11. Internationale Politik, 9-10/2011, 130-133. URL: https://zeitschrift-ip.dgap.org/de/ip-die-zeitschrift/archiv/jahrgang-2011/septemberoktober/neues-aus-cyber-dschihadistan Zelin, Aaron Y. (2013, January): The State of Global Jihad Online: A Qualitative, Quantitative, and Cross-Lingual Analysis. New America Foundation Policy Paper. URL: http://www.newamerica.net/publications/policy/the_state_of_global_jihad_online Zelin, Aaron Y. (2013, February): #Jihad's Social Media Trend. Foreign Policy (The AfPak Channel). URL: http://afpak.foreignpolicy.com/posts/2013/02/05/jihad_social_media_trend S289 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Zelinsky, Aaron; Shubika, Martin (2009): Research Note: Terrorist Groups as Business Firms: A New Typological Framework. Terrorism and Political Violence, 21(2), 327-336. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/09546550902771993 Zelizer, Barbie (2005, Summer): Death in Wartime: Photographs and the "Other War" in Afghanistan. The International Journal of Press/Politics, 10(3), 26-55. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1177/1081180X05278370 Zelizer, Barbie (2011): Photography, Journalism, and Trauma. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 55-74. Zelizer, Barbie; Allan, Stuart (2011): Introduction: When Trauma Shapes the News. In: Barbie Zelizer; Stuart Allan (Eds.): Journalism after September 11. (2nd ed.). (Routledge Communication and Society Series). London: Routledge, 1-32. Zeng, Daniel et al. (2007): A Web Portal for Terrorism Activities in China. In: Christopher C. Yang et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: Pacific Asia Workshop, PAISI 2007, Chengdu, China, April 11-12, 2007: Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 4430). Berlin: Springer, 307-308. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-540-71549-8_33 Zeng, Li; Tahat, Khalaf (2012): Picturing Terrorism through Arabic Lenses: A Comparative Analysis of Al Jazeera and Al Arabiya. Asian Journal of Communication, 22(5), 433-448. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/01292986.2012.701317 Zenn, Jacob (2011, March 17): Jihad in China? Marketing the Turkistan Islamic Party. TerrorismMonitor, 9(11), 6-9. URL: http://www.jamestown.org/single/? no_cache=1&tx_ttnews[tt_news]=37662 Zessin, Philipp; Albanese, Matteo (2012): Violence and Communication in Social-Revolutionary Movements in France 1968-1987. In: Klaus Weinhauer; Jörg Requate (Eds.): Gewalt ohne Ausweg? Terrorismus als Kommunikationsprozess in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. Frankfurt am Main: Campus, 261-280. S290 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Zhang, Yonghua et al. (2006, October): The Chinese and US News Coverage of Terrorism Abroad: Presentation of Four Terrorist Events Abroad in Four Newspapers. China Media Research, 2(2), n.p. Zhang, Yulei et al. (2009): Dark Web Forums Portal: Searching and Analyzing Jihadist Forums. In: Institute of Electrical and Electronics Engineers (IEEE) (Ed.): IEEE International Conference on Intelligence and Security Informatics, ISI 2009, Dallas, Texas, USA, June 8-11, 2009: Proceedings. Atlanta: IEEE, 71-76. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/ISI.2009.5137274 Zhou, Yilu et al. (2005): US Domestic Extremist Groups on the Web: Link and Content Analysis. IEEE Intelligent Systems, 20(5), 44-51. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1109/MIS.2005.96 URL: http://home.gwu.edu/~yzhou/zhou_IEEE_USDomestic.pdf Zhou, Yilu et al. (2006): Exploring the Dark Side of the Web: Collection and Analysis of U.S. Extremist Online Forums. In: Sharad Mehrotra et al. (Eds.): Intelligence and Security Informatics: IEEE International Conference on Intelligence and Security Informatics, ISI 2006, San Diego, CA, USA, May 23-24, 2006. Proceedings. (Lecture Notes in Computer Science, Vol. 3975). Berlin: Springer, 621-626. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/11760146_67 URL: http://ai.arizona.edu/intranet/papers/isi_exploring_darkside.pdf Zimniak, Pawel (2010): Geisel und Geiselnehmer – Zu fiktionalen Gewalt- und Machtphantasien in Thomas Melles "Raumforderung" (2007). In: Norman Ächtler; Carsten Gansel (Eds.): Ikonographie des Terrors? Formen ästhetischer Erinnerung an den Terrorismus in der Bundesrepublik 1978-2008. Heidelberg: Winter, 349-360. Zinchenko, Yuri P. (2009): Mass Media as an Effective Tool for Prevention of Socio-Psychological Factors in the Development of Terrorism. Psychology in Russia: State of the Art, 1(2), 459-476. URL: http://psychologyinrussia.com/volumes/pdf/2009/22_2009_zinchenko.pdf Zollmann, Florian (2007): Fighting Fanatics, Killing People: The Limits of Corporate Journalism during the US Assault on Fallujah. Ethical Space, 4(4), 24-29. S291 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Zollmann, Florian (2011): Doublethink in the Mass Media: Fallujah and the Politics of Human Rights Reporting. Ethical Space, 8(1-2), 25-31. Zwagerman, Sean (2009): A Day that will Live in Irony: September 11 and the War on Humor. In: Andrew Schopp; Matthew B. Hill (Eds.): The War on Terror and American Popular Culture: September 11 and beyond. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 209-221. Zylinska, Joanna (2004): Mediating Murder: Ethics, Trauma and the Price of Death. Journal for Cultural Research, 8(3), 227-246. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1080/1479758042000264920 Zywietz, Bernd (2011): Zur Vorstellung der Gefahr: Terrorismus und Terrorismusspielfilme als Risikokommunikation. In: Thomas Jäger (Ed.): Die Welt nach 9/11: Auswirkungen des Terrorismus auf Staatenwelt und Gesellschaft. (Sonderheft der Zeitschrift für Außen- und Sicherheitspolitik, Sonderheft 2/2011). Wiesbaden: VS Verlag für Sozialwissenschaften, 741-770. DOI: http://dx.doi.org/10.1007/978-3-531-94173-8_36 Zywietz, Bernd (2012): Men in Troubles – IRA-Männer und Männlichkeit in Filmen zum Nordirlandkonflikt. In: Christine Hikel; Sylvia Schraut (Eds.): Terrorismus und Geschlecht: Politische Gewalt in Europa seit dem 19. Jahrhundert. (Geschichte und Geschlechter, Vol. 61). Frankfurt: Campus Verlag, 279-302. S292 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Websites and Blogs Analyzing Primary Sources ALLEYESONJIHADISM URL: http://alleyesonjihadism.wordpress.com All Things Counter Terrorism: A Critical View of the War on Terror by a Former Counterterrorism Analyst http://allthingscounterterrorism.com al-Wasat: The Muslim World, Radicalization, Terrorism, and Islamist Ideology URL: http://thewasat.wordpress.com ATOMIC NEWS http://atomicnews.info CBRNE-Terrorism Newsletter http://www.cbrne-terrorism-newsletter.com COMOPS Journal: Analysis, Commentary and News Blog by CSC Staff URL: http://csc.asu.edu/category/comops-journal CRONUS URL: http://jarretbrachman.net FLASHPOINT Partners URL: http://www.flashpoint-intel.com INTELWIRE: Breaking News, Primary Source Research, and Critical Analysis Concerning Terrorism, Homegrown Extremism, and National Security URL: http://www.intelwire.com S293 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement International Institute for Counter-Terrorism (ICT) URL: http://www.ict.org.il Internet Haganah URL: http://internet-haganah.com/haganah/index.html Jih@d: News of Terrorism, Jihadism & International Politics URL: http://ojihad.wordpress.com Jihadica: Documenting the Global Jihad URL: http://www.jihadica.com Jihadism online URL: http://www.univie.ac.at/jihadism JIHADOLOGY: A Clearinghouse for Jihādī Primary Source Material and Translation Service URL: http://jihadology.net Logbuch al-Qaida URL: http://www.spiegel.de/thema/logbuch_al_qaida Long War Journal, The: A Project of the Foundation for Defense of Democracies URL: http://www.longwarjournal.org Ma'alim fi al-Tariq URL: http://maalamfiltariq.wordpress.com MAKING SENSE OF JIHAD URL: http://www.makingsenseofjihad.com Middle East Observatory URL: http://www.meobservatory.com/index.shtml S294 February 2013 Perspectives on Terrorism Volume 7, Issue 1, Supplement Mr. Orange's War Tracker URL: http://theorangetracker.blogspot.de NEFA Foundation, The URL: http://www.nefafoundation.org Online Jihad: OSINT AQ – Monitoring Jihadist Online Communities: Translations – Assessments – News URL: http://online-jihad.com SITE Intelligence Group URL: https://www.siteintelgroup.com Society for Internet Research (SOFIR) http://www.sofir.org Views from the Occident: Thoughts and Linkage from an American Graduate Student in the Institute of Islamic Studies at McGill University on the Role of the Middle East/North Africa and the Islamicate World in Global Affairs in Modern Times, as well as Occasional Personal Musings URL: http://occident.blogspot.de WEBehavior: Where Extremism Meets Social Media URL: http://alixlevine.blogspot.de About the Compiler: Judith Tinnes, Ph.D., studied Information Science and New German Literature and Linguistics at the Saarland University (Germany). She wrote a comprehensive doctoral thesis on the Internet usage of Islamist terrorist and insurgent groups (focus: media-oriented hostage takings), based on a large set of research data obtained through long-term tracking of Islamist websites, which she had been conducting since early 2006. She has worked for several research support organizations where she gained expertise in information retrieval, librarianship, and electronic publishing. At present, she works at the research & development department of Leibniz Institute for Psychology Information (ZPID) (http://www.zpid.de) in the open-access publishing project PsychOpen (http://www.psychopen.eu). In her spare time, she is an Editorial Assistant with ‘Perspectives on Terrorism’ where she contributes to the Resources Section. S295 February 2013
Similar documents
Terrorism and the Media (including the Internet)
DeFoster, Ruth Maku (2010, May): Domestic Terrorism on the Nightly News. (Master's Thesis, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis, U.S.). URL: http://conservancy.umn.edu/bitstream/93028/1/DeFoster_Ru...
More information